summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
path: root/old
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
Diffstat (limited to 'old')
-rw-r--r--old/67495-0.txt6645
-rw-r--r--old/67495-0.zipbin117066 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67495-h.zipbin362527 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67495-h/67495-h.htm9147
-rw-r--r--old/67495-h/images/cover.jpgbin187695 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67495-h/images/i_frontispiece.jpgbin68849 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67495-h/images/i_title.jpgbin30069 -> 0 bytes
7 files changed, 0 insertions, 15792 deletions
diff --git a/old/67495-0.txt b/old/67495-0.txt
deleted file mode 100644
index 65695b1..0000000
--- a/old/67495-0.txt
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,6645 +0,0 @@
-The Project Gutenberg eBook of From Sea to Sea, by W. Bert Foster
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
-most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
-of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you
-will have to check the laws of the country where you are located before
-using this eBook.
-
-Title: From Sea to Sea
- Or, Clint Webb’s Cruise on the Windjammer
-
-Author: W. Bert Foster
-
-Release Date: February 24, 2022 [eBook #67495]
-
-Language: English
-
-Produced by: D A Alexander, David E. Brown, and the Online Distributed
- Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net (This file was
- produced from images generously made available by the
- Library of Congress)
-
-*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK FROM SEA TO SEA ***
-
-
-[Illustration: “YOU WANT US TO LOSE THIS RACE, YOU SAWNEY!” HE
- EXCLAIMED. (From Sea to Sea) (Page 135)]
-
-
-
-
- From Sea to Sea
-
- Or
-
- Clint Webb’s Cruise on the Windjammer
-
- By W. BERT FOSTER
-
- Author of
-
- The Frozen Ship; or, Clint Webb Among the Sealers. Swept Out to Sea;
- or, Clint Webb Among the Whalers. The Ocean Express; or, Clint Webb
- and the Sea Tramp.
-
- [Illustration]
-
- Chicago M. A. Donohue & Co.
-
-
-
-
- Copyright 1914 M. A. Donohue & Company Chicago
-
-
-
-
-CONTENTS
-
-
- Chapter Page
-
- I--I Shield a Friend and Make an Enemy 7
-
- II--I Relate My History and Stand Up to a Bully 15
-
- III--The Bubble of My Conceit Is Pricked 27
-
- IV--Captain Bowditch Crowds On Sail and There Is Much
- Excitement 37
-
- V--We See a Ship Sailing in the Sky 47
-
- VI--The Gullwing Suffers a Ghostly Visitation 54
-
- VII--Is Pictured a Race in Mid-Ocean 64
-
- VIII--It Seems That a Prophecy Will Be Fulfilled 72
-
- IX--I Pass Through Deep Waters 80
-
- X--The Impossible Becomes the Possible 88
-
- XI--I See That There Is Tragedy in This Ocean Race 96
-
- XII--The Captain’s Dog Goes Overboard 103
-
- XIII--I Learn a Deal About Sea Monsters in General and the
- Giant Squid in Particular 110
-
- XIV--A Signal Retards the Race 121
-
- XV--We Have a Race in Good Earnest 131
-
- XVI--I Return to the Gullwing--and With My Arms Full 138
-
- XVII--We Learn the Particulars of the Wreck of the Galland 146
-
- XVIII--I Become Better Acquainted with Phillis Duane 156
-
- XIX--I Learn Something More About the Barney Twins 164
-
- XX--Phillis Tells Me of Her Dream 172
-
- XXI--The Sister Ships Once More Race Neck and Neck 179
-
- XXII--The Capes of Virginia Are in Sight 189
-
- XXIII--We Escape Death by the Breadth of a Hair 197
-
- XXIV--The Tragedy of the Racing Ships Is Completed 203
-
- XXV--A Very Serious Question Is Discussed 210
-
- XXVI--Is Told How the Barney Boys Go Ashore 219
-
- XXVII--I Receive a Telegram That Troubles Me 227
-
- XXVIII--My Homecoming Proves To Be a Strange One Indeed 234
-
- XXIX--Mr. Chester Downes and I Again “Lock Horns” 241
-
- XXX--My Welcome Home Is a Real Welcome After All 249
-
-
-
-
-From Sea to Sea
-
-Or,
-
-Clint Webb’s Cruise on the Windjammer
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER I
-
-_In Which I Shield a Friend and Make an Enemy_
-
-
-The after port anchor had come inboard before I stepped over the rail
-of the Gullwing, and leaped to the deck. The starboard and port bowers
-were both catted and fished and the stay-fore-sail had filled to pay
-off her head.
-
-The wind was blowing directly on shore; the current ran parallel
-with the land; there was no choice of direction in getting the big
-four-master under weigh, and she was headed into the stream.
-
-A clarion voice shouted from the poop:
-
-“Haul main-tack!
-
-“Come aft with that sheet!
-
-“Set jib and spanker! Look alive there!
-
-“Mr. Gates! see if you can’t get some action out of your watch!”
-
-“Aye, aye, sir!” from the mate.
-
-“Helm a-lee! hard a-lee!”
-
-“Hard a-lee she is!” growled the helmsman, a great, hairy, two-fisted
-salt, with an enormous quid of tobacco in one cheek, a cast in his eye,
-and his blue shirt so wide open at the throat that we could catch a
-glimpse of a dashing looking mermaid, in blue and red, upon his chest.
-
-“Set fore-sail! Be alive, there, Mr. Barney. Those men of yours act as
-stiff as Paddy’s father--and him nine days dead!”
-
-The stamping of the men on the deck as they hauled on the ropes, a
-confusion of cries from those in the tops, the squeal of the cables
-running over the drum, the coughing of the donkey-engine amidships by
-which the huge anchors had been started from the bottom of Valpariso
-roadstead, and the general bustle and running about, kept Thankful
-Polk--who had followed me aboard the big, four-stick schooner--and I
-right there by the rail, where we would be out of the way. Thankful
-gave me a sly glance, as he whispered:
-
-“I reckon we’ve caught a Tartar in Cap’n Joe Bowditch--what?”
-
-But I had noted the lines about the skipper’s mouth and the wrinkles at
-the corners of his quick, gray eyes. Those lines and wrinkles had not
-been graved in the old sea-captain’s face by any long-standing grouch.
-Captain Bowditch was a man who liked his joke; and even his voice as
-he bawled orders from the quarter had a tang of good-nature to it that
-was not to be mistaken.
-
-“I reckon we’ll get along all right with him, if we play the game
-straight,” I observed to my chum, and turned then to wave my cap to
-Cap’n Hi Rogers, of the whaling bark Scarboro, who was now being rowed
-back to his own ship after leaving us to the tender mercies of Cap’n
-Bowditch.
-
-“By hickey!” exclaimed the boy from Georgia, glancing now along the
-deck, “ain’t she a monster? Looks a mile from the wheel to the break of
-the fo’castle.”
-
-It was the largest sailing vessel I had ever been aboard of myself. The
-Scarboro was a good sized bark, but as we crossed her stern we could
-look down upon the whaler’s deck and wave our hats to the friendly crew
-that had been so kind to us. Only a single scowling face was raised
-to ours as the Gullwing swept on, a creamy wave breaking either side
-of her sharp bow. This face belonged to my cousin, Paul Downes, who
-scowled at me and shook his fist. But I merely smiled back at him.
-I thought that--at length--I could afford to laugh at my cousin’s
-threats. I was bound straight for home aboard the Gullwing; he had
-eighteen months, or more, to serve aboard the whaling bark.
-
-Seeing that both the captain and the mates were too busy just then
-to bother with us, Thank and I strolled forward. It was a long, long
-deck--and the boards were as white as stone and water could make them.
-There was some litter about just now, of course; but from the look of
-the whole ship I made up my mind right then and there that if Captain
-Bowditch was a martinet in anything, it was in the line of neatness
-and order. The slush tub beside the galley door was freshly painted
-and had a tight cover; there was no open swill bucket to gather flies;
-the cook’s wiping towels had been boiled out and were now hung upon a
-patent drying rack fastened to the house, and were as white and clean
-as the wash of a New England housewife. Every bit of brightwork shone
-and where paint was needed it had been newly put on with no niggard
-hand. As the sails were broke out and spread to catch the light wind,
-many of them were white-new, while those that were patched had been
-overboard for a good sousing before being bent on again. Oh, the
-Gullwing was a smart ship, with a smart skipper, and a smart crew; one
-could appraise these facts with half an eye.
-
-“Makes you think you ought to have wiped your feet on the mat before
-stepping in, eh?” chuckled Thank. “I bet we got to a place at last,
-Sharp, where we’re bound to work. That old feller with the whiskers up
-there could spot a fly-speck on the flying jib-boom. I wonder he don’t
-have brass cuspidors setting ’round for the deck-watch!”
-
-Compared with the frowzy old vessels, captained and manned by
-foreigners, that make American ports, this American ship, American
-skippered, and American manned, was a lady’s parlor. “She’s a beauty,”
-I said. “We may work for our pay--whatever it is to be--but thank’s be
-’tis no sealing craft. The stench of the old Gypsey Girl will never be
-out of my nostrils.”
-
-We stood about for a few minutes longer, trying to keep out of the way
-of the busy crew; but one husky, red faced fellow came sliding down the
-backstays and landed square on Thank’s head and shoulders, pitching him
-to the deck.
-
-“Get out o’ the way, you two young sawneys!” growled this fellow.
-“Don’t you know enough to keep out from under foot?”
-
-Thank had picked himself up quickly and turned with his usual
-good-natured grin. It was hard for anybody to pick a quarrel with
-Thankful Polk.
-
-“My law-dee, Mister” he exclaimed. “Is that the way you us’ally come
-from aloft? Lucky I was right here to cushion ye, eh?”
-
-The red faced fellow, without a word, swung at him with his hard fist
-doubled. I was a pretty sturdy fellow myself, with more weight than
-my chum, and I saw no reason for letting him receive that blow when
-interference was so easy. I stepped in and the bully crashed against
-my shoulder, his blow never reaching Thank. Nor did he hurt me,
-either. His collision with my shoulder threw him off his balance and
-he sprawled upon the deck, striking his head hard. He rolled over and
-blinked up at me for half a minute, too stunned to realize what had
-happened to him.
-
-The encounter was seen by half a dozen of the men, but none of the
-officers spied us. The spectators laughed as though they hugely enjoyed
-the discomfiture of the bully.
-
-“Sarves ye right, Bob Promise,” muttered one of the A. B.s; “I bet ye
-got more than ye bargained for in that youngster.”
-
-“Caught a Tartar, eh, Bob?” scoffed another man.
-
-The fellow on the deck “came to” then, and sprang up with every
-apparent intention of attacking me. I had shielded my chum, but it was
-plain that I had made an enemy.
-
-“I’ll teach ye, ye young swab!” Bob ejaculated, and started for me.
-
-But the others interfered. Several hustled the bully back.
-
-“None o’ that, Bob Promise!” exclaimed the first speaker. “We’ll have
-the old man down here in a second.”
-
-“I’ll break that feller’s neck!” cried Bob.
-
-“I dunno whether ye will or not--in a stand up fight,” drawled another
-of his shipmates. “He looks like he could take care of himself.”
-
-I had involuntarily fallen into an attitude of self-defense. That is
-where I had the advantage of Thank; I knew something about boxing, and
-although the bully was heavier and older than I, it was pretty certain
-that he had no science. At any rate I wasn’t going to let him think I
-was afraid of him.
-
-“You wait!” growled Bob Promise. “You stand up to me in the watch
-below, and I’ll eat you alive.”
-
-I had an idea that if he did I should disagree with his stomach badly;
-but I did not say this. I don’t think I am naturally a quarrelsome
-fellow, if I am impulsive. Nor did I wish to get in bad with the
-captain and officers of the ship by being mixed up in a fight.
-
-“Oh, pshaw!” I said, mildly. “I don’t want to fight you, Mister. Thank
-didn’t intentionally get in your way, and I didn’t mean----”
-
-“You struck me, you white livered----”
-
-“I didn’t,” I denied. “You ran against me.”
-
-“Don’t you give me no back talk,” snarled the fellow, but looking out
-watchfully for the officers now.
-
-“Don’t be mad,” I said, with a smile. “I’m sorry if I hurt you----”
-
-I guess that wasn’t a wise thing to say, although I did not mean to
-heap fuel on the flames of his wrath. He gave me a black look as he
-turned away, muttering:
-
-“Wait till I git you a-tween decks, my lad. I’ll do for you!”
-
-Thank and I looked at each other, and I guess my countenance expressed
-all the chagrin I felt, for my chum did not smile, as usual.
-
-“You butted in for me, Sharp,” he said, gloomily, “and now that big
-bruiser will beat you up, as sure as shooting.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER II
-
-_In Which I Relate My History and Stand Up to a Bully_
-
-
-A fine introduction to my readers! That is the way I look at it. It
-does seem to me, looking back upon the last few years of my life,
-that my impetuosity has forever been getting me into unpleasant
-predicaments. Perhaps if I wasn’t such a husky fellow for my age,
-and had not learned to use my fists to defend myself, I should not
-have “butted in,” as Thankful Polk said, and so laid myself open to
-a beating at the hands of Bob Promise, the bully of the Gullwing’s
-fo’castle.
-
-A quarrel with my cousin, Paul Downes, on a certain September evening
-more than a year and a half before, had resulted in a serious change in
-my life and in a series of adventures which no sensible fellow could
-ever have desired. For all those months I had been separated from my
-home, and from my mother who was a widow and needed me, and at this
-particular time when I had come aboard the Gullwing, my principal wish
-and hope was to get back to my home, and that as quickly as possible.
-That the reader may better understand my situation I must briefly
-recount my history up to this hour.
-
-Something more than fifteen years previous my father, Dr. Webb, of
-Bolderhead, Massachusetts, while fishing from a dory off shore was lost
-overboard and his body was never recovered. This tragedy occurred three
-weeks after the death of my maternal grandfather, Mr. Darringford, who
-had objected to my mother’s marriage to Dr. Webb, and who had left his
-large estate in trust for my mother and myself, but so tied up that we
-could never benefit by a penny of it unless we separated from Dr. Webb,
-or in case of my father’s death. Dr. Webb had never been a money-making
-man--not even a successful man as the world looks upon success--and he
-was in financial difficulties at the time of his fatal fishing trip.
-
-Considering these circumstances, ill-natured gossip said that Dr. Webb
-had committed suicide. I was but two years old at the time and before I
-had grown to the years of understanding, this story had been smothered
-by time; I never should have heard the story I believe had it not been
-for my cousin, Paul Downes.
-
-Mr. Chester Downes had married my mother’s older sister, and that
-match had pleased Mr. Darringford little better than the marriage of
-his younger daughter. But Aunt Alice had died previous to grandfather’s
-own decease, so Mr. Downes and Paul had received but a very small part
-of the Darringford estate. I know now that Chester Downes had attached
-himself like a leech to my weak and easily influenced mother, and
-had it not been for Lawyer Hounsditch, who was co-trustee with her,
-my uncle would long since have completely controlled my own and my
-mother’s property.
-
-Chester Downes and his son, who was only a few mouths older than
-myself, had done their best to alienate my mother from me as I grew
-older; but the quarrel between Paul and myself, mentioned above, had
-brought matters to a crisis, and I believed that I had gotten the
-Downeses out of the house for good and all. Fearing that Paul would try
-to “get square” with me by harming my sloop, the Wavecrest, I slept
-aboard that craft to guard her. At the beginning of the September gale
-Paul sneaked out of the sloop in the night, nailed me into the cabin,
-and cut her moorings. I was blown out to sea and was rescued by the
-whaling bark, Scarboro, just beginning a three-years’ voyage to the
-South Seas.
-
-I was enabled to send home letters by a mail-boat, but was forced to
-remain with the Scarboro until she reached Buenos Ayres. The story
-of an old boatsteerer, Tom Anderly by name, had revived in my mind
-the mystery of my poor father’s disappearance. Tom had been one of
-the crew of a coasting schooner which had rescued a man swimming in
-the sea on a foggy day off Bolderhead Neck, at the time--as near as
-I could figure--when my father was reported drowned. This man had
-called himself Carver and had left the coasting vessel at New York
-after having borrowed two dollars from Tom. Years afterward a letter
-had reached Tom from this Carver, enclosing the borrowed money, and
-postmarked Santiago, Chile. The details of the boatsteerer’s story made
-me believe that the man Carver was Dr. Webb, who had deserted my mother
-and myself for the obvious reason that, as long as he remained with us,
-we could not benefit from grandfather’s estate.
-
-While ashore at Buenos Ayres I was accosted by a queer old Yankee named
-Adoniram Tugg, master and owner of the schooner Sea Spell, but whose
-principal business was the netting of wild animals for animal dealers.
-He called me “Professor Vose,” not having seen my face, and explained
-that my voice and build were exactly like a partner of his whom he
-knew by that name. The character of this Professor Vose, as described
-by Captain Tugg, as well as other details, led me to believe that he
-was the same man whom the boatsteerer aboard the Scarboro had known as
-Jim Carver, and the possibility of the man being my father took hold of
-my imagination so strongly that I shipped on the Sea Spell for Tugg’s
-headquarters, located some miles up a river emptying into the Straits
-of Magellan.
-
-But when we reached the animal catcher’s headquarters we found
-the shacks and cages destroyed and it was Tugg’s belief that his
-partner--the mysterious man I had come so far to see--had been killed
-by the natives. Making my way to Punta Arenas, to take a steamship for
-home, feeling that my impulsiveness had delayed my return to my mother
-unnecessarily, I fell in again with the Scarboro.
-
-To my surprise I found aboard of her, under the name of “Bodfish,” my
-cousin, Paul Downes. Fearing punishment for cutting my sloop adrift,
-when his crime became known, Paul had run away from home and had worked
-his way as far as Buenos Ayres on a Bayne Line Steamship. There Captain
-Rogers of the whaling bark had found him in a crimp’s place and had
-bailed him out and taken him aboard the Scarboro. Paul didn’t like
-his job, and demanded that I pay his fare home on the steamship, but
-I believed that a few months’ experience with the whalers would do my
-cousin no harm, and should have refused his demand even had I had money
-enough for both our fares. The details of these adventures are related
-in full in the first volume of this series, entitled, “Swept Out to
-Sea; or, Clint Webb Among the Whalers.”
-
-Because I refused to aid Paul he threatened again to “get square,” and
-he certainly made good his threat. I was to remain but two nights at
-Punta Arenas and had already paid my passage as far as Buenos Ayres
-on the Dundee Castle; but Paul got in with some men from the sealing
-steamer, Gypsey Girl, and they shanghaied me aboard, together with a
-lad from Georgia, Thankful Polk by name, who had tried to help me. Our
-adventures with the sealers, and our finding of the whaleship Firebrand
-frozen in the ice and deserted by her crew after her cargo of oil was
-complete, is related in number two of the series, entitled, “The Frozen
-Ship; or, Clint Webb Among the Sealers.”
-
-During those adventures I learned that Adoniram Tugg’s partner,
-Professor Vose, escaped death at the hands of the Patagonians, had
-joined forces with the animal catcher again, and in the Sea Spell they
-likewise had sought and found the frozen ship and her valuable cargo.
-Professor Vose boarded the abandoned ship and remained by her when the
-Sea Spell lost most of her spars and top-hamper and Tugg was obliged to
-beat into port to be refitted. Meanwhile, from the deck of the Gypsey
-Girl, I saw the vast field of ice and bergs in which the Firebrand was
-frozen break up in a gale; was horrified by the overwhelming of the
-frozen ship, and had the evidence of my own eyes that, whether the
-mysterious man in whom I was so greatly interested was merely Vose,
-Jim Carver, or my own father, he had sunk with the Firebrand under the
-avalanche of ice.
-
-Later the captain of the Gypsey Girl, a Russ named Sergius, and
-Thankful Polk and I were lost from the sealing steamer and are picked
-up by the Scarboro which was on her way to Valpariso to refit after the
-gales she had suffered on the South Pacific whaling grounds. Captain
-Rogers, knowing my exceeding anxiety to return home, got a chance for
-Thank and I to work our passage on the Gullwing, which was just setting
-sail from Valpariso as the Scarboro arrived at that port.
-
-And here we were on the deck of the handsome schooner, homeward
-bound; but before I had been here half an hour, it seemed, my ill-luck
-had followed me. I was enmeshed in a quarrel with the bully of the
-fo’castle, and could look forward to suffering a most finished
-trouncing when the sails were all set, the deck cleared, and the
-captain’s watch was piped below.
-
-“I’ve got a good mind to give one of the mates warning,” muttered
-Thank, in my ear, as the bully went grumbling away at some call to
-duty by the dapper little second mate, whom I already judged to be Mr.
-Barney.
-
-“Don’t you dare!” I admonished. “That’s no way to start. We’d have all
-the men down on us, then. And we don’t know how many weeks we may have
-to sail with them aboard of this windjammer.”
-
-When they began to clear up the litter made by the work of getting
-under weigh, Thank and I saw where we could lend a hand, and we
-did so. We learned, by talking with the men, that the Gullwing was
-short-handed, and that is why Captain Bowditch, shrewd old Down East
-skipper as he was, had so willingly given two rugged boys, with some
-knowledge of seamanship, their passage home. Two men had deserted
-at Honolulu, and another had to be taken ashore to the hospital at
-Valpariso.
-
-The ship, we learned, was well found, and the men gave the officers a
-good name. Most of the crew had been with her more than this one trip.
-She was owned by the Baltimore firm of Barney, Blakesley & Knight, and
-her run had been out from her home port, touching at Buenos Ayres, at
-Valpariso and thence on to Honolulu and from there to Manila. On her
-return voyage she made Honolulu again, Valpariso, and now hoped to not
-drop her anchor until she reached the Virginia Capes.
-
-It was the captain’s watch that was short and we were turned
-over to Mr. Barney, the smart young second mate. He was a natty,
-five-foot-nothing man, whom, if he had voted once, that was as much as
-he’d ever done! But the men jumped when he spoke to them, and he had a
-blue eye that went right through you and Thank declared--made the links
-of your vertebrae loosen.
-
-Meanwhile the Gullwing began to travel. Unless one has stood upon
-the deck of a great sailing ship, and looked up into the sky full of
-sails that spread above her, it is hard to realize how fast such a
-craft can travel through the sea under a fair wind. Many a seaworthy
-steamship would have been glad to make the speed that the Gullwing did
-right then, with but a fairly cheerful breeze. She made a long tack
-to seaward and then a short leg back, and in that time the Valpariso
-roadstead was below the horizon and the outline of the Chilean coast
-was but a faint, gray haze from the deck.
-
-We went below, leaving the mate’s watch to finish the job. “Now for
-it,” I thought, for Bully Bob had kept his eye on me most of the
-time, and he crowded down the stairs behind me when I entered the
-well-lighted and clean fo’castle of the four-stick schooner. I expected
-he might try to take me foul; for I knew what sort of fighters these
-deep-sea ruffians were. As a whole the crew of the schooner seemed much
-above the average; but I believed Bob Promise needed a good thrashing
-and I wished with all my heart that I were able to give it to him.
-
-But if I could keep him off--make him fight with his fists alone--I
-believed I at least might put up so good a fight that the other men
-would interfere when they considered Bob had given me my lesson. I
-hated the thought of being knocked down and stamped on, or kicked about
-the fo’castle floor. I had seen two of the men fight aboard the Gypsey
-Girl and a more brutal exhibition I never hope to witness.
-
-So I kept my eye on Bob, as he watched me, and drew off my coat and
-tightened my belt the moment I got below.
-
-“Getting ready for that beating are you?” he demanded, with an evil
-smile.
-
-“I hope you won’t insist,” I said. “But if I’ve got to take it, I
-suppose I must. All I have to say, is, that I hope you other men will
-see fair play.”
-
-“You can lay to that, younker,” declared the big fellow who had held
-the wheel. He was an old man, but as powerful as a gorilla. “Give ’em
-room, boys, and don’t interfere.”
-
-Scarcely had he spoken when the bully made for me. His intention was,
-quite evidently, to catch me around the waist, pinion my arms, and
-throw me. But I determined to be caught by no such wrestler’s trick.
-The ship was sailing on an even keel and I was light of foot. Just
-before the bully reached me I stepped aside and drove my right fist
-with all my might into his neck as he passed me.
-
-Goodness! but he went down with a crash. Big as he was I had fairly
-lifted him from his feet. The men roared with delight, and slapped
-their thighs and each other’s backs. I could see that they were
-going to enjoy this set-to if I lasted any length of time against my
-antagonist.
-
-“Hold on!” I cried, before Bob Promise had managed to pick himself
-up, and believing that my first blow had won me the sympathy of the
-majority. “This man has all the advantage of weight and age over me. If
-he’ll stand up and fight clean with his fists, I’ll do my best to meet
-him. But I won’t stand for rough work, or clinches. He’ll best me in a
-minute, wrestling.”
-
-“The boy speaks true,” declared the hairy man. “And I tell you what,
-mates. It ain’t clear in my mind what the fight’s about, or who’s in
-the wrong. But the lad shall have his way. If you try to grab him, or
-use your feet, Bob, I’ll pull you off him with my own two hands and
-break you in two! Mark that, now.”
-
-“Hurrah!” cried the irrepressible Thank. “Go to it, Sharp! I believe
-you can win out.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER III
-
-_In Which the Bubble of My Conceit Is Pricked_
-
-
-Now this is no place to report the details of a fight of this
-character. It is all well and good for a boy to learn to box; it is
-one of the cleanest sports there is. It teaches one to be quick of
-eye and foot, inculcates courage, gives even a naturally timid person
-confidence, and aids wind and muscle. But the game should be played
-only with soft gloves--never with bare fists.
-
-Maybe once or twice in the average boy’s life will he need the
-knowledge gained in the gymnasium to save himself from a beating. I
-think now I should have sidestepped this trouble with Bob Promise, and
-could have done so with no loss of honor or self-respect.
-
-But as I saw how lubberly the fellow was, and how clumsy he was on his
-feet, I was fired with the conceit that I had a chance to hold my own
-in the contest. And so I did.
-
-I passed my watch to Thank and claimed two-minute rounds; he acted as
-timekeeper while the gorilla man was referee. We fought altogether
-five rounds, and during that time my antagonist only managed to reach
-me half a dozen times, and only once did he knock me to the deck.
-
-I was pretty fresh at the end of this time, while Bob was blowing like
-a porpoise, I had closed one of his eyes, and his face was bleeding
-where my knuckles had cut him deeply. During the last round I noticed
-that the men had kept mighty quiet, and as the big fellow stepped in
-between us when Thank announced the end of the round, I saw Mr. Barney,
-the second mate, standing behind me.
-
-“I reckon that’s enough, boys,” said the little second mate,
-good-naturedly enough. “They’re not matched by the rules you are
-following. This young fellow will soon have Bob groggy. The boy’s got
-all the science and Bob has no show.”
-
-This was putting it in a light that vexed me. I had thought _I_ was the
-one to earn sympathy, not the bully.
-
-“Why,” I complained, “he pitched on me for nothing. And he outweighs me
-thirty pound.”
-
-“And you outweigh _me_ twenty pound, you young bantam, you!” laughed
-the second mate. “Come! I’m a better match for you than Bob is.”
-
-I flushed pretty red at that, for although I saw Mr. Barney was a man
-to respect, I did not think he handled his watch by the weight of his
-muscle.
-
-“If you don’t think so, put up your hands again, and we’ll try a bout,”
-said Mr. Barney, still laughing. “If you give me the kind of an eye Bob
-has, I won’t chalk it up against you. The boys will tell you that if
-there’s anything aboard the old Gullwing, it’s fair dealing.”
-
-“And that’s right for ye, Mr. Barney!” exclaimed the gorilla man. Then
-he winked at me. “Hit him as hard as ye kin, boy!” he whispered.
-
-“Come on,” said the mate, buttoning his jacket tight and taking his
-position. “You won’t have to fight the whole crew to get a standing.”
-
-I saw he meant it, and I knew by his smile that he was a fair-minded
-man and wished me no harm. I secretly thought, too, that I was as good
-as he was.
-
-“Time!” called Thank, rather shakily.
-
-The very next second something happened to me that I hadn’t expected. I
-thought I could parry his first blow, at least; but it landed under my
-jaw and every tooth in my head rattled. I leaped back and he followed
-me up with a swiftness that made me blink.
-
-I parried several more swift blows and then hit out myself when I
-thought I saw my chance. He just moved his head a trifle to one side
-and my fist shot by. My whole weight went with it and I collided
-against him. He only rocked a little on his feet, and as I dodged back
-he struck me a blow on the chest that drove me half a dozen yards into
-the arms of the spectators.
-
-“If I had placed that higher up--as I might--you would have been
-asleep, my lad,” he said, coolly. “Don’t you believe it?”
-
-“I do, sir,” I said, panting.
-
-“I am just as much better than you, as you are than Bob,” he said,
-laughing again. “He has no science and you have a little. But I have
-more science and so we’re not fairly matched. And now, boys, that’s fun
-enough for to-day,” and he turned on his heel and went up on deck.
-
-I tell you right now, I felt pretty foolish. But the men didn’t laugh.
-The big man, whom I learned later was Tom Thornton, said:
-
-“He’s a smart little bit of a man, is Mr. Jim Barney. You might be
-proud to be put out by him.”
-
-“Excuse me!” I returned, feeling to see if all my teeth were sound.
-“No kicking mule has got anything on him when he hits you.”
-
-“And his brother Alf, on the Seamew, is a match for him,” said another
-of the men. “There’s a pair of them--brothers and twins, and as much
-alike as two peas in a pod. I mind the time they was looking for some
-men down in a joint on Front Street, Baltimore, and a gang started in
-to clean ’em up. Thought they was dudes trying to be rounders. The
-Barney boys held off a dozen of them till the police came, and neither
-of them even showed a scratch.”
-
-I pulled myself together and went over to Bob, who was swabbing his
-face in a bucket of water. I held out my hand to him, and said:
-
-“The second mate was right. If we’d fought rough and tumble you could
-have easily fixed me. But you’ve got lots of muscle and I bet that
-second mate doesn’t sail without a set of gloves in his cabin. If he’ll
-lend ’em to us I’ll teach you what little I know myself about boxing.”
-
-“That’s fair enough!” shouted Tom Thornton. “The boy’s all right.”
-
-“I’m game,” growled Bob, giving me his hand. “But I don’t like fresh
-kids.”
-
-“That’s all right,” said I. “Mebbe I’ll get salted a little before the
-voyage is over.”
-
-And so the affair ended in a laugh. But I guess I learned one lesson
-that I was not likely to forget in a hurry.
-
-And both Thankful Polk and I had a whole lot to learn about this big
-ship. Although my chum had been five years from home (leaving his
-native village in the hills of Georgia when he was twelve) he had
-learned little seamanship. Nowadays ships do not receive apprentices as
-they used to in the palmy days of the American merchant marine, which
-is a regrettable fact, for it was from the class of apprentices that
-most of our best shipmasters came.
-
-A seaman--a real A. B.--must know every part of the ship he serves,
-its rigging and whatnot, just as any other journeyman tradesman must
-know his business. It is not necessary that an able seaman should be
-a navigator; but every navigator should be an able seaman. Such a man
-likewise should be something of a sailmaker, rigger and shipbuilder. In
-these days when the work of a crew is so divided that men are stationed
-at certain work in all weathers few men before the mast are all-round
-seamen. And this is likewise regrettable.
-
-In the months I had spent upon the Scarboro I had learned much--and in
-that I had the advantage of Thank. Captain Rogers and Mr. Robbins were
-both thorough-going seamen, and when we were not chasing whales I had
-been drilled by the mate, and by young Ben Gibson, the second officer,
-in the ropes, the spars, the handling of gear, and taught to take my
-trick at the wheel with the best man aboard.
-
-And I was thankful for all this now, for although the Gullwing was a
-much larger ship, and differently rigged from the whaler, I could catch
-hold now pretty well when an order was given. I knew, too, that men
-like Captain Bowditch and Mr. Gates and Mr. Barney liked their hands to
-be smart, and I was not afraid to tackle anything alow or aloft.
-
-The men told me, too, that “the old man” (which is a term given
-the captain aboard ship not at all disrespectful in meaning) was a
-terror for crowding on sail. Besides, there was a deeper reason for
-Captain Bowditch wishing to put his ship through the seas and reaching
-Baltimore just as soon as possible.
-
-“Ye see,” said old Tom Thornton, in the dog-watch that afternoon, “the
-firm owns another ship like the Gullwing--the very spittin’ image of
-it--the Seamew. They’re sister ships; built in the same dockyard, at
-the same time, and by the very same plans. A knee, or a deck plank,
-out o’ either one would fit exactly into the similar space in the
-other--and vicy varsy.
-
-“They was put into commission the same month, and they make the same
-v’yges, as usual. Cap’n Si Somes, of the Seamew is about the same
-age as our skipper. They was raised together down east; they went to
-sea together in their first ship. And they got their tickets at the
-same time, since which they’ve always served in different ships, one
-mounting a notch when the other did. Rivals, ye’d call them, but good
-friends.
-
-“But they’re always and forever trying to best each other in a v’yge.
-They races from the minute they cast off moorings at Baltimore to the
-minute they’re towed inter their berths again. They crowd on sail, and
-work their crews like kildee, and stow their cargoes, and unload the
-same like they was racin’ against time. And now, this trip, they’ve got
-a wager up,” and old Tom chuckled.
-
-“It was this here way: We battened down hatches the same morning the
-Seamew did at Baltimore, and the tugs was a-swinging of us out. Cap’n
-Si sung out from his poop: ‘Joe! I bet ye an apple I tie up here afore
-you do when the v’yge is over.’
-
-“‘I take ye,’ says our skipper, ‘pervidin’ it’s a Rhode Islan’
-Greenin’--I ain’t sunk my teeth into no other kind for forty year--it’s
-the kind I got my first stomach-ache from eatin’ green, when I was a
-kid.’
-
-“And that settled it. The bet was on,” chuckled Tom. “And we fellers
-for’ard have suffered for it, now I tell ye! The Seamew beat us to
-Buenos Ayres by ten hours on the outward v’yge. We caught her up,
-weathered the Horn and was unloading at Valpariso when the Seamew
-arrived. But, by jinks! she beat us to Honolulu.”
-
-“How was that?” I asked.
-
-“Made a better passage. We got some top-hamper carried away in a
-squall. To tell you the truth, Cap’n Joe carried on too much sail for
-such a blow. But we weren’t long behind her at Manila, and my soul! how
-Cap’n Joe did make those Chinks work unloadin’ an’ then stowin’ cargo
-again when we started back.
-
-“The Seamew got away two days before we did. But we left Honolulu a few
-hours ahead of her, and she has to touch at Guayaquil--up in Equidor.
-As far as time and distance goes, however, both ships is about even.
-We had to unload a lot of stuff back there at Valpariso, and load
-again. Both are hopin’ not to touch nowheres till we git home. And it
-wouldn’t surprise me none if we sighted the Seamew almost any day now,
-unless she’s clawed too far off shore.”
-
-This good-natured competition between the two big ships had, I believe,
-something to do with the smart way in which the crew of this one on
-which I sailed went about their work. Jack Tar is supposed to be a
-chronic grumbler; and surely the monotony of life at sea may get on the
-nerves of the best man afloat; but I seldom heard any grumbling in the
-fo’castle of the Gullwing.
-
-However, there was another rivalry connected with this voyage of the
-sister ships--a much more serious matter--and, indeed, one that proved
-tragic in the end, but of this I was yet to learn the particulars in
-the eventful days that followed.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER IV
-
-_In Which Captain Bowditch Crowds On Sail and There Is Much Excitement_
-
-
-In writing a story of the sea--even a narrative of personal
-experiences--it is difficult to give the reader a proper idea of the
-daily life of the man before the mast. It naturally falls that the high
-lights of adventure are accentuated while the shadows of monotony are
-very faint indeed. But the sailor’s life is no sinecure.
-
-Saving on occasion the work on shipboard is not very hard. The
-watch-and-watch system followed on all ships makes the work easy in
-fair weather; and foul weather lasts but for short spells, save in
-certain portions of the two hemispheres.
-
-“Eight bells! Rise and shine!”
-
-This order, shouted into the fo’castle at four o’clock in the morning,
-roused Thankful Polk and I from our berths. No turning over for another
-nap--or for even a wink of sleep--with that command ringing in one’s
-ears. We tumbled out, got into our outer clothing, ran our fingers
-through our hair (no chance for any fancy toilets at this hour) and
-went on deck with the other members of the captain’s watch.
-
-There was plenty of light by which to chore around, and Mr. Barney’s
-sharp voice kept us stirring until five when we lined up at the galley
-door and each man got a tin of hot coffee--and good coffee it was too,
-aboard the Gullwing. Then buckets and brooms was the order and the
-ship began to be slopped and scrubbed from the bowsprit to the rudder
-timbers. No housewife was ever half as thorough as we had to be to
-satisfy Mr. Barney and the old man. Thank and I learned that Captain
-Bowditch made a tour of the deck every morning after breakfast, and if
-there had been any part of the work skimped he would call up the watch
-and have the whole job done over again.
-
-“But that don’t happen more’n once on a v’yage,” chuckled Tom Thornton,
-working beside us. “The feller that skips any part of the work he’s set
-to do on this here packet, gets to be mighty onpopular with his mates.”
-
-Thus warned, we two boys were very careful with our share of the
-scrubbing--and likewise the coiling down of ropes which followed. I can
-assure the reader that, when we were through, everything in sight was
-as spick and span as it could be--every stain was holystoned from the
-deck, the white paint glistened, and the brasswork shone.
-
-At seven-thirty the watch below was given breakfast and at four
-bells--eight o’clock--we were relieved and went below to our own
-breakfast; and that was not a bad meal aboard the Gullwing. There are
-no fancy dishes tacked onto Jack Tar’s bill of fare--nor does he expect
-it; but on this ship food was served with some regard to decency.
-
-On the Gypsey Girl “souse” was served in a bucket, set down in the
-middle of the long fo’castle table, and every man scooped his cup into
-the mess, broke in his hardtack, and inhaled it a good deal after the
-style of a pig at a trough. But for breakfast on this ship there was
-more good coffee, tack that was not mouldy and scraps of meat and
-potatoes fried together--a hearty, satisfying meal.
-
-Each man washed and put away his own cup, plate and knife and fork.
-Some used their gulleys, or sheath-knives; but Thank and I had brought
-aboard proper table tools in our dunnage bags. After the breakfast
-was cleared away, and the fo’castle itself tidied up, the watch below
-busied itself in mending, sock darning, and such like odd jobs. A
-sailor has got to be his own tailor, seamstress and housewife; and
-even such a horny-handed and tar-fingered giant as Tom Thornton was
-mighty handy with his needle and “sailor’s palm.”
-
-Some of the men shaved at this time, one cut another’s hair and trimmed
-his beard. The crew of the Gullwing respected themselves; the deck of
-the fo’castle was kept as well scrubbed as the deck above. Nobody came
-to the table without having scrubbed his face and hands clean; nor was
-the men’s clothing foul with tar or the grease of the running gear.
-They may all have been “sword-swallowers” when it came to “stowing
-their cargo ’tween hatches,” but cleanliness was the order, and the
-ordinary decencies of life were not ignored. These men may not have
-been particularly strong on etiquette, and were not “parlor broke,”
-as the saying is; but they were neat, accommodating, cheerful, and if
-they skylarked some, it was fun of a good-natured kind and was not
-objectionable.
-
-I liked old Tom Thornton, for despite the cast in his eye, and his
-gorilla-like appearance, he was good hearted. He was just about
-covered with tattooing, I reckon. As he said, if he’d wanted to take
-any more indigo into his system he’d have to swallow it! Most of the
-work had been done on him by a South Sea Islander who had sailed in
-whaling ships and the like and made a little “on the side” by tattooing
-pictures on foolish sailors.
-
-“’Taint done now, no more,” old Tom said, shaking his head. “But when
-I was a youngster it was the fashion. Poor Jack can’t afford to buy
-picters and have a family portrait gallery, or the like. But he used to
-be strong for art,” and the old man grinned.
-
-“I was wrecked with this here nigger-man I tell you about. About all he
-saved from the wreck was his colors and bone needles, and the patterns
-he outlined his figgers from. We was held prisoner on that blamed reef,
-living on stuff from the wreck, for three months. There wasn’t nothing
-else to do. His tattooing me kept him from going crazy, and the smart
-of the thing kept me alive. So there you have it--tit for tat! He never
-charged me nothing for his work, neither, and I allus was a great lad
-for gittin’ a good deal for my money.”
-
-Tom’s legs were mural paintings of serpents and sea monsters. He had
-anklets and bracelets worked in red and blue. On his back was a picture
-of three gallows with a man hanging in chains from the middle one. I
-believe that it was the ignorant South Sea native’s idea of the story
-of Calvary, for there was the typical cross and crown worked above
-it at the back of Tom’s neck. The mermaid on Tom’s chest could have
-won a job as fat woman with a traveling circus; but then, Tom had an
-enormous chest which had given the tattooer plenty of space to work on.
-Around his waist was tattooed a belt like a lattice-work fence. When he
-stripped to “sluice down,” as he called his daily bath, he looked as
-gay as a billboard.
-
-At ten o’clock (six bells) of the forenoon watch most of the watch
-below turned in for a nap, and at half past eleven we answered the
-call to dinner. At noon we were on duty again until four o’clock. In
-pleasant weather this afternoon watch is a mighty easy one. Besides the
-man at the wheel and the two on lookout, the others haven’t much to do
-but tell stories, play checkers, or read. As long as everything was
-neat and shipshape the old man did not hound us to work at odd jobs as
-some masters do.
-
-From four to eight p. m. the time is divided into two dog-watches,
-although the second half of that spell is the actual dog-watch. “Dog”
-is a corruption of “dodge,” the object of this division being to make
-an even number of watches to the twenty-four hours so that there
-will be a daily changing or shifting, thus dodging the routine. For
-example, the watch that goes below one day at noon will the next day
-come on deck at that hour.
-
-At five-thirty our watch had supper and at six we took the deck once
-more until eight o’clock. Then we could sleep until midnight and from
-thence had the watch until four in the morning. It is a monotonous
-round--especially in fair weather. We were like to welcome a bit of a
-blow now and then, although the Gullwing was such a big ship, and her
-crew was so small, that all hands had to turn out to shorten or make
-sail. On some ships this fact would have made the crew ugly but these
-boys had even a good word for the cook or “doctor,” and usually Jack
-looks upon that functionary as his natural enemy.
-
-But during those first few days of the run down the coast of Chile it
-was seldom that we were called on to shorten sail. Captain Bowditch
-was living up to his reputation; the Gullwing foamed along through the
-short green seas with every sail she would bear spread to the favoring
-gale. With her four whole sails on the lower spars and all her jibs
-set, she spread a vast amount of canvas to the wind. And the only
-changes we made were in her topsails. Those the skipper kept spread
-every moment that he dared; and it took a pretty strong gust to make
-him give the order to reef down.
-
-When he left the deck himself, either day or night, he instructed his
-mates to call him before they took in an inch of cloth. And Mr. Gates
-and Mr. Barney were just as hungry for speed, as the old man. The
-Gullwing was heavily laden, but there was probably few stiffer vessels
-at sea that day than she. With plenty of ballast there was no gale or
-no sea that could capsize her.
-
-She took cheerfully all the wind and all the sea could give her. A
-little loose water flopping around her deck didn’t trouble Captain
-Bowditch. “Tarpaulin her hatches, clamp ’em down, and let her roll!”
-had been his order when we had got well away from our anchorage at
-Valpariso. We had good weather, however, as I have said, for some days.
-
-Then suddenly, one afternoon in the first dog-watch, it came on to
-blow. Carefully as the captain watched the glass, I do not think this
-squall was foretold. A more cautious navigator might have been better
-prepared for a squall. He wouldn’t have had his topsails spread in
-any such gale as had been blowing. And when all hands were called to
-go aloft, the wind shrieked down upon us and the foretopsail and two
-staysails were blown clean out of the boltropes before the men could
-get at them.
-
-“What are ye about, ye sawneys!” yelled Captain Bowditch, dancing up
-and down on the deck and shaking his fists at the men above. “Save
-my sails for me! Think I’m _made_ o’ sailcloth? And them right new
-fixin’s, too! Git busy there!”
-
-Oh, we were busy! I had been sent aloft and so had Thank. We were
-nimble enough in the shrouds; but we were not as smart about handling
-the stiff canvas as some. I found my chum beside me as we hauled down
-the stiff canvas upon the spar, and threw ourselves upon the folds to
-hold them till they could be secured.
-
-“My law-dee!” gasped the Georgian boy, grinning. “Jest as lives try to
-pin an apron around the waist of a baby hippopotamus--what?”
-
-I saw his wet, red, grinning face for a moment looking across at me.
-Then, suddenly, the ship keeled over, the rope on which we stood
-overhung those leaping, green, froth-streaked waves--waves which seemed
-hungrily trying to lap our feet. Thank disappeared! Something gave way,
-his weight left the sail to me alone. And perhaps, fearful for my chum,
-I bore off the canvas myself to look for him.
-
-The next instant I was cast back by the wind tearing under the canvas
-and lifting it in a great balloon.
-
-“Swish--r-r-rip!”
-
-Like a banshee on a broomstick that sail kited off to leeward, and I
-was left hanging desperately to the shrouds, with the wind booming in
-my ears so that I could not even hear the angry roaring of the skipper
-below.
-
-And all the time this question kept thumping in my head: “Where was
-Thankful Polk?”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER V
-
-_In Which We See a Ship Sailing in the Sky_
-
-
-I had forgotten my own peril. Indeed, so disturbed was I for the moment
-for my chum’s safety that I cared nothing for the lost sail. I yelled
-for Thank at the top of my voice, though doubtless the shrieking of
-the wind drowned all sound of my cries. And Thank, for all I knew, was
-already far to leeward, fighting in that tempestuous sea.
-
-And then suddenly, through a rift in the flying spray that stung my
-face so cruelly and almost blinded me, I beheld something swinging from
-the ropes on which I stood. The ship was almost on her beam-ends and
-the waves broke just below me. There Thank hung by his foot, which had
-twisted in the ropes and was held firm, his head and shoulders buried
-in the foaming sea at every plunge of the laboring Gullwing!
-
-I shrieked again and, clinging with one hand with a desperate grip, I
-sought to seize him as he swung, pendulum-like, to and fro. _I could
-not reach him._
-
-But now the brave ship was righting herself. We rose higher and higher
-from the leaping waves. Thank swung back and forth and, as we came
-inboard, I feared he would batter his poor brains out against the wire
-cables, or against some spar.
-
-He was unconscious. He was helpless. And it seemed as though I was
-helpless as well. Those few momentous seconds showed me plainly how
-deeply I loved the youth who had been my comrade in adventure and labor
-and peril during these last few months. I had never had a chum before
-of my own age--not one whom I had really cottoned to. Thank was as dear
-to me as a brother would have been.
-
-As we rose higher and higher another fear smote me. If his foot
-loosened now and he fell, he would be dashed to death upon the deck
-below. In my struggles my hand found a loose rope. I hauled it in
-quickly, hung to the spar by my elbows while I formed a noose in the
-end, and was unsuccessfully trying to get this over Thank’s head and
-shoulders when another man sprang to the footrope beside me.
-
-“Git down there and grab him!” yelled this individual in my ear. “I’ll
-hold you both.”
-
-It was Bob Promise and although he was the man aboard whom I least
-liked, he was an angel of mercy to me just then. I knew his muscle and
-vigor. With one hand he clung to the rope and seized my belt with his
-other paw. I knew that belt would hold, and I swung myself, without
-question, head-downward.
-
-It was only for a moment that he had to be under the strain of all my
-weight and Thank’s as well. Then I had scrambled back to the footrope,
-and held my chum in the hollow of my arm. Thank was half drowned,
-but his eyes opened and he gasped out something or other before Bob
-steadied us both again upon the footrope. Later I realized that he
-tried to say, in his cheerful way: “That’s all right, Sharp!”
-
-Between us Bob and I managed to get him down to the deck. We should not
-have been able to do that without a sling had the squall not passed
-away and left the old Gullwing once more on a comparatively level keel.
-
-When we landed upon the deck boards, Thank managed to stand erect. And
-we three shook hands with a sort of grim satisfaction. I don’t think
-any of us ever spoke of the event thereafter, and our mates had not
-seen our peril, but we three were not likely to forget it.
-
-The old man was still careening around the quarter, like a hen on a hot
-skillet, fussing about the lost sails. And scarcely had the squall
-passed when he was ordering up new ones to replace those that had been
-lost. We went to work bending on the fresh sails while it was yet
-blowing so hard that most captains would have kept their crews out of
-the rigging.
-
-I began to see that Tom Thornton had not been joking when he said that
-the men were paying the penalty for the skipper’s betting an apple
-with Captain Si Somes, of the Seamew. Had it been a thousand dollars
-at stake, Captain Bowditch would have been no more earnest in his
-determination to beat the Gullwing’s sister ship.
-
-But the wind was little more than a stiff gale when the new sails were
-set and the ripping repaired. We drove along until night and then the
-air became very light. During the night a fog began to gather and when
-our watch was called at eight bells in the morning it was pretty thick.
-
-“Looks like a Cape Horn soup,” growled old Tom, as he stepped on deck.
-“Though we’re a good bit of a ways from that latitude yet.”
-
-As we stumbled around the deck, doing that everlasting cleaning up
-that Mr. Barney watched so sharply, the fog began to thin and waver.
-Somewhere overhead there was a breeze; but it was pretty near a dead
-calm down here on the deck of the Gullwing.
-
-By the time the sun began to glow upon the edge of the sea, looking
-like a great argand lamp in the fog; overhead the billows of mist were
-rolling in imitation of the long, swinging swell of the sea itself.
-At first those billows in the sky glowed in purple, and rose hues,
-ever changing, magnificently beautiful! It was a seascape long to be
-remembered.
-
-The sun rose higher. Its rays shot through the rolling mist like
-arrows. Now and then the breeze breathed on our sails and the Gullwing
-forged ahead at a better pace. The fog left us. We were sailing in an
-open space, it seemed, with the mist bank encircling us at a distance
-on a few cable-lengths, and the billows still rolling high above the
-points of our masts.
-
-And then, to the westward, the curtains rolled back as it seemed for
-the scene that had been set for us. Like the stage of a great theatre,
-this setting of cloud and mist and heaving sea appeared, and there,
-sailing with her keel in the clouds, and her tapering masts and shaking
-sails pointing seaward, was a beautiful, misty, four-stick schooner.
-
-“What do you know about that?” demanded Thankful Polk. “Do you see what
-I see, Sharp, or have I ‘got ’em?’ That ship’s upside down.”
-
-“It’s a mirage,” I murmured.
-
-“It’s a Jim Hickey of a sight, whatever the right name of it is,” he
-rejoined.
-
-Everybody else on deck was aware of the mirage, and a chorus of
-exclamations arose from the watch.
-
-“It’s the Gullwing herself!” ejaculated Bob Promise. “Of course it is!
-It’s a four-sticker.”
-
-“How do you make that out?” demanded Thank. “I know derned well _I_
-ain’t standing on my head, whatever you be.”
-
-“It’s her reflection, sawney!” said somebody else.
-
-“Oh! well I reckoned that I knew whether I was on my head, or my
-heels,” chuckled the boy from Georgia.
-
-But I had been watching the mirage very sharply. I knew just what sails
-were set upon the Gullwing, and I counted those upon the ship in the
-sky. Misty as the reflection was I could distinguish them plainly. And
-suddenly I saw a movement among those sails. _Sharply defined figures
-of men swarmed into her rigging._
-
-“That’s not the Gullwing at all!” I shouted.
-
-“That boy’s right,” said Mr. Barney sharply, coming out of the
-afterhouse with his glass, and with the captain right behind him.
-“You’ve got good eyes on you, Webb.”
-
-“By jinks! It’s the Seamew!” roared our skipper, the moment he set his
-eyes upon the mirage. “And if she’s sailing that way, she’ll never beat
-us to the Capes of Virginia.”
-
-A roar of laughter greeted this joke. But the ship in the sky began
-immediately to fade away, and it had soon disappeared, while the wind
-freshened with us and we forged ahead still faster. When the fog
-completely disappeared there was not a sail in sight anywhere on that
-sea, although Mr. Barney went into the tops himself and searched the
-horizon with a glass.
-
-But I know that they made a note of the appearance on the log. Some of
-the sailors thought the Seamew couldn’t be far from us, either head
-or astern; but I knew that the mirage might have reflected our sister
-ship hundreds of miles away. The incident gave us a deal to talk about,
-however, and an added savor to the race we were sailing half around the
-globe.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VI
-
-_In Which the Gullwing Suffers a Ghostly Visitation_
-
-
-“The words of Agur, the son of Jaketh.... There be three things which
-are too wonderful for me, yea, four which I know not: The way of an
-eagle in the air, the way of a serpent upon a rock, _the way of a ship
-in the midst of the sea_....”
-
-That old fellow whose wise sayings make up the final chapter of the
-Book of Proverbs had a deal of experience and knowledge; but navigation
-was a mystery to him. And to see a great ship sailing straight away on
-her course, in the midst of the sea, without a sign of land anywhere
-about, is like to make one think of the wonder of it.
-
-We picked up many a sail after the mirage of our sister ship, during
-the next few days; but none of them were the Seamew. The wind increased
-and the Gullwing went snoring through green seas, her bow in a smother
-of foam and a good deal of loose water inboard on occasion. But that
-did not bother the captain. We were speeding up toward the Horn and
-little else mattered.
-
-We were getting into a colder latitude, too. Now we were down about to
-the line where the Gypsey Girl had steamed in and out of the channels
-after seals. But we never saw the land. The Gullwing was keeping well
-off shore.
-
-The keen wind blew a fitful gale. We were glad to get into the lee of
-the deck-houses when we were on duty. Thanks to Captain Rogers of the
-Scarboro, however, my chum and I were well dressed for colder weather;
-but we got each a suit of tarpaulins and hip boots from Captain
-Bowditch, for we had not owned them. We could safely dress in these
-water-shedding garments every watch above, when the weather was not
-fair; for the schooner was bound to ship a deal of suds.
-
-In our watch besides old Tom Thornton, was another ancient mariner, and
-the only man not an American born aboard the Gullwing--August Stronson.
-He was a queer, gentle old man with the marks of dissipation strong
-upon his face, although most of his spare time below he sat and read a
-well-thumbed Swedish Bible. He was a man in whom Alcohol had taken a
-strangle hold on Will. A more than ordinarily good seaman, when ashore
-he soon became a derelict along the docks, finally ending in some
-mission or bethel where he would be straightened out and a berth found
-for him again. He was only safe aboard ship. Eternally sailing about
-the Seven Seas was his salvation.
-
-He was aboard the Gullwing, as Thank and I were, merely by chance. And
-his reason for wishing to make the port of Baltimore was a curious
-one--yet one that gives a sidelight upon the sailor’s character. As a
-usual thing, Jack is grateful to anybody who does him a kindness, and
-he does not often forget a favor done him. Besides, he prides himself
-on “being square.” Yet it seemed to me that old Stronson was carrying
-that trait farther than most seamen.
-
-He had been picked up at Honolulu by Cap-Bowditch, after the two
-men before mentioned had deserted the Gullwing to go with a native
-trader into the South Seas. Stronson had already traveled by one craft
-and another from Australia and would have traveled, when he reached
-Baltimore, all of ten thousand miles to see just one man. He told me
-this story in one watch below and I think it worth repeating.
-
-“Captain Sowle, who iss de superintendent of that mission where dey
-iss so goot to sailormans, lend me a dollar five years ago when I was
-sick. I ban goin’ to pay dat dollar, me! I ban going to Baltimore to
-pay him.”
-
-“But why didn’t you send it to him by mail?” I asked the old fellow.
-
-“Captain Sowle, gif me dat dollar in his own hand, and I haf to give it
-back to him mit mine. I could nefer forget his kindness--no. In many
-foreign ports I thought of him--how goot he wass. I long carry that
-dollar note in my shirt--yes. In Sydney I went to the sailor’s mission
-one night and heard an old song das Captain Sowle sung to me and odders
-in Baltimore. I had that dollar note I haf saved mit me den. Why! I ban
-shipwrecked once and safe only dot dollar and a jumper. Luck foller me
-mit das dollar.
-
-“I says to my mate dere in Sydney, ‘Bill,’ I says, ‘I got de old man’s
-dollar yet. Meppe he need it for de poys when he sing dot old hymn
-to-night over seas.’
-
-“‘Do you feel uneasy like?’ Bill asks me.
-
-“‘No,’ says I, ‘but I seems to hear the old man singing and I’m minding
-the old Bethel and the winter night he ban givin’ me de dollar.’
-‘Well,’ says Bill, ‘you must bring your cargo to port and get a
-discharge. You must show de old man dat you sail straight. That’s my
-verdict.’
-
-“So we shook hands undt I go find me a berth to Manila--best I can do
-just then. I makes Honolulu on a Pacific Mail; but she drops me there.
-Then I finds de Gullwing. She iss de ship for me,” added Stronson,
-smiling in his simple way. “She carry me straight for Baltimore, undt I
-pay das dollar to Captain Sowle.”
-
-Some of the men made a good deal of fun of Stronson because he was slow
-of intellect; but he was an able seaman and even the sharp-spoken Mr.
-Barney seemed to bear easy on the old man. He was stiff in his joints
-at times, for the sailor’s chief enemy, rheumatism, had got a grip
-on Stronson. Thank and I saved him many a job aloft, and in return
-he patiently set about teaching us all he knew about splicing and
-knotting--which was no small job for either the old man or for us.
-
-It was soon after this that we got the four days’ gale that I, for one,
-shall not soon forget. The wind, however, did not increase so suddenly
-as before, and Captain Bowditch took warning in time and had the small
-sails furled. But when the gale fairly struck us we had enough lower
-canvas set in all good conscience. The ship fairly reeled under the
-sudden stroke of the blast.
-
-With the wind, too, came the snow. Such a snowstorm I had not seen
-for several years, for we had had two or three mild winters in New
-England before I had gone to sea. We were forced to reef down the big
-sails, though every order from the skipper to this end was punctuated
-by groans. The canvas was stiff and the snow froze on it, and we had a
-mess. Glad was I that the work was not to be done in the tops.
-
-A smother of snow wrapped the Gullwing about and we plunged on without
-an idea as to what was in our path. The lookout forward could not see
-to the end of the jib-boom. The sea was lashed to fury and, again
-and again, a wave broke over our bows and washed the deck from stem
-to stern. To add to the wonder of it, somewhere in the depths of the
-universe above us an electrical storm raged; we could hear the sullen
-thunder rolling from horizon to horizon. At first I had thought this
-was surf on the rocks and believed we were going head-on to death and
-destruction; but the officers knew where we were and they assured us
-that the chart gave us an open sea.
-
-The decks were a mess of slush and it was dangerous to go about without
-hanging to the lifelines that checkrowed the Gullwing from forward
-of the fo’castle to the after companionway. Yet how the staunch
-craft sailed! She shook the waves off her back like a duck under a
-waterspout, and seemed to enjoy the buffeting of the sea like a thing
-alive.
-
-While the storm continued we got just such food as we could grab in our
-fists. Nothing was safe on the table. The doctor kept the coffee hot
-in some magic way; yet there were times when the ship rolled so that
-the lids flew off his stove and the fire was dumped on the deck of the
-galley.
-
-Sixty hours and more of this sort of weather dragged past. I once said
-to Tom Thornton:
-
-“It’s a pity the skipper didn’t try for the Straits, isn’t it?”
-
-“And what would the Gullwing be doing in the Straits, in a blow like
-this, my lad?” he demanded. “A big ship like her in that narrow way has
-little chance in a storm. The tail of such a gale as this would heave
-her on the rocks. There’s not seaway enough there for anything bigger
-than a bugeye canoe.”
-
-“But the Scarboro made a fair course through it,” I said.
-
-“That greaser!” snorted the old A. B. “She can loaf along as she
-pleases. Sea-anchor, if there’s a bit of a gale. But the Windjammer
-has to make time. These days the big sailin’ ships hafter compete with
-them dirty steam tramps. We can’t risk bein’ becalmed in any narrow
-waterway--no, sir!”
-
-It was on the fourth night, with the wind blowing a hurricane and the
-snow as thick about us as a winding-sheet, that our watch had come on
-deck at midnight. I was sent as second man with Bob Promise to the
-wheel. It took both of us to handle the steering gear when the old
-schooner kicked and plunged so.
-
-We were under close-reefed mainsail and jibs and were battling fearful
-waves. The sleet-like snow drove across her deck and all but blinded
-us. I had to keep wiping the slush off the binnacle, or the lamp would
-have been completely smothered and we could not have seen the trembling
-needle.
-
-Sometimes the officer on the quarter was hidden from our eyes, but his
-voice reached us all right:
-
-“Steady your helm! You lubbers act like your muscles were mush. Keep
-off! Can’t you hear that sail shaking? You’ll have us under sternway
-yet. Call yourselves sailors? You’re a pair of farmers! What d’ye think
-you’re doing? Plowing with a pair of steers? Steady!”
-
-Bob muttered imprecations on Mr. Barney’s head; but I knew better.
-
-“He’s nervous, that’s all,” I said. “He’s always so when the skipper
-ain’t on deck.”
-
-“All he thinks of is whether we’re beatin’ the Seamew, or not,” growled
-Bob.
-
-“I notice that bothers him,” said I. “But he hasn’t bet a Greening
-apple on the race, has he?”
-
-“It’s bigger than that, I reckon. They say it’s something betwixt him
-and his brother Alf. They’ve been sore on each other for a year or
-more.”
-
-I knew Mr. Alfred Barney was second mate of the Seamew, and I wondered
-what the trouble was between the twin brothers.
-
-But just as this moment something happened that gave our minds a slant
-in another direction. The snow squall had thinned. We could see pretty
-near the length of the deck from where we stood--Bob and I--at the
-wheel.
-
-Suddenly my mate uttered a stifled yell and his hands dropped from the
-spokes.
-
-“Looker there!” he gasped.
-
-I hung to the wheel, although a kick of the schooner near sent me on my
-head.
-
-“Catch hold here, confound you!” I bawled.
-
-“There!” he cried again, pointing with a terror stiffened arm into the
-forerigging.
-
-I saw a flash of light--a glow like that of a big incandescent lamp
-bulb. It hung for fully thirty seconds to the very tip of one of the
-fore-topmast spars. Again, another flashed upon another point of the
-rigging. Bob Promise crouched by the wheel; he fairly groveled, while I
-could hear cries and groans from many of the hands on deck.
-
-“What’s the matter with you? What is it?” I demanded, still fighting
-with the wabbling wheel alone; and I am afraid I kicked him. “Catch
-hold here!”
-
-“Corpse lights!” groaned Bob, not even resenting my foot. “We’re all
-dead men. We’re doomed.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VII
-
-_In Which Is Pictured a Race in Mid-Ocean_
-
-
-There was a snapping and crackling in the air over the laboring
-ship. It sounded as though the taut stays were giving way, one after
-another. For the moment, what Bob said about “corpse lights” I did not
-understand; I was mainly giving my attention to the wheel.
-
-But the ship came to an even keel for a minute and I was able to hold
-her on her course, and get my breath. Then I beheld the strange lights
-shining here, there, and everywhere about the rigging, and I was
-amazed. Not that I was frightened, as Bob and some of the others of
-the watch appeared to be. The sailor is a very superstitious person;
-and let him tell it, there are enough strange things happen at sea to
-convince a most philosophical mind that there is a spirit world very,
-very close to our own mundane sphere. There’s a very thin veil between
-the two, and at times that veil is torn away.
-
-But I knew in a minute that what Bob meant by “corpse lights” were
-corposant lights and were an electric display better known as “St.
-Elmo’s fire.” The lights were globular in shape, and about four inches
-in diameter. There were apparently a score of them all through the
-rigging, and they appeared at intervals of a minute, or two. The
-driving sleet could not hide them, and the fires illuminated the ship
-and the sea for some distance around her.
-
-It certainly was a queer sight, and the brilliance of the corposant
-lights was very marked. I heard Mr. Barney shouting from his station:
-
-“Keep your shirts on, you hardshells! They won’t bite--nor none o’ you
-ain’t got to go aloft to put ’em out. There’s one sure thing about them
-lights--they won’t set the rigging afire.”
-
-“Get up and take hold of this wheel, Bob,” I exclaimed, “or I’ll yell
-for help. I can’t handle her proper if she plunges again.”
-
-He got up shakingly and took hold. When the sea was sucked away from
-the bow of the Gullwing next time we held her on her course. But my
-companion was still frightened and looked at the glowing lights askance.
-
-“Holding your own there at the wheel, boys?” demanded Mr. Barney.
-
-“Aye, aye, sir!” I replied, but Bob didn’t even whisper.
-
-Suddenly the last light disappeared--as suddenly as the first had
-appeared--and immediately there was a loud explosion over our heads and
-Mr. Barney pitched down the ladder to the deck. Several of the other
-men were flung to the deck, too, and Bob gave another frightened yell
-and started forward on a dead run.
-
-He collided with Captain Bowditch, who had just shot up through the
-companionway.
-
-“What’s this, you swab?” yelled the skipper, grabbing Bob by the collar
-with one hand and seizing a rope with the other, as the ship staggered
-again. “What d’ye mean?”
-
-Then he saw Mr. Barney just scrambling to his feet.
-
-“What’s this mutinous swab been doing, sir?” added the captain.
-
-The second mate explained in a moment. But Bob suffered. The old man
-was in a towering rage because he had left his post.
-
-“You flat-footed son of a sea-cook!” he bawled, shaking Promise, big as
-he was, like a drowned kitten. “What d’ye mean by leaving the wheel?
-That boy yonder kept his place didn’t he? Scared of a light, be ye?
-Why, if a sea-sarpint came aboard that wouldn’t be no excuse for your
-leaving the helm. Git back there!”
-
-And when he started Bob aft again he accelerated his motions with a
-vigorous kick in the broad of the seaman’s back. Bob grabbed the spokes
-of the wheel, and braced himself, with a face like a thundercloud. I
-crowded down my amusement and perhaps it is well I did. The fellow was
-in no mood for enduring chaffing. When a man is both angry and scared a
-joke doesn’t appeal to him--much.
-
-I am reminded that this is a sorry scene to depict. Yet Captain
-Bowditch was a kindly man and not given to unjust punishments. And I
-believe that Bob got only what he deserved. Even terror cannot excuse
-a man for neglecting his duty, especially at sea. It is like a private
-in the ranks enduring the natural fear of a first charge against the
-enemy. No matter what he may feel in his trembling soul, for the sake
-of the example he sets the man next to him, he must crowd down that
-fear and press on!
-
-The storm had broken, however. At daylight we found that four feet of
-the fore-topmast had been snapped off short, whether by the electrical
-explosion, or by the wind, we could not tell. But that was the end
-of that bad spell of weather, thanks be! The Gullwing sailed through
-it, we spliced on a new spar, trimmed our sails, and tore on, under a
-goodly press of canvas, for the Horn.
-
-But several of the crew remained gloomy because of the “corpse lights.”
-Something was bound to happen--of course, something unlucky. The lights
-had foretold it. And Stronson, with Tom Thornton and other of the old
-salts, told weird tales in the dog-watch.
-
-In spite of the hurricane we had made good time in this run from
-Valparaiso. As far as I could see, however, nothing momentous happened
-at once; and the next important incident that went down in the ship’s
-log was the sighting of the Seamew.
-
-We really saw her this time--“in the flesh,” not a ghostly mirage. She
-came out of the murk of fog to the south’ard at dawn and, far away as
-she was, the lookout identified her.
-
-“Seamew, ahoy!” he yelled.
-
-It brought all hands upon deck--even the mate himself who had just
-turned in, and the captain, too. There the sister of the Gullwing
-sailed, her canvas spread to the freshening morning breeze, her prow
-throwing off two high foamy waves as she tacked toward us.
-
-She was on one tack; we were on the other. Therefore we were
-approaching each other rapidly. And what a sight! If a marine artist
-could have painted the picture of that beautiful ship, with her
-glistening paint, and pearl-tinted sails, and her lithe masts and taut
-cordage, he would have had a picture worth looking at. And from her
-deck the Gullwing must have seemed quite as beautiful to those aboard
-the Seamew.
-
-The two ships were the best of their class--more trimly modeled than
-most. I had not realized before what a beautiful ship the Gullwing was.
-I saw her reflected in the Seamew.
-
-She carried an open rail amidships; and her white painted stations,
-carved in the shape of hour-glasses, with the painted flat handrail
-atop, stood clearly and sharply defined above her black lower sides and
-the pale green seas.
-
-Not that either ship showed much lower planking, saving when they
-rolled; they were heavily laden. With all her jibs and all her whole
-sails on the four lower spars, and most of the small sails spread
-above, our sister ship certainly was a beautiful picture.
-
-But the old man wasn’t satisfied. Through his glass he saw something
-that spurred him to emulation.
-
-“She’s got all her t’gallant-sails set, by Pollox!” he bawled. “Mr.
-Gates! what are you moonin’ about? Get them men up there in short
-order, or I’ll be after them myself.” And as we jumped into the
-rigging, I heard him growling away on the quarter: “That’s the way
-Cap’n Si beats us. He crowds on sail, _he_ does. Why, I bet he never
-furled a rag durin’ that four-day breeze we just struck, and like
-enough had the crew pin their shirts on the wash line inter the
-bargain.”
-
-Two vessels may be rigged alike and built alike, but that doesn’t mean
-that they will sail exactly alike. The Seamew was a shade faster in
-reaching and running than the Gullwing. Mr. Barney told me that.
-
-“But to windward we have the best of her. And that’s not because of
-our sailing qualities. The difference is in the two masters,” the
-second mate said. “Captain Joe can always get more out of his ship
-than Captain Si can out of his when the going is bad. In fair weather
-the Seamew will beat us a little every reach. But it isn’t all fair
-weather in a voyage of ten thousand miles, or so,” and he smiled--I
-thought--rather nastily.
-
-I was reminded of the hint Bob Promise had given me that there was bad
-blood and no pleasant rivalry between our second mate and the twin
-who held the same berth on our sister ship. Mr. Barney was in the tops
-studying the Seamew a good deal through the glass that day, too. I
-wondered if he was trying to see if his brother was on deck.
-
-For we did not run near enough to her that day for figures to be
-descried very clearly either on her deck or in her rigging.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VIII
-
-_In Which It Seems That a Prophecy Will Be Fulfilled_
-
-
-We wallowed through the seas, but with comparatively fair winds, for
-two days. The Seamew would stand off on one tack, we on the other; and
-by and by we would lose her below the horizon; but, standing in, after
-some hours, we found her again and were glad to see that she had not
-pulled so very much ahead of us. But it made Captain Joe awful fidgety,
-and he certainly did keep the men hopping--reefing and letting go the
-topsails, and working every moment to gain a bit over his antagonist.
-Why, we might as well have been sailing a crack yacht for the America’s
-cup!
-
-All this activity was very well during bad weather; but the men began
-to get pretty sore when the hard work continued throughout the hours of
-fair days too. The Gullwing was, as I have said, short-handed. The sea
-laws cover such cases as this; but there are so many excuses masters
-may give for going to sea without sufficient hands to properly manage
-the ship that it is almost impossible to get a conviction if the case
-is carried to court.
-
-Besides, it is the law that, if a case is not proved against the master
-of a vessel, the men bringing the suit must pay all the costs. Jack Tar
-knows of something else to do with his small pay without giving it to
-“landsharks of lawyers.” That is why being a sailor and being a slave
-is an interchangeable term. Many legislators, having the welfare of
-seamen at heart, have tried to amend the laws so that the sailor will
-get at least an even break; but it seems impossible to give him as fair
-a deal as the journeyman tradesman in any other line of work obtains.
-
-Old Captain Joe Bowditch, as decent a master as he really was, had a
-streak of “cheese-paring” in him that made him delight in saving on the
-running expenses of his ship. Besides, he probably knew his employers,
-Barney, Blakesley & Knight. Many a sea captain takes chances, and runs
-risks, and sails in a rotten ship with an insufficient crew, because
-he needs to save his job, and if he doesn’t please his employers, some
-other needy master will!
-
-Although the Gullwing was so large a ship, there are larger sailing
-vessels afloat, notably some engaged in the Atlantic sea-board trade,
-and a fleet of Standard Oil ships that circumnavigate the world. These
-are both five and six masted vessels; but many of them are supplied
-with steam winches, steam capstans, and various other mechanical helps
-to the handling of the sails and anchors. The Gullwing had merely a
-donkey-engine amidships, by which the anchors could be raised, one at a
-time, or to which the pumps might be attached. The great sails on her
-lower masts had to be raised by sheer bull strength.
-
-But in our watch old Tom Thornton was a famous chantey-man, and the
-way we hauled under the impetus of his rhythm, and the swing of the
-chants (“shanties,” the sailor-man calls them) would have surprised
-a landsman. I learned that “a strong pull, a long pull, and a pull
-altogether” would accomplish wonders.
-
-We were now down in the regions where the tide follows the growing and
-waning of the moon exactly. Indeed, the great Antarctic Basin, south
-of the Cape of Good Hope and Cape Horn, is the only division of the
-seas where the tide follows the moon with absolute regularity. This is
-because the great sweep of water here is uninterrupted by land.
-
-The enormous wave, raised by the moon’s attraction, courses around the
-world with nothing to break it. Here in our northern hemisphere immense
-masses of land interfere with the coursing of this tidal wave; and the
-shallow seas interfere, too. In the Mexican Gulf, for instance, the
-tide seldom rises more than two feet, while up along our north Atlantic
-shores it often rises six and eight feet, while everybody has heard of
-the awful tidal wave of the Bay of Fundy.
-
-The depth of the water, therefore, has much to do with tidal
-irregularities. Out in the open ocean, where the tide is abyssmal--that
-is, about five thousand fathoms--the speed of the waves is amazing.
-Where the depth decreases to five fathoms the tide cannot travel
-more than fifteen miles an hour. In England, for example, which is
-surrounded by narrow land-broken seas, the result is that they get some
-of the most terrible and dangerous tidal races and currents to be found
-anywhere on the globe.
-
-In the South Seas--particularly at Tahiti--the ebb and flow of the
-tide is perfectly adjusted. It is always full tide at noonday and at
-midnight, while at sunrise and sunset it is low water. The rise and
-fall seldom exceeds two feet; but once in six months a mighty sea comes
-rolling in and, sweeping over the corral reefs, nature’s breakwater,
-it bursts violently on the shore. Indeed, sometimes this tidal wave
-inundates entire islands.
-
-In various parts of the world the tide creates various natural
-phenomena. There is the whirlpool between the islands of Jura and
-Scarba, on the west coast of Scotland, known as the “Cauldron of the
-Spotted Seas.” The Maelstrom upon the coast of Norway is another
-creation of the tide. The force of a heavy tidal current pushing up a
-wide-mouthed river, causes what is termed a “bore.” The most striking
-example of this tidal feature is seen at the mouth of the Amazon, where
-a moving wall of water, thirty feet high and from bank to bank, rushes
-inland from the ocean.
-
-The waves raced by the Gullwing’s bulwarks with dizzy speed. We plowed
-on, gaining all we could in every reach, but noting likewise that the
-Seamew, when she was in sight, seemed to draw away from us. When we had
-beheld her in the mirage she must have been a long way behind.
-
-I reckon Captain Bowditch prayed for foul weather. And he did not have
-to pray long in this latitude. We were in the district of the Boiling
-Seas. Fogs are frequent; gales sweep this section below the Horn almost
-continually--sometimes from one direction, sometimes from another. All
-the winds of heaven seem to meet here and gambol together.
-
-“He’s runnin’ us into trouble, that’s what he ban doing,” croaked
-Stronson. “De old man, I mean. He iss not satisfied with the fair
-wedder; and who but a madt man vould crave for a gale down here under
-de Horn?”
-
-But we younger fellows laughed at the old Swede. We were almost as
-much excited in the race between the two windjammers as were Captain
-Bowditch and Mr. Barney.
-
-“Remember!” croaked Stronson. “The corpus lights wass not for nottings.
-Trouble iss coming.”
-
-“But not necessarily trouble to the ship,” declared Tom Thornton. “Them
-St. Elmo’s fires foreruns death.”
-
-“Dey ban mean bad luck, anyway,” growled Stronson.
-
-Thank and I listened to all this croaking with a good deal of
-amusement. It surely never entered my head that the prophecy of the old
-men might be in anyway fulfilled.
-
-And I certainly did not feel any foredoom of peril myself. The expected
-gale came down. We passed within sight of the islet named Cape Horn,
-with a terrific wind blowing and the waves running half mast high. The
-Seamew had then been dropped behind. Indeed, the last we saw of her,
-she was wallowing in our very wake.
-
-“Gimme a breeze like this,” roared Captain Joe from his station, to Mr.
-Gates and Mr. Barney, “all the way to the time we take our tug, and
-we’ll be eating supper in Baltimore before that Seamew sights the Capes
-o’ Virginia.”
-
-But this, of course, was only brag. The Seamew was not far behind us.
-
-And then, that very night the prophecy of ill-luck was fulfilled, at
-least insofar as it affected me. Something broke loose and began to
-slat in the tops. Mr. Gates, roaring through the captain’s speaking
-trumpet, shouted for all hands. We had barely got to sleep below, and I
-reckon I was half way up the shrouds before I got both eyes open.
-
-It was a black night, with the wind coming in strange, uneven puffs,
-and the deck all a-wash with loose water. The ship was rolling till the
-ends of her yardarms almost dipped in the leaping waves.
-
-My foot slipped; futilely I clutched at the brace with the tips of my
-fingers. I knew I was lost, and the shriek I uttered was answered by
-Thank’s voice as I whirled downward:
-
-“Man overboard!”
-
-I shot down, and down, and down--and then struck the sea and kept on
-descending. I thought of Mahomet’s coffin, hung between the heavens and
-the earth. I was hung between the ship’s keel and the bottom of the
-vast deep, swinging in that coffin which can never rot--the coffin of
-the ocean.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER IX
-
-_In Which I Pass Through Deep Waters_
-
-
-But I came to the surface after a time--and with all my wits about me.
-I had need of them.
-
-In these months that I had been knocking about the seas I had been in
-peril often. Nor was this the first time that death by drowning had
-threatened me.
-
-But on no former occasion had I been in so desperate a strait. I know
-that in this rising gale the Gullwing could neither be hove to, nor
-could a boat be launched for me.
-
-The schooner had gone on at the pace of a fast steamship. And the tide
-was sweeping me astern just as rapidly as the ship was sailing. When I
-rose breast high on the first breaker I saw the Gullwing’s twinkling
-lights so far ahead that they seemed like candle flames.
-
-I was alone--and this was one of the loneliest seas upon all this
-great, round globe!
-
-But when one is thrown into such a situation of peril as I was then,
-his thoughts are so confused that it is only afterward--if there _is_
-an afterward--that he analyzes his mental activities. Just then I had
-only the clear desire to live.
-
-I turned on my back almost immediately and letting my legs hang well
-down, floated easily with my nostrils just out of water, and enjoyed
-two or three minutes of very, very grateful repose. I had been under
-the surface so long that it was some time before I could breathe clear
-to the bottom of my lungs again.
-
-The buzzing in my head gradually died away. I began to think
-collectedly. I did not waste time thinking of rescue. At least, I could
-expect no help from my comrades on the Gullwing.
-
-When I took my headlong plunge from the rigging I was clad in the heavy
-garb that most deep-water seamen wear. I had on two thick shirts, a
-heavy pea-jacket closely buttoned, and, worse than all, boots to my
-hips. Sooner or later all this weight of clothing would drag me down.
-
-I had paddled half a day at a time in Bolderhead Bay; and even the
-fresh water ponds about Darringford House, with their hidden springs
-and under-tows, had never frightened me. I was the first boy to go in
-swimming in the spring and it had to be a pretty cold day in the fall
-that drove me out of the water after the first plunge.
-
-Of course, this sea off the boisterous islet of Cape Horn, was no warm
-bath. The chill of it struck through to the marrow of my bones; yet I
-believed I was good for several hours yet, if I could get rid of those
-clothes.
-
-Undressing under water was a trick I had tried more than once; but it
-was those long-legged boots that scared me. They already made my lower
-limbs feel as heavy as lead.
-
-Paddling with one hand I tore open my jacket with the other, ripping
-the buttons off or through the buttonholes as they pleased, and finally
-got one shoulder and arm clear. As I was fumbling to get the other arm
-out of the sleeve I felt the handle of my knife.
-
-The coat stuck to my left shoulder; but a few slashes cleared me of the
-garment. It went floating away on the tide.
-
-I had bobbed up and down in this operation; but was none the worse for
-the plunges under the surface, being careful to breathe no water into
-my lungs.
-
-With the knife I slit both my shirts and tore them off. But the boots
-were the problem that shook me. I had to rest a bit before I tackled
-them.
-
-I doubled up in a sitting posture and made a slash at one bootleg. Down
-I went--down, down, until it was a fight to get up again--especially
-with my fist closed upon my knife handle. It was pretty hard work;
-every slash meant a plunge under. It was slow.
-
-I would draw up my left foot, for example, paddle vigorously with my
-left hand, take a long breath, make a slash with the knife in my right
-hand--and start for the bottom of the sea!
-
-But I got those boots off at last, though not without suffering
-several cuts and slashes upon my legs, which the salt seawater stung
-tremendously. I had already gotten rid of my belt, and my trousers came
-off easier. I was sorry to lose some things in my pockets; but was glad
-to think that my father’s chronometer was hanging above my berth in the
-Gullwing’s fo’castle and that what money I had was in the keeping of
-Captain Bowditch.
-
-And yet, it seemed utterly foolish to think of escape from this
-predicament. I had heard stories of wonderful rescues from drowning in
-mid ocean; but why should _I_ expect a miracle? Here I was, struggling
-miles behind the Gullwing, as naked as the day I was born.
-
-Not many minutes had been spent in these maneuvers, for all the time
-occupied in their telling. For the Gullwing to have launched a boat to
-hunt for me would have been ridiculous. By day there might have been
-some chance of their finding me before I sank for good; but in the
-night--and a night as black as this--such an attempt would endanger a
-boat’s crew for nothing.
-
-If they had flung me life-buoys, they would have to come to me, for
-I could not see them. Gazing up into the sky I saw that scurrying
-clouds gave signs of a break in the weather. Here and there a little
-lightening of the gloom overhead showed the moon’s rays trying to break
-through the mists.
-
-Breast high again upon a rising wave, I took one swift, whirling look
-all about. Dense blackness everywhere on the face of the ocean; but
-just as I sank back again the moon, breaking through a rift, lighted up
-a silvery path before me and at the end of that path--for an instant--I
-believed I saw the glistening sails of the Gullwing!
-
-It may have been a mirage--a vision. The blackness shut down upon me,
-and upon the sea again; but I fell back into the trough experiencing a
-more sickening sense of desolation than I had yet felt. It seemed to me
-as though I had looked upon the last sign of human life that I would
-ever see.
-
-I suppose a more hopeless situation than mine could scarcely be
-imagined. Yet I have philosophized upon it much more since than I did
-at the time. I would not let my mind picture the natural end of this
-adventure. My mind rebounded from the horrible thought that I was lost.
-I would not contemplate it.
-
-In the middle of this broad, tempestuous sea--naked--alone. No hope of
-rescue by my companions on the Gullwing, with not a splinter to cling
-to, keeping from death only by constant effort. Yet there was something
-inside me that would not give up hope--that would not let my muscles
-relax--that clung with a desperation that clamped me to life!
-
-But at first it was little exertion for me to keep afloat. I was in
-first rate physical condition and I was not afraid of sinking right
-away. I knew how to handle myself.
-
-I lay on my back with my head deep, my mouth closed, only my nostrils
-above, conserved the strength of my legs by letting them hang deep,
-kept my arms outstretched, pretty well down in the water, palms down,
-and paddled gently, sometimes with both legs and arms, and again only
-with my hands.
-
-The waves rolled me over occasionally and used me roughly; but I did
-not lose my head and never sank to any depth, having always plenty of
-air in my lungs. When I felt that my arms might become wearied I folded
-them under my head and kicked easily.
-
-I am not sure that the sea subsided; but I believe it must have done
-so. It was a providence for me, then. I know that not many of the waves
-broke over me, and I seemed sliding up and down vast swells which
-heaved up out of Nowhere, gray and green and foam-streaked, and then
-disappeared and left me floating in the deep trough.
-
-If anyone was ever literally rocked in the cradle of the deep, I was
-that person--from the crest of the wave, down, down, in a gradually
-diminishing rush, and then up and up to the crest of the next
-roller--and so on, over and over again.
-
-Once I let my mind slip and began to calculate the chances for and
-against my escape. The conviction that it was impossible rushed over me
-and I turned over quickly and struck out with a savage, hand-over-hand
-stroke through the waves, with the momentary insane feeling that I must
-get somewhere!
-
-The dogged idea of living as long as I could, however, came to me
-again with fatigue, and I rolled over and rested, cradled in the waves.
-
-My hand touched my knife, which still hung by its lanyard from my neck.
-An awful thought touched my mind, at the same moment. They say it is an
-easy death, this drowning; but I can imagine nothing more awful than
-to drift for hours upon the surface of the sea with the knowledge in
-one’s mind that, after all, there is but one end possible. I opened my
-knife and held it tightly gripped in my hand a moment. Then I pulled
-the lanyard over my head and let the knife and all drop into the
-depths--and the curse went from me.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER X
-
-_In Which the Impossible Becomes the Possible_
-
-
-Four hours had I floated on the tumbling sea, with the clouds above
-gradually breaking and with the moon finally paleing under the stronger
-light of the advancing sun. The blackness disappeared. A wind-driven
-sky arched the sea. And I lay looking up into heaven, waiting for the
-end.
-
-For I was in a sort of mesmerized state toward the last, and kept
-myself afloat automatically. It must have been so; by no other means
-can I explain that I was still floating on the surface when the sun
-arose.
-
-The rocking motion of the swells soothed me to a strange content that
-I can neither explain nor talk about sanely. I remember I babbled
-something or other over and over again; I was talking to the moon
-riding so high there among the rifted clouds.
-
- * * * * *
-
-In the night of July 14, 1886, the British ship Conqueror, fourteen
-days out from Liverpool, bound for the lumber and fishing ports of
-the Miramichi, in the Straits of Northumberland, lost overboard
-Robert Johnson, A. B. The fact is registered on the ship’s log. Three
-days after the Conqueror reached Miramichi, the Bark Adelaide, from
-Belfast, likewise came into port and when she was warped into her berth
-beside the Conqueror, the first man to step from the Adelaide to the
-Conqueror’s deck was Bob Johnson.
-
-There are reasons for the sailor-men being superstitious. The crew of
-the Conqueror would not sail with Bob Johnson again. He was _fey_. But
-really, he had only experienced a strange and harsh adventure. The
-Adelaide, following the unmarked wake of the Conqueror, had picked him
-up after he had floated for some hours.
-
-And there are plenty of similar incidents in the annals of those who go
-down to the sea in ships to match this narrative of Bob Johnson.
-
- * * * * *
-
-The men who picked _me_ up told me that I shouted to them; but I do not
-remember it. They were a crew of a boat put overboard by the Seamew,
-and they brought me aboard and I lay in a bunk in the fo’castle all
-that day without knowing where I was, or how I had been snatched from
-an ocean grave.
-
-About the first thing I remember clearly was that a young man stood
-beside my berth and looked down upon me with a rather quizzical smile.
-I knew him at once and thought that I must be in my old bunk aboard the
-Gullwing.
-
-“I--I--. Have I been sick, Mr. Barney?” I asked, and was surprised to
-find my voice so weak.
-
-He seemed surprised for a moment, too, and then I saw his face flush.
-He exclaimed:
-
-“By the great hornspoon! this fellow is off the Gullwing.”
-
-“I _was_ off the Gullwing,” I whispered. “But I guess this is no dream?
-I am aboard again now.”
-
-“No you’re not!” he declared, but he still seemed bewildered.
-
-“This isn’t the Gullwing?”
-
-“It’s the Seamew,” he said.
-
-“But--but--you’re Mr. Barney?”
-
-“I am,” he said, grimly. “But not the Mr. Barney you know, young man.”
-
-Then the mystery broke and I understood. It was Mr. Alf Barney I was
-talking to, the second mate of the Seamew.
-
-“Then--then you picked me up,” I murmured.
-
-“And we had an idea that you were a merman,” he said, with a quick
-laugh. “Out here in the ocean without a stitch of clothing on you.”
-
-I told him how I had got rid of my garments after falling overboard
-from the other ship. The men below gathered around to listen. They were
-men of about the same class as manned the Gullwing, I saw.
-
-“You’re the luckiest fellow that ever drew breath, I believe,” said the
-second mate, finally. “You stay abed here till morning. Then you can go
-forward and talk to the captain. It’s almost unbelievable.”
-
-And I scarce believed it myself--at least, not while I was so
-lightheaded and weak. But being a husky fellow my strength quickly came
-back to me, and the care of the kind fellows in the fo’castle set me on
-my pins the next day. I had a brief interview with Captain Si Somes--a
-long, cadaverous, hatchet-faced man who barked his words at one as
-though he did not like to waste either voice or words.
-
-“So Cap’n Joe didn’t try to pick ye up?”
-
-“I reckon he couldn’t. It was blowing pretty hard just then.”
-
-“That’s like the old murderer,” he snapped. “Didn’t clew down his
-tops’ls quick enough of course. He means to beat me if he kin.”
-
-“Yes, sir,” I said.
-
-“Well, he won’t. We’ll pick him up if the wind keeps this a-way.”
-
-“No chance of my getting back to her I sp’ose?” I suggested.
-
-“To the Gullwing?”
-
-“Yes, sir.”
-
-“Wa-al! I ain’t goin’ to waste no time puttin’ you aboard. He’s
-short-handed anyway. He allus is. I’ll feed ye for the sake of keepin’
-ye,” and he cackled rather unpleasantly.
-
-I didn’t like him as well as I did Captain Bowditch. And my interest
-was centered in the success of the Gullwing, too. I wanted to get back
-to her and see her win the race.
-
-I found the fo’castle hands of the Seamew just as much interested
-in the rivalry of the two ships as the Gullwing’s hands were. They
-believed they were on the better craft, too.
-
-“Why, she sails a foot and a half to the Gullwing’s one in fair
-weather,” one man told me. “Wait till we get out of this latitude.
-You’ll see something like sailing, then, when the Seamew gits to going.”
-
-I thought she was sailing pretty fast just then, and said so.
-
-“If she ever struck another craft--or anything drifting in the
-sea--she’d just about cut it down with that sharp bow,” I observed.
-
-“Ain’t much danger of running into anything down here. We ain’t seen
-another sail but the Gullwing--save one--for a week.”
-
-“We hadn’t spoken a vessel on the Gullwing for a number of days,” I
-replied.
-
-“No. Not many windjammers just now in these waters. And all the
-steamers go through the Straits,” my informant said. “But this craft we
-spoke three days ago was a-wallowin’ along pretty well--and she had a
-tow, too.”
-
-“A steamship, then?”
-
-“No. She was a two-stick schooner, but she had a big auxiliary engine
-and was under both steam and sail. The Sea Spell, she was.”
-
-“The Sea Spell!” I cried, in surprise. “I know her. I’ve been aboard
-her. Cap’n Tugg, skipper and owner.”
-
-“That’s the Yankee,” said my friend. “And ain’t he a cleaner? What do
-you suppose he had in tow?”
-
-I was too amazed to answer, and the man went on:
-
-“That’s one cute Yankee, that Adoniram Tugg. If there wasn’t but two
-dollars left in the world he’d have one in his pocket and a mortgage
-on the other.”
-
-I had to laugh at this description of the master of the Sea Spell. And
-it hit off Adoniram pretty well, too.
-
-“That Yankee has made a killing this time,” continued my informant. “He
-has been for weeks cruising south of here, so he yelled across to Cap’n
-Somes, hunting for an old whaler stranded in the ice.”
-
-“The Firebrand. I know about her. Indeed, I’ve seen her,” I said, and
-told him the story of my cruise on the Gypsey Girl and how we had come
-across the frozen ship and I had boarded her.
-
-“Well! don’t that beat cock-fighting!” ejaculated the seaman, who was
-called Job Perkins. “That old ile boiler was worth a mint of money.”
-
-“I know it. They said she had fifty thousand dollars in oil aboard.”
-
-“And if Adoniram Tugg makes port with her he’ll turn a pretty penny.
-Salvage and all,” ruminated Job.
-
-“What do you mean?” I gasped, suddenly awakened to the fact that I was
-listening to a mighty queer story.
-
-“Why, that’s what Tugg was tugging,” and Job smote his knee and laughed
-at his own joke.
-
-“He was tugging _what_?”
-
-“Why, I told you he had a ship in tow. She was a sight, she was! Her
-masts were just stumps; there wasn’t ten feet of her rail that hadn’t
-carried away, and she was battered and bruised and looked like she’d
-sink under the surface every time a wave struck her.
-
-“But that cute Yankee had broached oil barrels on her deck, and she
-was just wallowin’ along in a pond of ile--a reg’lar slick. The waves
-couldn’t break over her,” declared Job, still laughing. “I reckon he’d
-patched up her hull in some way, and it looked to me as though he’d tow
-her into San Pedro, at least.”
-
-“But, man alive!” I cried. “What was she? What was the Sea Spell
-towing?”
-
-“Why, that Firebrand,” he said. “And he’ll make a mint of money out of
-her, as sure as you’re a foot high.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XI
-
-_In Which I See That There Is Tragedy in This Ocean Race_
-
-
-I was dumfounded by this story of Job Perkins. Later it was
-corroborated by the other hands. It had really been Adoniram Tugg and
-the Sea Spell that had sailed near enough to this ship for conversation
-between the two skippers. And the Sea Spell actually had that old
-whaleship in tow.
-
-_This_ was the astonishing part of it: The fact that the Firebrand was
-not at the bottom of the seas. I thought I had seen her rained upon by
-ice--beaten down by the bursting berg--driven under the leaping waves.
-
-Yet, come to think of it, the rotating icefield had turned so as to
-hide the frozen ship from us aboard the Gypsey Girl when the ice split
-up, and a curtain of ice-mist and leaping waves had really hidden the
-spot where the Firebrand lay.
-
-I had taken it for granted that the frozen ship--more than a year and
-a half in the ice--had found her grave right then and there. But I
-remembered how sound the hulk of the whaleship seemed when I went
-aboard of her. Only her spars and upper works were wrecked. She had
-collided with the ice and slid right out of the sea at the collision.
-Perhaps the blow had never made her leak a drop!
-
-And then it smote upon my mind that the man of mystery, Tugg’s partner,
-must be alive, too.
-
-That stern, sturdy man with his gray beard and hair, and his
-wonderfully sharp eyes, who had stuck by the frozen ship when his
-mates were driven off, and had battled against the gang of sealers
-to preserve the treasure of oil from their greed--this man in whose
-presence I had felt a thrill not yet to be explained even in my most
-serious times of thought. Why, Professor Vose must be alive! There was
-no doubt of that.
-
-I could remember very distinctly our brief interview upon the frozen
-ship. How quickly he had disarmed me and showed me that he was my
-master. I could imagine that he had not given up hope even when the
-ice split up and the Firebrand had slid back into the water amid the
-crashing bergs and boiling sea.
-
-Whoever this man was, he was a person of marked character. He had
-impressed me deeply and I felt that I could never really get him out
-of my mind. Be he Jim Carver, the renegade that had stolen money from
-the fish firm back in Bolderhead, or Professor Vose, the marvelous
-scientist that Tugg claimed him to be, the man who had risked his life
-for the fortune of oil aboard the Firebrand, was an individual whom I
-should never forget.
-
-I can’t say that I was as pleased, as the hours passed, with my
-situation aboard the Seamew as I had been on her sister ship. In the
-first place, I had no proper niche here. I was not one of the crew. I
-was really an outsider--and from the enemy’s camp at that.
-
-There seemed to be a different spirit in this crew. They spoke more
-bitterly of the Gullwing’s company. They seemed to have no good word
-for Captain Bowditch and Mate Gates, and it was from Job Perkins that
-I finally got an insight into the real significance of the rivalry
-between the sister ships.
-
-“Ye wanter jump quick, young feller, when Mr. Barney speaks,” Job
-advised me.
-
-“I know. That is the way it is with _our_ Mr. Barney,” I replied.
-
-“Shucks! Jim Barney’s another sort of a man from Alf Barney.”
-
-“Not to the naked eye,” I responded, laughing. “I couldn’t tell ’em
-apart.”
-
-“That’s because you don’t know either of them very well.”
-
-“Why--I don’t know. I think I know our Mr. Barney pretty well. He’s a
-smart second officer and altogether a good fellow, too.”
-
-“Smart! Why, he’s a fool to his brother Alfred,” declared Job. “They
-ain’t in the same class--them boys. No, they ain’t.”
-
-“Why, I thought they were considered very much alike,” I murmured.
-
-“Alf will show Jim, I reckon, how much better he is,” and Job chuckled.
-“Ye see, they useter be the best of friends, though brothers----”
-
-“What do you mean by that?” I cried. “Hadn’t brothers ought to be the
-best of friends?”
-
-“Never had a brother, had ye?”
-
-“No. For which I’m awfully sorry.”
-
-“I had brothers. You needn’t be sorry,” said Job, in his sneering way.
-“And I reckon that is the way Alf Barney looks at it. Brothers can be
-in your way, I tell ye. I found it so. So does Alf Barney. Them boys is
-rivals.”
-
-“Well, so are Captain Si and Captain Joe.”
-
-“Huh! Them old tarriers!” snorted Job, very disrespectfully. “They only
-play at fighting each other. These Barney boys mean business.”
-
-“But why?” I demanded.
-
-“Well, it’s something about their uncle. You know, their uncle, old
-Jothan Barney, is senior partner of the firm?”
-
-“Yes.”
-
-“And he’s put ’em into the business. Not that he’s showed favoritism.
-No. These Barney twins air good seamen.”
-
-“I’m glad you will allow that,” I said, rather sharply.
-
-“Yes. Jim is good; but Alf is a corker! a crackajack!” chuckled Job.
-“They begun to be rivals in a serious way previous to the v’yge before
-last.
-
-“Ye see, there ain’t but one rung at the top o’ any ladder. And there
-can’t but one man stand at the top of a pyramid. When old Jothan passes
-in his checks there will be just one chance for a nephew to take his
-place.”
-
-“You mean that the two boys are jealous of who will get the old man’s
-money?”
-
-“And stand in his place in the business,” said Job. “Jothan isn’t one
-for dividing power. He’s always been the cock o’ the walk in the firm.
-He’ll expect the nephew that takes his place to be the boss. Can’t
-divide responsibility. That is the way he looks at it.”
-
-“And a bad thing for the Barney boys,” I muttered.
-
-“Well, he puts it to his nephews two years ago,” continued Job Perkins.
-“He tells them they’re running too even. He can’t tell which is the
-best man. He don’t believe they are just alike, even if they be twins.
-
-“‘You git up and dust, boys,’ he said. ‘One of ye do something
-different from the other. Ye air jest of a pattern. I can’t tell which
-is the man and which is his reflection in the glass.’
-
-“Ye understand, old Jothan didn’t know which to put down in his will to
-be boss of his money and the firm. The boys have got to show him. He
-gives ’em both the same chance, but he expects one to beat the other.
-
-“Old Jothan begun before the mast. He believes in the boys working out
-their salvation aboard ship. And even so near a thing as these two
-craft racin’, and one beating the other, will tell in the favor of the
-second mate who’s aboard the winning ship.”
-
-“I can’t believe it!” I said to Job.
-
-“You don’t hafter--only watch. Old Jothan is getting tired of holding
-on to the business. He wants to be shown who is the best man of the two
-boys. That best one he’ll take into the House after this voyage--and
-you mark my word, sonny, that best man is going to be Mr. Alf Barney.”
-
-I didn’t know whether Job had told me the truth, or not; but I was
-sorry to learn of the sordid rivalry between the two brothers. It was
-tragic--no less; and I wondered what would come of it in the end?
-
-But my wildest imaginings would have been tame indeed beside what
-really was to be the outcome of the misunderstanding between Jim and
-Alf Barney.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XII
-
-_In Which the Captain’s Dog Goes Overboard_
-
-
-The heavy weather could not last forever; we came to a comparatively
-calmer season of several days. But the Gullwing was not sighted and I
-began to be worried. So many things might easily happen to her. The
-officers and crew of the Seamew were interested in finding the sister
-ship, too; but their comments upon her absence were neither kindly nor
-cheering.
-
-“Is she still ahead, or has she sunk?” demanded Cap’n Si, after an
-examination of the entire circle of sea through his glass.
-
-“I bet we’ve sailed clean around her,” said the first mate, chuckling.
-“She’s in the discard.”
-
-“No,” said Cap’n Si. “It couldn’t be that.”
-
-“She’s reached land, then,” grinned the mate pointing downward.
-
-I thought that after all, both the crew and officers of the Seamew were
-little like my friends aboard the Gullwing. But we had such fitful
-winds for a time and made so little speed, that I reckon all hands were
-badly rasped.
-
-We sighted several craft in these seas--all windjammers; but none of
-them proved to be our sister ship. We were now in the South Atlantic,
-and had clawed well off from the threatening rocks of Terra del Fuego.
-We had passed from one great sea to another, and the prow of the Seamew
-was turned northward. She was headed for home in earnest.
-
-The men and officers were decent enough to me. I had been drafted into
-the mate’s watch and I was smart at my duties and had learned a deal
-aboard the Gullwing which came into good play aboard her sister ship.
-But I wasn’t happy.
-
-The captain had a big Newfoundland dog aboard--Major. He was the pet of
-the crew and was a good fellow. Every day that it was not too rough he
-went overboard for his bath--usually in a sling made of an old sail,
-although in these waters there was not so much danger of sharks as in
-the more tropical seas.
-
-However, there were other wicked marine creatures--far more
-blood-thirsty than Mr. Shark. And we had occasion to find this fact
-out for ourselves within a few days of my coming aboard the Seamew so
-strangely.
-
-We had a morning when the sea was almost calm. The wind scarcely gave
-the ship headway, and the canvas slatted and hung dead, from time to
-time. We all “whistled for a breeze.”
-
-Along about the middle of the morning watch a school of porpoises came
-into view. First we saw them in a string to windward, and stories of
-sea-serpents, told by both seamen and landsmen, came to my mind. In the
-distance, following one another with an undulating motion through the
-short seas, the porpoises looked like one enormously long creature--a
-huge serpent indeed.
-
-The porpoises struck a school of small fish nearby and then there was
-fun. The big fish sported all around the ship, rolling and bouncing
-through the water in much excitement.
-
-The Captain’s dog likewise grew excited. He ran to the open rail and
-barked and yapped at the sea-pigs; and I believe that one of the men
-slyly “set him on” at the porpoises.
-
-However, to the surprise of the watch on deck (the captain was below),
-Major suddenly leaped the rail and went plump into the water.
-
-“Hi, there!” cried Job Perkins. “That dog’ll git inter trouble; and
-then what will Cap’n Si say?”
-
-I fancy the surprise of the porpoises when Major got among them was
-quite as great as the amazement of the men on the deck of the slow
-moving Seamew. The schooner was just slipping through the sea, the
-short waves lapping against her hull very gently. Major could easily
-have kept up with us.
-
-The porpoises were sailing around and around the ship by this time,
-and the big dog bounced among them, barking and biting--or trying to
-bite--and otherwise acting like a mad dog. He plunged first for one
-porpoise, then for another, rising as lightly as a dog of cork on the
-waves, and throwing himself about in great abandon.
-
-He so excited the porpoises that they made a general charge upon him.
-The dog beat a retreat in a hurry; but the sea-pigs had their “dander
-up” now and a score of them followed him, jumping, snorting, and
-tumbling about, evidently much delighted at putting the black stranger
-to flight.
-
-Major came towards the ship with a rush--his only refuge. The men
-cheered him excitedly; and the watch below was aroused and rushed up to
-see what was going on. So did Captain Somes appear, and the moment he
-saw the dog with the big fish after him, he sang out for the sling and
-scolded us unmercifully for letting Major overboard.
-
-I verily believe that the porpoises would have torn the noble fellow
-to shreds in a very few minutes. When Major came over the side, he was
-cut in several places and one of his ears hung from a thread or little
-more. I learned then that, although the porpoise is such a playful
-creature, and apparently harmless, it has means of defending itself not
-to be sneered at!
-
-I was leaning on the forward port rail, looking idly across the stretch
-of comparatively quiet sea (the porpoises having rushed away to
-lee’ard), when I saw rising to the surface not many furlongs from the
-ship’s side, a great brownish mass that I took to be seaweed.
-
-After a storm we often met fields of rock weed, wrenched from the
-shallow banks underneath the ocean by the terrific waves. This rising
-mass was not much different--in first appearance--from many weed-fields
-I had seen.
-
-Mr. Alfred Barney was seldom on deck without his fowling-piece--a
-beautiful, double-barreled shotgun--in weather like this. He was a
-splendid wing shot and seemed to delight in bringing a gull flapping
-down into the sea, although he never shot at albatross.
-
-“What you looking at, Webb?” he demanded of me, suddenly, coming around
-the corner of the forward house, gun in hand.
-
-“Why, sir,” said I, just making up my mind that I had made a mistake
-in my first diagnosis of the nature of the brown mass that had now
-risen to the surface, “why, sir, I believe it is something alive.”
-
-“Something alive?”
-
-“That thing off there,” I replied, pointing to the object that had
-attracted my attention.
-
-He stepped to my side quickly and shaded his eyes under the palm of his
-hand as he gazed at the peculiar looking brown patch.
-
-“A whale’s back?” I suggested, as he remained silent.
-
-“No. It hasn’t got slope enough,” replied Mr. Alf Barney. “By George,
-though! it’s alive.”
-
-“That’s what I thought,” I said. “I believed it moved--there!”
-
-A tremor of life seemed to seize the object and passed all through it.
-Whatever it was, its length was fifty or sixty feet.
-
-“Maybe it’s dying,” I said. “Some great beast----”
-
-“Not a bat-fish,” he muttered, half raising his rifle.
-
-“No, sir. I don’t see either head or tail to it.”
-
-It moved again--rather, it quivered. I can scarcely express the feeling
-of horror and dislike for the thing that came over me. I shuddered.
-
-“I wish it would go away,” I muttered.
-
-Mr. Barney laughed, shortly. He raised his gun again. Suddenly we heard
-a sharp, mandatory voice behind us:
-
-“Don’t do that, Mr. Barney!”
-
-We both turned. It was the mate, Mr. Hollister. He was a dark, stern,
-silent man, who spoke to the men without much bustle, but who evidently
-expected to be obeyed the first time.
-
-“That’s a giant squid, Mr. Barney,” said the mate. “He’s ‘bad
-medicine.’ You don’t want to fool with one of those fellows. I did so
-once to my sorrow.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIII
-
-_In Which I Learn a Deal About Sea Monsters in General and the Giant
-Squid in Particular_
-
-
-“A squid of _that_ size?” cried the young second mate, doubtfully,
-while I gave my closer attention to the long, dark brown body that lay
-quivering upon the surface of the sea.
-
-“There’s bigger,” said Mate Hollister, grimly. “Ask any old Norwegian
-hardshell about the ‘kraken.’ I don’t mean the octopus; I mean the real
-devil-fish--the squid.”
-
-“I know the octopus and the squid are two different creatures,” said
-Barney.
-
-“Yes. And that yonder is a squid--a devil-fish of the largest size.
-There! you can see his fore-arms now--look!”
-
-I had observed something moving thirty feet beyond one end of the bulky
-brown creature. Two snake-like tentacles suddenly whipped out of the
-water. They bore between their ends a struggling fish. In a moment
-tentacles and fish disappeared, apparently sucked in toward the head of
-the monster.
-
-“Good-bye, Johnny Fish!” said Mr. Hollister, grimly. “The parrot-beaks
-of that gentleman have snapped him up.”
-
-I had seen small squid. This beast lying on the sea so near us was
-between fifty and sixty feet long, with an average diameter of
-something like five feet, and a ten-foot breadth of tail.
-
-The squid are the natural food of the sperm whale. Often the whale
-is so greedy for the squid that it tackles one of these giants and
-swallows the hard and indigestible beak which, causing a disease
-in the cetacean’s stomach, sometimes brings about the death of the
-gourmand. As parts of squid beaks have been found imbedded in masses of
-ambergris, scientists are quite convinced that this gormandizing of the
-sperm whale on squid is the immediate cause of that secretion in its
-stomach which, strange as it may seem, is the basis of many of the best
-perfumes. Ambergris is a very valuable “by-product” of the sperm whale.
-
-The orca--that tiger of the sea--is inordinately fond of the squid,
-too, as a diet. This devil-fish, with its eight short arms, each
-covered on the underside with innumberable “suckers,” and its two
-fishing-arms which have suckers only at the extremity, excites no fear
-in the killer-whale.
-
-Concealed at the base of the squid’s ten arms is the terrible beak,
-shaped like that of a hawk, except that the upper jaw shuts into the
-lower. This beak is likewise dark brown in color, almost black at the
-tips, and is supported by powerful muscles.
-
-Years ago there was a huge squid captured at Catalina, on the southern
-shore of Trinity Bay, Newfoundland. This squid was bought by the New
-York Aquarium and was the largest perfect specimen of its kind ever
-examined by scientists. Of course, they had to satisfy themselves with
-a post-mortem examination!
-
-The beak of this immense fish--which could not have been much larger
-than the one we were contemplating from the deck of the Seamew--was as
-big as a six-gallon keg.
-
-No animal can have a more formidable appearance, or a more deadly
-grasp, than these squid. It would seem as though the long, flexible,
-muscular tentacles were a sufficient means of defense and offense,
-without their being armed with the terrible suction cups.
-
-These cups have a serrated edge like a handsaw, and are used for
-anchors as well as to secure prey. They cling with the greatest
-tenacity, it being easier to tear away an arm from the body of the
-squid, than to force the beast to give up its hold. It has all the
-desperate nature of a bulldog.
-
-The beak, or jaw, is provided with terrible teeth, and even the
-tongue is covered on the upper part by a horny bed, bristling in the
-center with a series of recurving teeth, while its edge is armed with
-three other erect teeth, which are slender and hooked. A man might as
-well put his hand into a knitting machine and expect to take it out
-unscarred, as to risk a hand in the jaws of a squid. Those teeth tear
-the creature’s food to shreds.
-
-And one other characteristic the squid possesses which gives it
-advantage over both enemy and prey. When excited, and at will, it can
-eject a substance like ink--indeed, it was used by the ancients as
-ink--by which it clouds the sea, and so often escapes an enemy. Its own
-eyes being of a phosphorescent nature, it can see well enough through
-the haze of this cloud of ink, therefore its prey cannot escape.
-Besides, its fishing-arms being three times the length of its other
-tentacles, the squid can “fish a long way from headquarters.”
-
-This ink of the squid, or cuttle-fish, when dried, is used in
-water-color painting, and is known by the name of “sepia.” It is
-practically indestructible.
-
-Now, all this by the way of introducing the squid. The Seamew crept by
-the creature and I, for one, was not sorry to see it finally disappear.
-And from what the men told about the cuttle-fish I judged that it would
-have been the part of unwisdom for Mr. Barney to have fired at the
-creature.
-
-“Lemme tell you,” said old Job Perkins, leaning on the rail beside me.
-“Them ain’t critters to fool with. I know. I been there and learned.”
-
-“Did you ever get real close to a big squid, Job?” I asked him.
-
-“Big enough and near enough to suit me,” he said, wagging his head and
-expectorating over the rail. “I went up against a reef-squid once--in
-the Galapagos, it was--and that was enough for Job. Yes, sir!
-
-“I was in the clipper ship Chelsea that time, I was,” continued the old
-man, taking another “chaw.” “Cap’n Daggett ordered a boat ashore for
-turtles. He shot ’em for soup and fresh meat. Good eatin’, too. But I
-took a seal-club with me, for I wanted a sea-lion’s skin to make me a
-pair of moccasins, and I’d heard ’em roaring when we dropped anchor.
-
-“I went off by myself and waded around a low, rocky point, in water not
-ha’f knee deep, but deep jest outside, when I saw Mr. Squid moving
-along atop of the water. He made considerable thrashing as he come
-along, like a whirligig waterwheel; his body part looked bigger than I
-am, and his arms two or three times as long--at any rate, them two long
-arms was tremendous.
-
-“It headed into a little bay ahead of me,” pursued Job, “and when it
-got into about three foot of water it dropped anchor and began to feel
-around with three or four of its arms. The upperside of them arms were
-brown colored like the rocks, with wrinkles and stiff bristles all
-along the edge; the underside was white--sort of a nasty, yallerish,
-dead-looking white--with suckers like saucers in two rows. What I took
-to be the head had something like eyes; but I couldn’t make ’em out
-plain.
-
-“Ye know how it is when ye see a snake, when you’re walking on shore,”
-said old Job. “Ye always want to try and kill it. That’s the way I felt
-about that squid. I didn’t think of any danger when I waded to it, but
-it seemed to be watchin’ me, for it squared round, head-on. I hit it a
-clip with my iron-bound seal-club, when, quick as a thought, it took
-a turn around the club with one o’ them short suckers, and held on. I
-pulled my blessedest, but the critter was too much for me. Then’s when
-I’d oughter backed out.
-
-“But I was obstinate and I kept tugging at the club. Just then it
-showed its head--it shot out from the knob in front, a brown-and-purple
-spotted thing with the eyes showing. And in a second one of its arms
-was around me. It wound around my bare leg and another shot around my
-neck. The suckers took hold like a doctor’s cups.
-
-“It began to heave and haul on me. You kin guess I pulled and hollered.
-I got out my knife and hacked at it, but it would have mastered me--it
-sure would!--if Cap’n Daggett hadn’t come running along the shore and
-fired both barrels of his gun into its head. Then it let go and slid
-back into deep water, squirting its nasty ink all about.
-
-“I ain’t never fooled with no squid again,” concluded Job Perkins.
-“They ain’t no pets.”
-
-It was later in that day, when I was standing my trick on lookout, and
-the Seamew had got a better wind and was forging ahead at a spanking
-pace, that Mr. Hollister and Mr. Barney stood near me and I heard the
-second mate ask the older man about the experience _he_ had had with a
-giant squid.
-
-“Yes,” said Mr. Hollister, “when I was a young fellow I ran against
-one of those squids, and I never want to bother with another one. I
-was mate of a little schooner--the Pearl, she was--150 tons and a crew
-of six men forward, with the cook. We were bound from the Mauritius to
-Rangoon in ballast, to return with paddy, and had put in at Galle for
-water. Three days out we fell becalmed in the bay--about latitude 8
-degrees 50 minutes North, longitude 84 degrees 5 minutes East.
-
-“On the 10th of May about five o’clock in the afternoon--eight bells, I
-know, had gone some time before--we sighted a two masted screw steamer
-on our port quarter, about five or six miles off. Very soon after, as
-we lay motionless on a sea like glass, a great mass rose slowly to the
-surface about half a mile on our larboard side, and remained spread
-out, as it were, and stationary.
-
-“Even at that distance I could see that it was fully as long as the
-Pearl, and I sung out to the skipper to ask what he thought it was.
-
-“‘Blest if I know,’ says he. ‘Barring its size, color and shape, it
-might be a whale. Some deep-sea critter, sure enough,’ and he dove
-below and came up with a heavy rifle.
-
-“The crew was discussing it, too, and as the skipper was preparing to
-fire at the thing, Bill Darling, a Newfoundlander, exclaimed, putting
-up his hand:
-
-“‘Have a care, Skipper. That ere is a squid and it’ll capsize ye if ye
-hurt him.’
-
-“I’d heard of squid, and seen squid,” proceeded Mr. Hollister, “and so
-had the skipper. But we both laughed at old Bill. The skipper up with
-his gun and let her go. He hit the thing, and it shook all over; there
-was a great ripple all around him and he began to move.
-
-“‘Out with all your axes and knives!’ shouted Bill, ‘and cut at any
-part of him that comes aboard.’
-
-“The old fellow taking the deck in that way made the skipper mad, and I
-was some surprised myself. You know how old sailors are--superstitious,
-as Negroes were in slavery. We couldn’t do anything to move the
-schooner, of course, and the skipper and I didn’t say a thing to the
-crew. Bill and the two others got axes and one other a rusty cutlass.
-We were all looking over the side at the advancing monster; but I for
-one, didn’t believe it was dangerous.
-
-“We could now see a huge, oblong mass, moving by jerks, just under the
-surface of the water, and an enormous train following. The oblong body
-was at least half the size of the Pearl and just as thick. The wake,
-or trail, might have been a hundred feet long.
-
-“In the time I’ve taken to tell you,” said Mr. Hollister, “the brute
-struck us and the ship quivered under the thud; I wasn’t scared a mite
-until then. The skipper gave a yell and plugged away with his rifle
-another time. And then monstrous arms like trees seized the vessel and
-she keeled over; in another second the monster was aboard, squeezing
-its great polypus bulk in between the two masts.
-
-“Bill screamed, ‘Slash for your lives!’ But all our slashing and
-yelling didn’t do a mite of good. Holding on by his arms, the monster
-slipped back into the sea again, and dragged the vessel down with him
-on her beam-ends.
-
-“The skipper and I were thrown into the water. I caught sight of old
-Bill and one of the others squashed up betwixt the mast and one of them
-arms. It was an awful sight, I tell you.
-
-“Of course, the Pearl’s hatches were open and in a few moments she
-filled and went down. Those two went with her. The rest of us escaped
-the brute’s tentacles and a boat from the Strathowen--the steamer we’d
-seen--picked us up a little later.
-
-“That was the finish of the Pearl and two brave men,” added Mr.
-Hollister, gravely. “And she isn’t the only craft that’s been carried
-down by a giant squid. Most folks I’ve told it to think it’s a sailor’s
-yarn. But the crew and the passengers of the Strathowen could swear to
-it--and did so, too. The story was printed in the Indian papers when we
-reached Madras. And you’ve seen one of the beasts yourself, to-day, and
-know to what an enormous size they grow. There are dangerous monsters
-in the sea, Mr. Barney; but I reckon there’s nothing worse than a
-healthy, full-grown devil-fish.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIV
-
-_In Which a Signal Retards the Race_
-
-
-It was at six bells in the morning watch of the next day that the
-lookout in the top sang out the wailing cry:
-
-“On deck!”
-
-“Crow’s nest, ahoy!” responded Mr. Hollister, who had the deck.
-
-“Sail-oh!”
-
-“Where away?”
-
-“Two points off the weather bow. Four-sticker! It’s that blessed
-Gullwing, by Jiminy Christmas!” responded the sharp-eyed seaman aloft.
-
-There was as much excitement aboard the Seamew now as though this was
-the first time her sister ship had been spied in the offing. We ran up
-the shrouds to see her better, and the officers were all on deck with
-their glasses.
-
-She came snorting up to us on the starboard tack, all her bright canvas
-bellying, and so trim and taut that it was a pleasure to gaze upon her.
-I felt a thrill of delight as I watched the Gullwing. Aboard of her
-was my chum, Thankful Polk, and my other friends, and I wished with all
-my heart that I might rejoin them.
-
-But I knew very well that under the present circumstances that would be
-impossible. Had the two schooners been becalmed the day before, side by
-side, I might have got Cap’n Si to put me aboard the Gullwing.
-
-But one thing I did beg the captain of the Seamew to do, and, after
-some little demur, he agreed to it. He ordered Mr. Barney to bring out
-the signal flags, kept in the chest amidships, and instructed him to
-inform Captain Bowditch that the Seamew had picked up, alive, the lost
-member of his crew.
-
-This signaling was not done until the Gullwing was so near that both
-ships were about to tack. As soon as the line of flags was run up on
-the Seamew, they hustled about on the Gullwing and replied. Nor did
-Captain Bowditch shift his helm at once. The sister ships continued to
-approach each other.
-
-The Seamew had plainly overtaken the Gullwing, and now, when she
-sheered off, she would begin to creep ahead of the craft in which I
-was the more interested. With the wind as it was, and nothing untoward
-occurring, the Seamew was bound to gain something over her rival in
-each leg she made.
-
-“What’s he sayin’?” bawled Cap’n Si to Mr. Barney.
-
-I had already learned something about the signal code, and when the
-second mate’s back was turned I got a squint at the codebook. Captain
-Bowditch was asking if the Seamew would heave to and send me aboard!
-
-“Cap’n Joe is sure cracked!” cackled the commander of the Seamew. “Tell
-him I wouldn’t do it for a hull barrel of greening apples.”
-
-I reckon Mr. Barney put the refusal more briefly. But the Gullwing
-continued to hang in the wind while another line of flags was run up
-to her fore. The book told me that the signal read: “I’ll send boat
-aboard.”
-
-“No he won’t, by jinks!” crowed Cap’n Si. “Nor he wouldn’t wanter do it
-if he warn’t so blamed short-handed. Stow your flags, Mr. Barney. Stand
-by. Ready! haul sheet!” and he went ahead and gave swift orders to put
-the Seamew about on the other tack.
-
-But I was glad that those aboard the Gullwing knew that I was alive. I
-could imagine Thank’s relief, and how surprised and--I hoped--glad, the
-others would be to know that I had not found my grave in the ocean. I
-even thought kindly of Bob Promise, the bully, and believed that he
-was likewise thinking kindly of me at that moment.
-
-“And to serve Cap’n Si out for not being willing to meet Cap’n Joe half
-way, and let them take me aboard,” I muttered to myself, “I hope the
-Gullwing beats the Seamew all to flinders!”
-
-The Seamew, however, gained slowly upon her sister ship. On every tack
-that day she made a better showing. Sometimes the Gullwing was below
-the horizon; but whenever we sighted her she was dropping back a bit.
-The wind remained steady and from a favorable quarter and by and by the
-night dropped down and divided the two ships more effectually than the
-sea itself.
-
-As the light faded upon sea and sky we sailed under a vast,
-black-velvet canopy embroidered upon which were the countless stars
-and planets. Constellations that I knew nothing about glowed from the
-depths of the firmament; and brighter than all was the Southern Cross.
-The moon had dipped below the horizon and therefore the Cross and the
-stars were the more brilliant. I paced the deck alone and thought of
-my mother, and wondered what she was doing just then, and if Chester
-Downes was still trying to circumvent me, and Mr. Hounsditch, and gain
-control of the fortune, possession of which he so much begrudged my
-mother and myself.
-
-And a thought came to me from out the stillness and immensity of that
-night--a thought that forever after seemed to haunt me; was there not
-some curse upon my grandfather’s huge property, which had been willed
-my mother and I under such wicked conditions? For that Grandfather
-Darringford’s will had been inspired by hatred of Dr. Webb, my father,
-one could not doubt.
-
-Had my father not been drowned as he was off White Rock, that will
-of grandfather’s would have been the source of heartburnings in the
-family. Human nature is human nature; the time would have come when the
-fact that Dr. Webb was a stumbling-block to his son’s advancement, or
-his wife’s ease, would have been advanced. That is, if my father had
-remained all these years a poor man. And what else could he have been
-with his practice in Bolderhead?
-
-Men get stunted in small towns--especially professional men. Dr. Webb
-could never have made much more than a miserably poor living for
-mother and I had he lived; and all that time the thought of the great
-Darringford Estate would have been the skeleton in our closet!
-
-It was better as it was, I suppose. It had been a dream that my father
-was still alive. I believe I would have gladly given up my share of my
-grandfather’s money to have found that the mysterious man aboard the
-frozen ship was my father! I had been strangely drawn toward that man.
-
-Besides, I felt now as though I were old enough and big enough to make
-my own way in the world, and to keep my mother in comfort, if not in
-luxury, as well.
-
-Dawn drew near and the stars began to fade. Soon the deck would be
-a-bustle with our watch washing down. We had probably crossed and
-recrossed the way of the Gullwing during the night, but she had not
-been hailed from the lookout.
-
-As the light of day advanced the wind fell. We hardly made steerage-way
-in the pearl-colored light of dawn. The coming day is heralded ashore
-by hundreds of feathered trumpeters; but here on the open sea it
-advances with silence.
-
-Far, far out on the sea, where the gently swelling water seemed
-buttoned to the rim of the sky, a sudden flush appeared. The hue lay
-upon both sky and sea--indeed, it was hard to distinguish for a bit the
-one element from the other. But I knew the sun was about to poke his
-head up just there!
-
-And as the glow grew, a ghostly figure drew across the pink patch.
-I watched it eagerly. The sun, mist-shrouded and sleepy, was thrust
-out of the sea; and across the red face of him sailed a four-stick
-ship--the Gullwing! It did not need the man in the crow’s nest to hail
-the officer of the deck and announce the fact. I could identify our
-sister ship from where I stood.
-
-Long red rays like pointing fingers played across the sea. The Gullwing
-and the Seamew were several miles apart. The early rays of the sun
-touched an object on the sea--at first merely a black spot--lying about
-equi-distant of the two ships.
-
-When I first saw this black thing I sprang into the shrouds. Mr.
-Hollister hailed me:
-
-“What do you see, Webb?”
-
-“Something adrift--yonder, sir!”
-
-“Lookout, ahoy!” bawled the mate.
-
-“Aye, aye, sir! I sees it.”
-
-“What d’ye make it out to be?” demanded the mate.
-
-“It’s the black hulk of an open boat,” I cried, as the seaman above
-hesitated. I expect the rising sun half blinded him. “There’s a stump
-of a mast and she seems decked over forward--no! it’s an awning.”
-
-“A ship’s boat?” cried the mate, eagerly.
-
-“Aye, aye, sir!” came down the voice of the man in the top. “That’s
-what she be. And wrecked. Not a sign of life aboard her.”
-
-“How is it, Webb?” Mr. Hollister repeated.
-
-“I see nothing moving,” I admitted, slowly.
-
-Mr. Hollister sent down for his glass, and then joined me in the
-shrouds. The deck was all a-bustle by now. Cap’n Si came up, rubbing
-his eyes and yawning.
-
-“What’s the matter with all you lubbers?” was his pleasant demand.
-“What’s that--the Gullwing? Ain’t you never seen her before?”
-
-“Drop your eyes a bit, Captain,” advised Mr. Hollister, swinging down
-after a look through his glass.
-
-“Huh!” exclaimed the skipper. “A boat.”
-
-“Yes, sir.”
-
-“Empty?”
-
-“It looks so,” replied Mr. Hollister, and passed him the glass.
-
-“Ain’t wuth picking up,” decided Cap’n Si, after a long look at the
-drifting boat.
-
-He closed the glass. Mr. Hollister waved me down and turned to order
-the watch to work, when the man in the tops hailed again. He was in a
-better position to see into the drifting boat than anybody else.
-
-“I see something moving in that boat, sir!”
-
-“What do you see?” bawled Cap’n Si.
-
-“It’s something fluttering--a flag, or a rag. There it is!”
-
-There were light airs stirring. Suddenly something upon the broken mast
-moved. A flaw of wind fluttered something fastened there. Was it a
-signal of distress? Was some poor creature adrift in the half wrecked
-boat?
-
-I wondered what Cap’n Si would do. To ignore a flag of distress--to
-pass by the opportunity of rescuing a fellow-creature from death--would
-be an awful thing. Yet there might be nobody in the boat. I could see
-the old man doubted.
-
-And then the lookout hailed again:
-
-“The Gullwing’s dropping a boat, sir!”
-
-“That’s enough!” roared Cap’n Si, all in a bluster at once. “I won’t
-let Cap’n Joe do more’n me. Mr. Barney!” The second mate had followed
-him on deck. “Call away a boat’s crew.”
-
-“Aye, aye, sir!” was the second mate’s smart response.
-
-“Beat the Gullwing’s boat to that barge. Understand me? You git there
-first. I ain’t goin’ to let Joe Bowditch crow over me in Baltimore.
-Mebbe the boat’s wuth savin’ after all.”
-
-Before he had ceased speaking Mr. Barney had shouted down the fo’castle
-hatchway and his watch tumbled up. I had slid down the stays to the
-deck and was right beside the boat Mr. Barney had elected to launch. I
-wanted to go in that boat, but I belonged to the mate’s watch and knew
-I would not be selected.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XV
-
-_In Which We Have a Good Race In Earnest_
-
-
-And I had an idea that if I asked the captain to go in the boat, or
-suggested it to Mr. Barney, I’d get an immediate refusal. I had a
-decided belief that Captain Somes didn’t wish me to get aboard the
-Gullwing again. Not that he needed my services particularly--although
-my work was costing him nothing but my grub and the cast-off clothes I
-had been given; but Captain Si feared that Captain Joe needed me, and
-my remaining with the Seamew was crippling his rival. Which, by the
-way, was likely to be the facts in the case.
-
-So, with this scheme in my mind, I expect I was even more cautious than
-was necessary. I might have been unnoticed had I jumped right into the
-boat as it went overboard.
-
-But when I heard Mr. Barney call off the men’s names, I noted that Job
-Perkins was among the chosen. I had sized up Job for what he was. I
-grabbed him as he passed me on the run and shot into his ear:
-
-“Listen! ten dollars when we reach Baltimore if you’ll let me take your
-place in the boat.”
-
-“Huh?” said Job, wonderstruck for a moment. But it was only for a
-moment. The old fellow had all his wits about him and in working order.
-
-“It’s a bargain, boy,” he whispered, and the next moment he fell
-sprawling over a coil of rope and scrambled up again right before Mr.
-Barney.
-
-“Hullo! what’s the matter with you, old man?” demanded the second
-officer.
-
-“Ow-ouch!” groaned Job, rubbing his arm.
-
-“Hurt you?” snapped Mr. Barney.
-
-“By gravey! I _did_ wrench my arm,” groaned Job, his face writhing with
-an expression of pain.
-
-I stepped in at once. “I’ll take his place, sir,” I said.
-
-“All right!” cried the officer, without a glance, and I slid down the
-falls and seized the bow oar.
-
-In another moment the officer followed me, getting into the stern, and
-we cast off.
-
-“You git that boat for me, Mr. Barney!” bawled Cap’n Si, over our
-heads. “Don’t you let them fellers from the Gullwing beat ye.”
-
-“We’ll do our best,” responded Mr. Barney, waving his hand. Then to us
-he said: “Give way, men! See what you can do. Bend the ash!”
-
-Before we had left the deck of the Seamew we knew that the Gullwing’s
-boat was off ahead of us. It looked as though the drifting boat was
-about as far from one vessel as she was from the other. The air being
-so light, we would have lost time trying to beat down to the spot. The
-race was between the six-oared boats, and I do not believe any college
-regatta was ever pulled amid more intense excitement.
-
-At first, however, as we were so low in the water, we could not see our
-rival. Nor could we scarcely observe the object of our race.
-
-But over these gentle waves we could pull a mighty stroke, and I found
-that the men with me at the oars were practiced hands. The strokeman
-set a pace that made us bend our backs in good earnest. This was a race!
-
-Mr. Barney was using a steering oar, and using it well. He stood up to
-the work, and therefore he could see much farther than we at the oars.
-By glancing now and then over my left shoulder, however, I could see
-the black hulk of the drifting boat rising and falling upon the gentle
-waves.
-
-And at first I saw nothing about the boat to express life saving the
-fluttering rag. It was a flag. After some minutes of hard pulling it
-was revealed to us that it was a British flag, set union down.
-
-As I pulled I saw that Mr. Barney was looking across at some other
-object than the mysterious black craft. His eyes were squinted up as he
-gazed into the rising sun, and the expression of his face was mighty
-grim.
-
-“He sees the Gullwing’s boat,” I thought.
-
-“Pull, you fellows!” he suddenly barked at us. “Why don’t you pull?”
-
-And we _were_ pulling. I could stand the pace for a bit longer, I
-thought; but the stroke was certainly bending his back and driving his
-oar with a vigor that left little more to be expected from mortal man.
-
-“Pull!” yelled our mate. “Pull, or those lubbers will beat you to it.”
-
-There was no feathering of oars, or any fancy work. This was just the
-hard, deep pull of the deep-sea oarsman. We breathed heavily; the
-sweat poured from our limbs; we neither spoke nor looked back over our
-shoulders now. We became veritable pieces of mechanism, set to do this
-certain stroke, and to do it until we broke down completely!
-
-“Keep it up! Break your backs!” yelled the second mate.
-
-I had an idea that there was an added incentive for Mr. Barney’s
-excitement. His twin brother more than likely commanded the boat from
-the Gullwing. But we at the oars could not see her yet.
-
-Nearer and nearer we came to the drifting boat. Our craft sprang
-through the sea at the end of every stroke. Had one of the oars broken
-I believe we would have been capsized.
-
-Once more I glanced around. Not a sign of life in that floating mystery
-with its signal floating from the broken mast. But there _was_ a bit of
-canvas spread forward of that mast, like an awning.
-
-Mr. Barney saw me look back and he swore at me good and plenty.
-
-“You want us to lose this race, you sawney!” he exclaimed.
-
-I was convinced that, for his part, he was more anxious to beat the
-Gullwing’s crew--and incidentally his brother--than to save any life
-there might be remaining on the wreck.
-
-But perhaps I misjudged Mr. Alfred Barney. We were all excited. Even
-I, who had no reason for wishing to see the Seamew’s boat win, pulled
-my oar with every last ounce of strength I possessed. Mr. Barney had
-accused me without warrant of trying to throw the race.
-
-The two racing boats were not head-on to each other, but were
-approaching the wreck at an angle that now brought each in sight of the
-other. When the Gullwing’s boat flashed into the range of my eyes I saw
-half a dozen of the men I knew. There was Thankful Polk, heaven bless
-him, and Mr. Jim Barney at the steering oar. The sight of them made me
-feel good all over.
-
-But I could not see the wreck now without twisting my head around. And
-if I did that I knew I should bring the wrath of our second mate upon
-me. The Gullwings cheered. For a moment I did not know what for. Could
-they be winning?
-
-And then Thank’s jolly voice reached me across the stretch of sea:
-
-“Hurray, Clint! Go it, old boy! You’re a sight for sore eyes!”
-
-But I had no breath with which to answer. And I reckon if he had been
-pulling his oar as I was, he would not have been so boisterous.
-
-The strain of the last few minutes of the race was terrific. My breath
-came in great sobs, and I heard the other men with me groan as they
-strained at the heavy oars. We were about all in.
-
-“Pull, you tarriers!” barked Mr. Alf Barney again.
-
-“Keep it up, boys!” yelled Mr. Jim Barney in the other boat.
-
-I saw scowling looks exchanged between the twin brothers. It must be
-true, as Job Perkins had said, the two Barney boys were deadly enemies!
-
-Then suddenly our cox shouted: “In oars! Way all!”
-
-I felt the nose of the boat bump something behind me. I dropped my oar
-and turned to seize the broken gunwale of the drifting hulk we had
-pulled so hard to reach. We of the Seamew had won the race.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVI
-
-_In Which I Return to the Gullwing--and With My Arms Full_
-
-
-I hadn’t breath enough left at first to answer Thankful Polk’s hail.
-And when my eyes fell upon the contents of the drifting boat that we
-had pulled so far to reach, what I saw was not calculated to aid me to
-easy breathing. Lying upon his back, face upwards, in the glare of the
-morning sun, lay a man, bareheaded and barefooted, dead.
-
-And such an awful death as he must have died! His face was quite black,
-although he was a white man by nature, it was as though the blood had
-been congested in his face. His tongue had protruded slightly from
-between his firm, white teeth. His legs were drawn up as though in a
-convulsion and the corpse had stiffened that way. His limbs had not
-been composed by any kindly hand after the spirit had left its body.
-
-He was a sailor. There was tattooing on his chest and arms. He had a
-short, bushy beard. I believed at first glance that he was a British
-seaman. And almost at this first moment of glancing into the boat I
-made another discovery. I learned how the man had died.
-
-His tongue was not black; and although he was much emaciated, neither
-thirst nor hunger had hounded the sailor to his dreadful end.
-
-He wore a gully slung by a lanyard around his neck. That knife was
-twisted tightly in the cord, and the cord itself was imbedded in the
-flesh of the dead man’s throat. Actually a tournequet had been made of
-the knife and cord, and the sailor had been strangled. He was a horrid
-sight, as he lay with his feet to the empty stern and his touseled head
-thrown back over a seat.
-
-Perhaps many of the details of this awful scene were a matter of later
-observation; but it seems to me now as though everything about the dead
-man was photographed upon my brain at the first glance.
-
-And then my gaze roved beyond him. There was a piece of sailcloth laid
-across the bow of the open boat beyond the stump of the mast. It was
-dark under that awning. But right at the entrance lay something white
-and gold.
-
-Without waiting for any order from Mr. Barney, I stood up and leaped
-into the half wrecked boat. I heard none of the other men speak a
-word. All my attention was given to the object which my dazzled eyes
-now rested upon.
-
-A young girl--the prettiest, most appealing child I had ever seen--lay
-under the awning. Her head was toward me. Her face was as white as
-milk, and the blue veins showed plainly at her temples and were traced
-along her throat. Her cheeks were without an iota of color.
-
-She was all white--her face, her thin, ruffled dress--the bare arm from
-which the sleeve had been pushed back to her elbow. All white, save
-the great mass of her hair. That was gold--pure gold. Such a beautiful
-child I had never imagined before. She was twelve or thirteen years old.
-
-“What’s that you got there, Webb?” I heard Mr. Alf Barney shout.
-
-I had dropped on my knees beside the unconscious girl. I saw that she
-was only delicate and exhausted. There was a breaker of water lashed
-to the gunwale right beside her, and a cup with water in it. I saw no
-food; but I knew well enough that the girl was not dying of thirst. No
-more than the sailor had died of thirst!
-
-I gathered the girl up in my arms. She was a light weight. I thought
-she sighed and her eyelids fluttered.
-
-And then suddenly sounded a raucous bellow, in a strange tongue, from
-within the decked-over portion of the boat. Something moved. I leaped
-back and almost trod upon the dead man.
-
-Out from under the awning crept a tall, lean, lithe brown man, dressed
-in torn sailor togs, but with a dirty turban around his head. He was a
-wild-eyed, yelling fiend. In a moment there flashed out of his dress,
-from some secret place, a long, glittering blade. With this raised
-above his head he bounded in his bare feet the length of the boat after
-me.
-
-At that moment the boat from the Gullwing scraped alongside the wreck.
-As I whirled to escape this murderer, this boat was nearest to me.
-Thankful Polk, his red face transfixed with horror, shouted to me:
-
-“Here, Sharp! Quick! This way!”
-
-Their boat was really nearest me. I leaped into it. Thank shoved off
-with his oar and the boat and the wreck were separated by a growing
-streak of sea.
-
-The men in both boats all talked at once; and the two Mr. Barneys
-shouted; but above all the uproar I could hear the frenzied shrieks of
-the brown man in the turban.
-
-“Come back, here, Webb!” cried the second officer in the Seamew’s
-boat. “We’ll take that child with us.”
-
-“Sit down, Clint!” commanded Mr. Jim Barney, quietly. “You’ll have us
-swamped.”
-
-I obeyed him quickly. Thank smote me a hearty blow between the
-shoulders.
-
-“Sharp! you’re a daisy! I knowed they couldn’t never drown you,” he
-declared.
-
-But I couldn’t reply to him. I still held the girl in my arms. There
-seemed to be no good place there in the stern to lay her down. And she
-was so frail, and soft, and pretty! I had never seen such a delicate
-creature before.
-
-We were still moving from the wreck and the Seamew’s boat, the men
-backing water. There was a splash and a louder yell from the Seamew’s
-men. I glanced over my shoulder. I could see the turbanned head of the
-wild man and his thin, bare arms beating the water. He was swimming
-desperately after our boat.
-
-“That monkey’ll be drowned,” Thank cried.
-
-“We kin get away from him easy,” said another of the rowers.
-
-“He’ll be drowned,” I said to Mr. Barney. “We’ll have to take him in.”
-
-“I reckon that’s so, Webb,” said the second mate. “The Seamew is
-welcome to the old tub--and the dead man.”
-
-The brown man came to the side of our boat, panting and moaning. He was
-near spent.
-
-“I believe he belongs to this girl and he thinks we’re running off with
-her,” said Mr. Barney.
-
-“He’s crazy as he can be,” said Thank.
-
-“Help him in. See that he doesn’t have that knife. If he doesn’t
-behave, we can lash his wrists together,” said Mr. Barney.
-
-The foreign looking man was hauled in. He lay panting on the bottom,
-between Mr. Barney and I. We were being hailed from the other boat.
-
-“Let that Webb come back with us, you fellows!” cried Mr. Alf Barney.
-“Cap’n Si will be furious.”
-
-“He belongs to the Gullwing,” said our Mr. Barney, promptly. “You can’t
-have him.”
-
-“We’ll see about that--”
-
-“See about it, then,” said the officer, shortly. Then to his own crew
-he said: “Give way, men! Altogether, now.”
-
-We swept away on a graceful curve and headed for the Gullwing. Mr.
-Barney nodded to me with a smile.
-
-“You certainly had a close call for your life, Clint,” he said. “Luck
-was with you when you went overboard from the Gullwing, after all.
-Everybody gave you up for lost--save Thank there. He swore that if you
-went to the bottom you could walk ashore, somehow.”
-
-At that moment the brown man drew a longer breath and struggled to his
-knees. Mr. Barney reached forward to seize him; but I saw that the
-foreigner’s eyes glowed no longer with the wild light that had made him
-look so savage.
-
-“Sahib,” he said softly, “is Her Innocence safe? Is the Missee
-unharmed? Is it well with her?”
-
-I looked down at the child’s face. She was breathing quietly, but her
-eyes were still closed.
-
-“She is asleep. She does not seem to be harmed,” I said.
-
-“Sahib! I was overcome. I had watched so long. Two long weeks have
-we been in that boat. Water we had, but little food. That food I had
-brought myself for Missee. One man become touched of the finger of the
-gods and leaped overboard. The other desired the fragments of food
-which only remained for Her Innocence. I felt myself fast losing the
-thread of life. Then--the other man died.”
-
-I knew what he meant. I understood how that man had been strangled by
-the lanyard around his neck that the food might be saved for the girl.
-I guess this strange man was pretty nearly a savage; but I believed
-then--and I believe now--that he had done right.
-
-“I--Dao Singh--then fell asleep, Sahib. I believed it was to be my last
-sleep. But the Missee had her food and the water.”
-
-“I see,” I said, for he spoke only to me, even ignoring Mr. Barney.
-“Now you will both be saved. Our ship is at hand.”
-
-“It is well, Sahib,” he sighed. “Dao Singh--is the Sahib’s--servant--”
-
-He fell back into the bottom of the boat and his eyes closed. I feared
-he had died then and there; but Mr. Barney bent over him, opened his
-shirt, felt of his heart, and then nodded to me with encouragement.
-
-“He’s asleep,” he said. “Just done up--plucky brown devil. A Hindoo,
-I take it. These folks were from a British ship; but that boat had no
-name on her.”
-
-Half an hour later we pulled under the Gullwing’s rail. All hands were
-there to eagerly welcome us. We caught the falls and they hauled us up
-to the davits, heavy as the boatload was.
-
-As we swung inboard I leaped down to the deck, still bearing the
-unconscious girl in my arms.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVII
-
-_In Which We Learn the Particulars of the Wreck of the Galland_
-
-
-Captain Joe Bowditch smiled down broadly at me from the poop as
-I leaped to the deck; but when he saw the burden in my arms his
-countenance changed queerly.
-
-“What in the name o’ goodness you got there?” he barked.
-
-“A little girl, Captain Bowditch,” I replied.
-
-“A little--well! what d’ye think o’ that?” he gasped, waddling down the
-ladder. “Ye didn’t git that aboard the Seamew? Nor out o’ the ocean
-when ye went overboard, neither?”
-
-“No, sir,” said Mr. Barney, who had followed me. “She is what we found
-in that drifting boat--part of what we found, at least.”
-
-“A gal! Moses ter Moses, and all hands around!” groaned the captain.
-“Whatever will we do with a gal aboard the Gullwing?”
-
-“I don’t see how we could have left her there, Captain,” laughed Mr.
-Barney.
-
-“Now, don’t ye cackle!” snapped the old man. “Why didn’t you leave her
-for Cap’n Si? He’s a man that’s more used to female children than I be.
-Why, Cap’n Si’s sister married a man whose brother got spliced to a
-widder woman that had twin gal babies. He’s more fitten to take such a
-responsibility than what I be.”
-
-He looked as though he thought he had proved his case, too. But I was
-too much worried over the condition of the pretty creature in my arms
-to pay much attention to his growling.
-
-And when the Hindoo was brought inboard, Captain Joe went off into
-another fit. “Holy smoke!” he yelled. “Another useless critter to feed.
-Didn’t you leave nothin’ in that boat for the Seamew?”
-
-“We left a dead man,” chuckled one of the men.
-
-“Well--we could have buried him easy,” grunted the old man. “Take that
-nigger below and find out what seems to be the matter with him.”
-
-But his bark was a whole lot worse than his bite. He hurried away
-to open the spare cabin for the girl, and I followed him into the
-afterhouse, still bearing her in my arms.
-
-Mr. Bates, who had the deck, came to look down upon her pretty, white
-face as I started below.
-
-“Bless her!” he murmured. “Have a care with her, Clint. Glad to see you
-again, boy. Ah! that pretty one ought to bring us luck, sure enough.”
-
-“Come right this way, boy, and lay her in the bed,” ordered Captain
-Bowditch. “My! she looks bad--but pretty! Sh! is she asleep?”
-
-And then the trembling lids, with their long golden lashes, opened
-slowly. With her complexion and hair, I had expected to look into blue
-eyes. But I was astonished to find that the little creature’s orbs were
-a beautiful, deep, deep brown, with golden sparks in their depths. My
-face was so close to hers at the moment her lids parted that I could
-see the reflection of my own countenance in the pupils.
-
-“My soul!” murmured Captain Joe, looking over my shoulder, “she’s jest
-the prettiest thing I ever see.”
-
-Her wan face changed slowly. A faint color was breathed over it. She
-gazed steadily into my countenance, and it was evident that I did not
-frighten her. She put up one hand and touched my cheek. I tell you, the
-touch thrilled me!
-
-Then her eyes closed again, she sank deeper into the pillow, and was
-again asleep.
-
-“Here, boy!” croaked the master of the Gullwing, trying to speak
-softly. “You run and tell the doctor to kill a chicken and make some
-broth--strong broth, now. Don’t want no ‘phantom soup’--suthin’ that
-tastes like a chicken did more than wade through a gallon of water on
-stilts. If he don’t make it good I’ll be in his wool!”
-
-I ran to do his bidding. I knew very well that the little girl would
-have the very best of everything there was upon the big schooner.
-
-In the dog-watch I held a regular reception. The men were eager to hear
-the story of my adventure overboard, and old Tom Thornton declared I
-might live to be “a second Methuserlum” and never experience a closer
-call than that. Old Stronson shook his head.
-
-“De poy iss fey,” he muttered, shaking his head.
-
-“He’s sure a lucky youngster,” declared Bob Promise. “No wonder he got
-the best of me when we had our set-to.”
-
-Thank and I had much to talk over. I know my chum had suffered in
-spirit when it seemed that I was drowned. He never would admit to the
-others that he had given up hope of seeing me again. Now he clung close
-around me and did not seem to want to let me out of his sight--not
-even long enough for me to go down to take a look at Dao Singh.
-
-“Let that Jasper be, Sharp,” Thank drawled. “You can’t kill a nigger
-easy--sleep won’t hurt him. If he was pretty near two weeks on watch in
-that boat, no wonder he’s all in.”
-
-“He is a faithful creature,” I said. “And he must love his mistress.”
-
-“That Jasper’s taken a fancy to you, too,” Thank said. “You’re ‘it’
-with him.”
-
-I did not realize at the time how very right Thank was, and what it
-meant to be canyonized by Dao Singh.
-
-The report came forward that the little girl had taken some of the
-broth the cook had made, was seemingly satisfied with her surroundings,
-and had gone to sleep again. Mr. Barney told me that Cap’n Bowditch was
-peeking in at her every hour or so, and that it was plain the old man
-was prepared to get down on the deck and let his little visitor walk on
-him--if she so desired.
-
-But in the morning watch they called me and I found that the girl
-wanted to go up on deck, but had asked to be lifted by the boy who had
-taken her from the wrecked boat. She remembered me, then! And I had not
-really supposed she had seen me until after I had lain her down in the
-berth and she had opened her eyes.
-
-She had had some breakfast. There was a little flush in her face. She
-looked much brighter, and when she saw me she smiled delightfully.
-
-“I know your face!” she said, and although her voice was weak, it
-was as sweet as a tinkling silver bell. “I was sure I could not be
-mistaken.”
-
-“Mistaken?” I asked, puzzled.
-
-“Yes. You were the boy I saw before--oh, long, long before I came here.”
-
-That puzzled me, and I suppose my face must have shown my surprise. She
-laughed--a pretty, resonant chime. I fell for that voice of hers!
-
-And then what she said about seeing me so long before got me going, too.
-
-“Say, you never saw me before I got you out of that boat,” I declared.
-
-“Oh, yes, I did,” she returned, confidently. “I haven’t been aboard
-this big ship long, have I?”
-
-“Only since yesterday,” I admitted.
-
-“That is what the nice captain told me,” she returned, as though
-satisfied.
-
-“Then you’ve seen me just once before. When I brought you below
-yesterday.”
-
-“But you took me out of the boat?”
-
-“Yes.”
-
-“And held me all the time we were getting here?”
-
-“Yes, ma’am!”
-
-“I knew it,” she breathed, smiling up into my face again. “I knew it
-couldn’t be all just a dream.”
-
-The captain had fixed a chair himself, with blankets and the like, in
-the shade of the afterhouse. There I laid her down and then, having no
-further orders, would have gone forward to my own place. But she clung
-to my hand.
-
-“You sit down here on the deck beside me, tell me your name, and all
-about you,” she said. “For although I saw you so long ago, I never
-learned who you were.”
-
-I looked up at Mr. Gates and the Captain and slyly tapped my forehead.
-I believed she was lightheaded. The old man nodded and said, gruffly
-enough, for he was deeply moved:
-
-“You stay with her, Clint. Do jest what she wants ye to.”
-
-“Clint?” she repeated, questioningly. “Is that your name?”
-
-“Clinton Webb,” I replied.
-
-“Clinton is pretty. You are English?”
-
-“I should say not!” I exclaimed. “American.”
-
-“Oh, yes! I am an English girl; but I have lived in British India most
-all my life.”
-
-“That’s it, Miss,” I said, knowing that the captain and mate were dying
-to hear her story. “You tell us all about it. How did you come in that
-boat? And what vessel was it that was wrecked?”
-
-“We sailed in the Galland, a big steamship, from Calcutta,” said the
-girl softly. “I was with friends. They were taking me home--‘home’
-means England to all British India people who are white.”
-
-“Then you were going to relatives?”
-
-“I do not know. I am not sure. My father had some people--_once_. But
-they treated him unkindly, I believe. He had not heard from them for
-years. My father was Captain Erskin Duane. He died very, very suddenly.
-My mother had been a long time dead,” and the tears now began to fill
-her eyes and creep down her pale cheeks.
-
-“Friends who were about to go to England took me on the Galland with
-them. These were Mr. Suffix, and Mr. and Mrs. Traine, and Cecelia
-Traverstone.”
-
-“Were they saved?” asked Mr. Gates, quietly.
-
-“I do not know. I think not. I think the steamer’s boilers blew up and
-smashed most of the boats and liferafts, so that few were saved,” said
-the girl, simply.
-
-“You poor child!” breathed Captain Bowditch, blowing his nose right
-afterward like a fog siren.
-
-“I am Phillis Duane,” she said, after a moment. “I traveled with my
-_ayer_ and Dao Singh, who would not leave me when father died. He had
-always served the captain. We lived up country from Calcutta. I do not
-think that my father was very well acquainted with the people I sailed
-with, after all. I was alone, and they were just kind to me.”
-
-“And you don’t know what you were going to do when you reached
-England--whom you would meet?” queried Mr. Gates, gravely.
-
-“No. It was all in the hands of my friends,” she said, shaking her
-head. “And I am quite sure they never got away from the Galland. I
-would not, had it not been for Dao Singh.”
-
-“That nigger, eh?” grunted the captain.
-
-“He is a Hindoo. He is a very intelligent man in his own language
-and among his own people. I have heard my father say so. I fear he
-sacrificed his caste by attending on the captain--and on me.”
-
-“But he saved you from the wreck?” I urged, keeping her to the story of
-the wreck.
-
-“Yes. When the boilers blew up (the steamship had been afire all night)
-Dao Singh ran into the cabin and hurried my _ayer_ and me out on the
-deck. Some men were lowering a boat. It was damaged some.
-
-“Singh tried to put the _ayer_ and me in it. But I believe she must
-have fallen overboard, or been pushed overboard. There was much
-confusion. I was scared and cried. When I understood a little better
-about matters, we were in the boat, drifting without oars, and the
-Galland, all a mass of flames, seemed to be going down, stern-foremost,
-under the sea.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVIII
-
-_In Which I Become Better Acquainted With Phillis Duane_
-
-
-There was little more to be learned, it seemed, about the actual
-tragedy of the burned steamship. How the fire had been started she
-could not say. She had been asleep. Her nurse, or _ayer_ awoke her at
-the height of the stampede of passengers for the deck. Whether the
-officers and bulk of the crew had been killed by the explosion, or had
-abandoned the ship and her human freight, she did not know.
-
-The Galland had been some months on the voyage, having circumnavigated
-the world, when Phillis Duane and her friends boarded her at Calcutta.
-She had touched at Chinese ports, and again at Tahiti. She was a
-British tramp steamship and Phillis seemed to think that her home port
-was Edinburgh. It might be that the lost girl’s friends were Scotch,
-and that the friends she traveled with were likewise Scotch, and that
-is why they had selected the ill-fated Galland to get home on.
-
-“Do you suppose that nigger knows?” demanded Captain Bowditch, of Mr.
-Gates, in a whisper.
-
-“Doubtful if you get anything out of him,” returned the mate.
-
-“Understands English, doesn’t he?” growled the skipper.
-
-“And speaks it. But these Hindoo servants don’t really know anything
-about the English sahibs they serve. The Britisher governs India in a
-boiled shirt and evening clothes. He is about as human to the natives
-as one of their own cast-iron gods. That’s how Johnny Bull has been
-able to boss the several million of blood-thirsty inhabitants of his
-colonies. No. The nigger wouldn’t be likely to know anything.”
-
-“But why did he follow the girl to wait on her, then, Mr. Gates?” I
-asked.
-
-“Because he’s a nigger--an inferior tribe. That’s the nature of ’em.”
-
-I did not believe it. I had never read that the people of Hindoostan
-were particularly inferior to the whites. And Dao Singh looked to me
-as though he knew a whole lot more than the ordinary European. I was
-mistaken if he was not the best educated person aboard the Gullwing at
-that moment!
-
-But it might be that the Hindoo knew nothing of the cause of the wreck
-and of what had become of her other passengers and the crew. Unless
-some other boats had been picked up from the lost Galland, her case
-was likely to be another of those unexplained tragedies of the deep
-which fill the columns of our newspapers for a few issues and then are
-forgotten--so easily forgotten!
-
-The officers and I had held the brief conversation noted above when we
-had withdrawn out of earshot of the little girl. The cook had brought,
-her a beaten egg to drink as a “pick-me-up” between breakfast and
-dinner. When she had finished it she looked around for me again.
-
-“Go on, boy,” said the captain. “Keep her amused. Poor little thing.”
-
-“And encourage her to talk with you, Clint,” advised Mr. Gates. “Put
-what she says down in your log. If you do that, you may gradually get
-together a connected story of what and who she is. Such information
-will be valuable in aiding her to find her friends.”
-
-I thought well of that idea, and promised to do so; though I wondered
-how the mate knew I kept a log. I had taken notes of my adventures ever
-since I had been blown out to sea on my little sloop, the Wavecrest;
-but at this time I did not know what an aid to memory a log--or
-diary--would be. By the way, a seaman never calls it “logbook;” the
-daybook of a ship at sea is merely a “log.” One of the most popular
-magazines published has a correspondence department called “The
-Logbook,” and that makes the sailor smile!
-
-I had no objection to being attentive to our little passenger. I judged
-her to be a mighty plucky little girl. Of course, her father had been
-dead long enough for the first of her grief to have been assuaged
-before she had sailed from India. And the friends she had sailed with
-had won her heart; therefore she had not loved them enough to miss them
-much now.
-
-She had endured privations in the drifting boat remarkably well. She
-told me of the man that had gone crazy and leaped overboard. She did
-not seem to know that the men aboard the boat with her had had no food.
-I began to have a remarkably high opinion of Dao Singh. Yet I knew very
-well that he had strangled the man I had found dead in the boat and had
-been unable to throw the heavy body overboard.
-
-There’s a vast difference between the negro race and the Hindoo, I
-thought, remembering Mr. Gates’ words, “This Dao Singh is a remarkable
-man, or _I_ am much mistaken.”
-
-Mr. Barney came along and spoke to the little one, and she seemed to
-like him--as I had--at first sight. Afterward the young second mate
-talked a little in private with me.
-
-“Mr. Robbins says she takes to you and is willing to talk with you,
-Webb.”
-
-“Yes, sir.”
-
-“And you’re trying to draw out from her her history?”
-
-“I am, sir.”
-
-“It’s a good idea. There may be some difficulty in getting trace of her
-friends.”
-
-“Well, she sha’n’t suffer, if her friends don’t turn up,” I said, with
-emphasis. “My mother is rich and she will be glad to take Phillis
-herself, I have no doubt.”
-
-“That’s a good thing, too,” said Mr. Barney, heartily. “But you
-understand, my lad, that there may be friends expecting the girl in
-the Old Country, that she knows nothing about. We shall have to report
-the case to the British consul at Baltimore, and he will look up her
-folks--if she has any. In case there should be none, somebody might
-have to step in to save the child from being sent to an institution--in
-England, I presume. They would scarcely send her back to India.”
-
-“Not much, sir!” I exclaimed. “They will have to show pretty good
-grounds for taking her from mother----”
-
-“Why, you don’t know whether your mother will take her or not,” laughed
-Mr. Barney.
-
-“Yes she will,” I assured him. “She’d love to have a girl like Phillis.”
-
-And I had no fear on that score. Mother couldn’t help but fall in love
-with such a dear little thing as Phillis Duane. I was glad to see that
-Phillis seemed fond of me, too. I had never had a sister, and it struck
-me just then that a sister was what I had missed all my life!
-
-We were getting on fine together and she was chattering to me just
-as though she had known me for years, when I spied a figure coming
-waveringly down the deck from the forward house.
-
-“It’s poor Dao Singh!” exclaimed Phillis. And then she called to him in
-her sweet voice; but what she said none of us could understand as it
-was in his own tongue.
-
-He glided rather than walked along the deck. Somehow he had obtained
-clean garments; and he had washed his turban. Altogether he looked very
-neat and trim. But he was very weak and cadaverous. That Hindoo had
-come pretty near starving to death, and no mistake.
-
-When he had spoken to the girl in reply, bowing low before her, he
-turned quickly to me. I was not only astonished, but I felt mighty
-foolish when he dropped gracefully on his knees and touched the deck
-lightly with his forehead right at my feet.
-
-“Dao Singh is the servant of Webb Sahib,” he said, softly.
-
-“For the love of Mike, get up!” I gasped, and I heard Thankful Polk
-giggling behind me, while Mr. Barney laughed outright. “You don’t want
-to kneel to _me_.”
-
-Singh arose and stood, with dignity, before me.
-
-“Webb Sahib has but to command,” he said, quietly. “He is the friend
-and protector of Her Innocence,” indicating Phillis with a scarcely
-perceptible gesture. “His word is law to Dao Singh.”
-
-“All right, if that is so,” I said, glad that he had spoken too low
-for anybody else to hear. “If my word’s law, just you treat me with a
-little less deference. I’m only a man before the mast on this ship,
-and it won’t do to be kowtowing to me and treating me as you do the
-Memsahib. That’s all right for _her_, Dao Singh; but I’m not used to
-it.”
-
-“It is as the Sahib pleases,” he replied, gravely. “He has but to
-command.”
-
-I began to wonder if a Hindoo, who was so enthusiastically my friend,
-might not prove to be something of a nuisance in the end!
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIX
-
-_In Which I Learn Something More About the Barney Twins_
-
-
-The captain allowed Singh to wait upon his “Missee” to his heart’s
-content, and I heard the two mates laughing over the fact that the
-Hindoo insisted upon acting as steward and waiting upon the Captain
-Sahib at table. The Old Man wasn’t used to having a man standing behind
-his chair at meals and it near took his appetite away at first. But
-Phillis being in the cabin and soon taking her meals at the first
-table, pleased the officers immensely, I could see.
-
-Forward, Singh was forever trying to do little things for me, and
-learning that I thought a good deal of Thankful Polk, the Hindoo
-included my chum in his voluntary services. He looked over our clothes
-and mended them, and insisted upon doing our washing.
-
-“That Jasper is just as handy as any house-broke nigger I ever saw,”
-declared Thank. “My folks owned slaves before the war; but I don’t
-know but being waited on by one is going to be too rich for my blood.”
-
-Thank saw no difference between a Hindoo and a Negro; anything off
-color was a “Jasper” to him. But it tickled him when Singh called him
-“Polk Sahib.” With the other hands he was never familiar; but nobody
-save Bob Promise treated him unkindly. Bob was a bully, and that mean
-streak in him was bound to show on the surface every once in awhile.
-
-Meantime the old Gullwing was snoring away up the coast of South
-America. Not that the land was in sight, for we were miles and miles
-off shore; but the course she followed was parallel to the coast. The
-Seamew was not sighted for days at a stretch, and we did not know
-whether she was ahead of us or astern. I had an idea, however, that
-during the favorable weather she was walking away from us at a pretty
-lively gait.
-
-Since I had returned from my sojourn aboard the Seamew I thought that
-Mr. Barney treated me differently. That is, when we were off duty and
-chance threw us together. Before my accident I had put on the gloves
-with him on several occasions, and he had been kind enough to say that
-I was as good a sparring partner as he had ever had. We took up this
-exercise again, as the weather remained so favorable.
-
-He was curious about the attitude of the Seamew’s company toward us,
-and whether they were as eager to win the race to Baltimore as were the
-men aboard the Gullwing.
-
-“More so,” I told him. “They mean to beat us if they can--from Cap’n
-Somes all down the line.”
-
-He threw off the gloves and said, with a side glance at me:
-
-“My brother, too?”
-
-“Yes, _sir_.”
-
-“Just as eager as the others?”
-
-“Just as eager, sir.”
-
-He was silent a moment, as I got into my shirt, and then he shot at me:
-
-“What did you think of my brother, Alf Webb?”
-
-I was rather taken aback for a moment. Then I saw that he expected a
-straight answer and I did not like to say that I did not like Mr. Alf
-as well as I did him. So I stammered:
-
-“I--I thought there was something troubling Mr. Alfred’s mind.”
-
-“Aye?” returned Mr. Barney, cocking his eye. “There’s something
-troubling both our minds, I reckon.” And then, after a moment’s
-silence, he asked: “Will the Seamew beat us, Webb?”
-
-“I hope not!” I cried. “But the spirit among the crew of the Seamew is
-different from ours. Cap’n Somes would take any advantage he could to
-beat us; so would Mr. Hollister and--and----”
-
-“And my brother?”
-
-“I--I am afraid so. That is the way it impressed me,” I admitted.
-
-“Alf didn’t use to be like that,” said Mr. Barney, gravely. “But he and
-I have been at outs for some time. It’s a bad, bad affair,” he added,
-more to himself than to me. “And it’s Uncle Jothan’s fault. Confound
-that old man, anyway!” he completed, with a good deal of emphasis.
-
-Then it was just as Job Perkins had told me! The rivalry between the
-Barney twins was fostered by their rich uncle. I had no comment to
-make--it wasn’t my place. But Mr. Barney seemed to wish to talk to
-somebody, and perhaps because I was so near his own age (he could not
-have been twenty-three yet) and came from people who were more like his
-own class, he warmed toward me for the moment. Perhaps, too, I am a
-sympathetic listener.
-
-“Alf and I,” said Mr. Barney, thoughtfully, “have always been more than
-brothers. We’ve been _friends_. There’s a difference. We understand
-each other fully--or always have until now. I never had any other chum,
-nor did he. We have been just as close to each other all our lives as
-the day we were born.
-
-“I guess we had to be,” he added, thoughtfully. “There wasn’t anybody
-else for us to get close to. Our mother died soon after we were born.
-Father was lost in that old leaky bucket belonging to the firm, the
-Timothy K.--named after T. K. Knight, who used to be head of Barney,
-Blakesley & Knight before Uncle Jothan worked up in the firm.
-
-“And that’s what makes the old man so crazy now. He wants a Barney to
-take his place so that another Knight won’t boss things. He’s nutty on
-it--that’s what he is!
-
-“Uncle Jothan has had the care of us since we were small, you see. It’s
-nothing to his credit, however. Father left some property--sufficient
-to give Alf and me our education and set us out into the world with a
-little something to rattle in our pants’ pockets besides a bunch of
-keys!
-
-“Old Uncle Jothan tried to set us boys at each other long ago. He tried
-his best to set one off against the other--to make Alf sore on me, or
-me sore on Alf. We didn’t see what he was getting at, at first.
-
-“But he didn’t succeed very well. He made his favor, and his money, and
-his influence an object for us to struggle for. As it happened, we just
-wouldn’t struggle. We would not be rivals. What one had, t’other had.
-And that satisfied us--until last year,” and Mr. Barney shook his head
-dolefully.
-
-“When we got our tickets the old man was crazy to find out if one of
-us passed better than another. We were about equal, I reckon. What one
-knows about seamanship, the other knows. In navigation I’m sure we
-stood equal.
-
-“That didn’t satisfy Uncle Jothan. The last day we saw Baltimore he had
-us to breakfast with him. He was more ornery that morning than ever
-before.
-
-“‘You two boys make me sick!’ he said to us. ‘I believe you try your
-blamedest to keep even in everything.’
-
-“‘And what if we do?’ I asked him. ‘Ain’t that as it should be? We’re
-twins.’
-
-“‘You’re a pair of twin fools,’ says he, with his usual politeness.
-‘One of you don’t know which side of his slice of bread the butter’s
-on.’
-
-“I looked at mine. ‘The top side,’ I says, ‘so far,’ and Alf laughed.
-
-“‘And you’ll find it butter side down, if you don’t have a care,’
-snarled Uncle Jothan. ‘I got about tired of waiting for one of you to
-show some sense. I tell you there’s only room for one of you in the
-firm, and that one is going to handle my money. The other is going to
-be a poor man all his life.’
-
-“‘Which one’s going to be poor, and which one rich?’ Alf asked him.
-
-“‘You might as well tell us which will be rich, Uncle,’ I said,
-laughing. ‘For if it’s Alf, then I can begin to borrow from him right
-now.’
-
-“‘That’s right,’ says Brother Alf. ‘What’s mine is yours.’
-
-“That really made the old man mad, I expect. He pretty near gnashed his
-teeth.
-
-“‘I believe I’ve got a pair of totally condemned fools for nephews!’ he
-yelled, only he put it even stronger.
-
-“Oh, he was mad! I saw that we’d gone too far with him.
-
-“‘Never mind, Uncle,’ I said, soothingly. ‘We’ll both do our best for
-you----’
-
-“‘And your “best” will be just exactly alike,’ he cried. ‘When you
-get your mate’s tickets it will be the same, and in the end I’ll have
-a couple of masters of windjammers as near alike as old Somes and
-Bowditch. What one can do the other can do. Ye stood just the same in
-your books at school, and you stand just the same in your rating at
-sea.’
-
-“I expect the old man was pretty well heated up. But we just laughed as
-though it was a joke.
-
-“‘I tell you what,’ says he, pushing back his chair. ‘You sha’n’t fool
-me no more. One of you is going to take his place in the firm at the
-end of this v’yge you are beginning. One of you will win and the other
-will lose. And I’ll never let a penny of my money get into the hands of
-the fellow that loses.’
-
-“Oh, he was quite in earnest, we could see. Alf looked at me and shook
-his head. It was past laughing at.
-
-“‘The Gullwing and the Seamew,’ says uncle, ‘are putting to sea on the
-same day. They will practically make the same voyage. Now listen to
-me! Whichever of you boys steps ashore at Baltimore at the end of the
-voyage, that boy will be my heir, and the other sha’n’t have a cent.
-Now, that’s final. One of you has got to win, whether you want to, or
-not. I’ll settle it myself.’
-
-“And with that he walked off and left us, too mad to even bid us
-good-bye,” said Mr. Barney.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XX
-
-_In Which Phillis Tells Me of Her Dream_
-
-
-I thought Mr. Barney had finished his story, he was so long silent. I
-saw, however, that he was still thinking of his brother, and I was not
-sure whether he was expecting a word of sympathy, or not. I reckoned he
-had been talking more to relieve his mind than for any other purpose.
-And finally he went on with it:
-
-“Alf and I talked it over as we walked down to the docks. I told him
-I was sick of Uncle Jothan’s nagging. I wished he’d pick the one he
-wanted and close the discussion. I believed the price we’d have to pay
-for his money was too great, anyway.
-
-“‘But money’s a good thing,’ says Alf. ‘And Uncle Jothan has got a good
-deal of it.’
-
-“‘I believe too much money spoils folks, Alf,’ says I.
-
-“‘We could stand some spoiling,’ he returns, laughing.
-
-“‘Look at uncle himself,’ says I. ‘He’s spoiled.’
-
-“‘I’m not afraid of being spoiled by it,’ says Alf.
-
-“‘I believe it would hurt you as quick as anybody,’ I told him. And
-that riled him, though I had no thought that it would.
-
-“‘Speak for yourself, Jim,’ says he. ‘Money’s worth going after.’
-
-“‘We’ve had everything equal so far, Alf,’ says I. ‘I’m not hungry for
-his money.’
-
-“‘And I suppose you think I am?’ and then I saw he _was_ miffed.
-
-“‘The one that tries to get the best of the other for the sake of Uncle
-Jothan’s money, will show he’s hungry,’ I said.
-
-“‘Then call it what you like, Jim!’ he cries. ‘I’m going after it.’
-
-“‘How?’ says I.
-
-“‘I’m going to beat you back to Baltimore,’ says he.
-
-“‘I’ll be hard to beat,’ I told him.
-
-“‘Wait and see!’ cried Alf, and with that he flung off from me and went
-his way to the Seamew alone.
-
-“I had to do an errand. When I got aboard the Gullwing the two
-schooners were just about to pull out. It was then old Cap’n Si made
-his bet with Cap’n Joe. I believe Alf put him up to it. When I saw
-Alf in Buenos Ayres I told him so, and he didn’t deny it,” said Mr.
-Barney, sorrowfully.
-
-“When we met in the other ports we had words. I’m blamed sorry now, but
-it’s too late to patch it up. I’ll tell you honest, Webb, I don’t care
-who gets Uncle Jothan’s money and the job with the firm; but I’m going
-to not let Alf beat me to Baltimore if I can help it.”
-
-He went aft then without another word; but I did a good deal of
-thinking about the friction between the two Barneys. Privately I liked
-Mr. Jim Barney the better of the two; but it was a wicked shame that
-the head of Barney, Blakesley & Knight should have set the twins by
-their ears in this way. Money was at the root of the trouble. Mr.
-Jothan Barney seemed about to devote his wealth to as bad a cause as my
-grandfather had tried to devote _his_ property.
-
-The Gullwing struck a streak of headwinds soon after this and we
-wallowed along without making much headway. That made us all feel
-pretty sure. It was a chance that the Seamew might have forged so far
-ahead of us that she had escaped these contrary winds entirely.
-
-Captain Bowditch was on deck almost all the time. His better seamanship
-began to be displayed now. He took advantage of every flaw in the wind.
-He had us making sail, and reefing down, most of the time, and Bob
-Promise grumbled that we topmen had better stay up there in the rigging
-all the time, and have our meals brought to us by the cook.
-
-We saw nothing of the Seamew, and that added to our anxiety, too. Days
-passed and we crossed the line, under the heat of a tropical sun that
-fairly stewed the pitch out of the deck planks. Dao Singh seemed the
-only person aboard that accepted the heat with good temper.
-
-We rigged an awning for our passenger, and Phillis lived under it
-both day and night. She was getting plump and hearty, however; surely
-the voyage was doing her no harm. And she was the sweetest tempered,
-jolliest little thing one could imagine. It cheered a fellow up and
-made him ashamed to be grouchy, just to be near her.
-
-She liked Thankful Polk, and he amused her by the hour. The officers
-were pretty easy on Thank and I as long as we were with her. To me she
-clung as though I really was her brother--and I was proud that she so
-favored me.
-
-Phillis told me much of her life in India--as far back as she could
-remember it. She had come out from England when she was very small. On
-her last birthday she had been twelve. But little that she could tell
-me would help in finding her relatives--if she had any.
-
-Her father, Captain Erskin Duane, had not been in active service. Not
-as far as she knew, at least. He had been an invalid for months; but
-had died very suddenly. There seemed to have been few army friends, and
-the people she had sailed with from Calcutta she had hardly ever seen
-before the captain’s death.
-
-I had tried pumping Dao Singh about the private history of the little
-girl; but either he knew nothing about the captain’s affairs, or he
-would not tell me. He was as simple, apparently, as a child about his
-own expectations. He had insisted upon accompanying the little Memsahib
-in her voyage “because she needed him.” _Why_ he thought she needed him
-he could not, or would not, explain.
-
-For my part I told Phillis everything about myself, and recounted, from
-time to time, all the adventures through which I had been since leaving
-Bolderhead. I told her much about my mother, too, and about Darringford
-House, and our summer home on Bolderhead Neck.
-
-I assured her that I should take her at once to my mother when we
-landed and that I knew my mother would be delighted to give her a home
-with us. This seemed to please the little girl greatly.
-
-“Then we shall really be brother and sister, sha’n’t we?” she cried.
-
-“Of course,” I said.
-
-“That will be splendid! For, do you know, Clinton, I think you are the
-very nicest brother I could have picked out. You are just as nice as I
-dreamed you would be.”
-
-“There!” said I. “You have said that before. How do you mean, that you
-_dreamed_ about me?”
-
-“So I did. Only it was a dream that came true.”
-
-“You mean that you dreamed of me when you were aboard that boat?”
-
-“Oh, no! it was long before that. It was soon after we left Calcutta
-that I saw you,” she said, confidently.
-
-“Why, Philly!” I exclaimed. “That’s impossible, you know.”
-
-“But I _did_ dream about you,” she returned, seriously. “I knew that I
-was in a little boat. I thought I was all alone on the great ocean. And
-I was frightened, and sick--just as I _was_ frightened and sick when
-the time came. But you came to me, and told me you would save me, and
-you held me in your arms just as you _did_ hold me afterward all the
-way to this ship.”
-
-She was so positive that she had dreamed it all before, that I saw
-it was no use to gainsay it. And then, why should I contradict her?
-Perhaps she had had some secret and wonderful assurance that she would
-be saved from the wreck. I did not understand the clairvoyant part of
-it, or whatever it might be; so I did not touch upon the subject again.
-
-It was after that that the great gale struck us and the staunch
-Gullwing was battered continually for a week. We ran almost under bare
-poles for a time, and fortunately the gale favored us. But we lost our
-mizzen topmast completely and some of our other rigging was wrecked.
-
-Phillis had to remain below during this storm, and she was sick again.
-She cried so for me that the captain--kind old man that he was--let
-me go down to her whenever I could be spared from the deck. The child
-seemed to feel that she was perfectly safe if I was with her.
-
-Her constant trust in me made a strong impression upon my mind. Nor was
-it an unpleasant impression. Nobody had ever leaned before on me as
-this child did--not even my mother. It made me feel more manly and put
-me on my very best behavior.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXI
-
-_In Which the Sister Ships Once More Race Neck to Neck_
-
-
-That gale hit the Gullwing harder than any blow she had been through
-(so Mr. Barney said) since she had left Baltimore. We could not do much
-toward making repairs until the gale had blown out; we only cleared
-away the wreckage aloft, reefed everything snug, and let her drive.
-
-Captain Bowditch worried like an old hen with a mess of ducklings. I
-don’t know when the old man slept. He was on deck every moment of his
-own watch, and I could hear him often roaring orders during our watch
-below.
-
-This was the time when the fact that the Gullwing was short-handed made
-the crew groan. It was up and down at all hours for us. If there was a
-lull in the gale we were yanked out and sent aloft to risk an inch more
-canvas. Cap’n Joe coaxed her along every chance he saw. The thought of
-getting ahead of the Seamew obsessed the Old Man’s mind while he _was_
-awake, that was sure!
-
-We discussed our chances forward with much eagerness, too. The Seamew
-had left us behind during the fair weather; we could make up our minds
-to that. But now we had a better chance. The Gullwing was better
-worked, short of hands as she was, than the Seamew.
-
-I remembered vividly how Cap’n Si Somes hopped about, and bawled
-orders, and seemed to get in his own way when a squall came up, or the
-weather was unfavorable. He was a more nervous man that our skipper;
-and, I believed, he was nowhere near so good a seaman. At least, I had
-got that idea in my head, and comparing the actions of the two skippers
-in a squall, I guessed any unprejudiced person would have accepted my
-view as correct.
-
-We came out of this blow at last, fair weather returned, and Phillis
-had her awning re-rigged, and was able to come on deck again, although
-the Atlantic billows were tumbling heavily.
-
-All hands were busy on the new rigging. The captain had got up a spare
-spar and Old Tom Thornton and Stronson, went to work on that. The
-captain was determined to get up a new mizzen topmast and bend on new
-sails. Every square inch of canvas spread to the favoring breeze would
-aid us in the race home.
-
-We had gotten now into the greatest ocean current in the world--the
-Gulf Stream. Ocean currents are mysterious phenomena. The source of
-energy required to set and keep the vast masses of water in motion has
-been productive of endless discussion.
-
-Temperature, barometric pressure, attractive force of the moon, have
-all been advanced as bringing about ocean currents. Seamen believe that
-it is the wind that brings about certain oceanic movements. But the
-winds do not explain the reason entirely--not even in any single case.
-As to the direct action of the wind on the surface of the sea alone,
-it has been shown that with a wind blowing at twenty-five miles an
-hour the surface water would have a movement of not more than fifteen
-miles in the twenty-four hours! The Gulf Stream is the greatest of the
-Atlantic currents, if not the greatest current on the wet portion of
-the globe. It is really a wonderful river--a river flowing through an
-ocean. Its temperature is different from the surrounding waters, it is
-of a different color, and the edge of it can be noted almost exactly
-wherever a ship crosses into or out of the Gulf Stream.
-
-This warm current starts between the coast of Cuba and the Florida
-reefs, and certainly with this mighty current the wind has absolutely
-nothing to do. The force of the current is at its maximum strength
-when it emerges from the Bemimi Straits, between the Bahama Bank on the
-east and the coast of Florida on the West. Between Fowey Rocks and Gun
-Gay Light the average depth of the Gulf Stream is 239 fathoms, and it
-runs at a speed of fifty miles in the twenty-four hours. Occasionally,
-under particular circumstances, it will speed up to a hundred miles in
-the twenty-four hours. Little wonder that homeward bound windjammers
-are glad to strike the Gulf Stream. After we crossed into the clear
-azure of that current there was a steady tug on the Gullwing’s prow.
-
-“The women-folks are pullin’ her home with their apron strings,”
-chuckled Captain Bowditch.
-
-I rigged fishing tackle for Phillis and she caught some of the smaller
-fish of the Gulf Stream--fish which cannot be caught in the waters
-even a short distance outside of the line of the current. They were
-brilliant trunk-fish, and angel-fish, and the like; not edible, but
-interesting to look at.
-
-Shark were plentiful, too, and followed the ship like dogs, to fight
-for the scraps the cook flung overboard. Thank got a big hook and about
-a pound of fat pork (he could wheedle anything out of the black cook)
-bent on a strong line, and we trolled for shark.
-
-We caught one about eight foot long; he was an ugly beast, and fought
-like a tiger when we got him onto the deck. He would snap at a
-broomstick and bite it through as neatly as we could have cut it with
-an axe. A sailor hates a shark just as the ordinary man ashore dislikes
-a snake.
-
-“I tell you what we’ll do with him,” said Bob Promise, chuckling. “I
-seen it done on the old Beatrix two years ago. We ‘belled the cat’
-with an old he shark, and it’s an all right trick to play on the dirty
-critters.”
-
-“How d’ye do it?” asked Tom Thornton.
-
-“Lemme have that broken broomstick,” said Bob, grabbing it. “Now
-watch--when he snaps at me.”
-
-The huge fish, lying on its side, with its wicked eye watchful of us
-all, opened wide his jaws when Bob Promise approached. The bully was a
-reckless fellow, and as the shark snapped open his jaws he thrust his
-hand and arm into the cavity and thrust the stick upright, far back in
-the beast’s throat.
-
-Thank actually screamed aloud, and I felt sick--I thought sure the
-foolish fellow’s arm would be snapped off between the closing jaws.
-
-But the shark couldn’t close his jaws! That was the trick of it. The
-stick was thrust upright, sticking into the roof of the great mouth and
-into the root of the tongue. The fish was “belled” indeed.
-
-There it writhed upon the deck, thrashing its strong tail about, its
-wicked eyes rolling, and evidently in awful agony.
-
-“Now pitch him overboard,” laughed Bob Promise. “He’ll live some time
-that way--mebbe till he starves to death or until some of the smaller
-fish pitch upon him and eat his liver out. Ugh! the ugly beast!”
-
-Somebody took a turn of the rope around the fish’s tail and in a moment
-the shark was swung up by the falls we had rigged. But while he hung in
-the air and was about to be swung over the rail, Phillis ran up to us.
-
-“Don’t!” she cried. “Don’t do it! I saw you! How could you be so
-dreadfully mean--Oh! Clint! how could _you_ do such a cruel thing?”
-
-I had been thinking all the time that it was a blamed mean piece of
-business; but I hadn’t had the pluck to say so!
-
-“You stand away, Missee,” laughed Bob. “He’s all right. Overboard he
-goes--plop into the sea--and it will be one murderin’ old shark fixed
-jest right.”
-
-“You shall not do it!” she cried, and she was so earnest and excited
-that she stamped her little foot upon the deck. “It is wicked and
-cruel.”
-
-“Why, it ain’t nothin’ but an old shark, Missee,” growled Tom Thornton.
-“He ain’t fit for nothing better.”
-
-“He’s God’s creature. God made him,” declared the child. “You’ve no
-right to maltreat him. It’s wicked. I won’t have it.”
-
-She was so excited I was afraid she would get sick. I put in _my_ oar:
-
-“That’s all right, Philly. None of us stopped to think of that side of
-it. Lower away here, boys, and we’ll knock that prop out of his mouth
-again.”
-
-“No you won’t!” exclaimed Bob Promise.
-
-I stopped and looked at him. “Why, sure, Bob, you don’t mind. If the
-little girl doesn’t want us to do it----”
-
-“Stow that,” said Bob, in his very ugliest tone. “That shark ain’t
-hers. I put that stick there. I want to see the man that’ll pull it
-out,” and he swelled up like a turkey-cock and acted as though he
-thought he was the biggest man who ever stepped on the Gullwing’s deck.
-
-But if he had been twice as big I reckon I should have stepped up to
-him! To have anybody speak before Phillis as he did was not to be
-endured. Thankful Polk flamed up, too, until you could have touched off
-a match on his face. Old Tom Thornton reached an arm across and put me
-back as lightly as though I had been a feather, and seized the rope
-above Bob’s hand.
-
-“Drop it, you landcrab!” he growled. Old Tom seldom got angry; when he
-did we knew enough to stand from under!
-
-And then appeared Dao Singh. How he had heard the racket I do not know.
-Light as a panther, and with an eye wickeder than the shark’s own, he
-slid along the deck and stood right at the other elbow of the bully.
-
-“Let the rope go, as Webb Sahib say,” he hissed into Bob’s ear.
-
-The bully was as amazed as he could well be and keep on his pins. He
-stepped back and glared from Thank and me to Old Tom, and then around
-at Singh.
-
-“Holy mackerel!” he murmured. “Do the hull of ye’s want the blamed
-fish? Then, take him!”
-
-The watch burst out laughing. Mr. Barney had himself come forward, and
-now he spoke.
-
-“Get a harpoon, Webb, and kill the beast at once. That will settle the
-controversy. I’m not sure that the little one isn’t right. We’re all
-too big to torture even such a beast as a shark.”
-
-That was the kind of influence Phillis Duane had over all of us. The
-captain had her on the bridge with him and showed her everything he
-did when he took the sun’s altitude, and all that. Mr. Gates talked
-with her by the hour. Mr. Barney was forever finding something new with
-which she could amuse herself. And the black cook and Dao Singh almost
-came to blows over who should wait upon her the most.
-
-Then came the day when, off Hatteras, we sighted another four-masted
-ship. She crept out of a fogbank to leeward of us and it was some time
-before we saw her clearly enough to be sure. That she was tacking
-northward was the main fact at first which urged us to believe it was
-our sister ship.
-
-But in an hour it came clearer, and we could be sure. It was the
-Seamew, standing in very prettily, and it was plain she had sighted us,
-too. We tacked and her course brought her across our stern. We ran so
-near the captains could hail each other. Old Cap’n Si waved his glass
-and shouted:
-
-“We’re about to bid you a fond farewell, Joe! Next tack will put us
-ahead of you. That apple’s mine, by jolly!”
-
-“Seems to me if I had such a great craft as the Seamew, I’d have got
-farther ahead than you be now,” returned our skipper, with scorn. “I
-reckon the race ain’t over yet.”
-
-“It’s pretty near over. We got good weather comin’. The Seamew can walk
-away with you in a fair wind.”
-
-“All right. Brag’s a good dog, but Holdfast’s a better one,” said Cap’n
-Joe. “Wait till we sight the Capes o’ Virginia.”
-
-She was too far away from us then for Cap’n Si to shout again. The
-rest of us had grinned or scowled at the men aboard the Seamew, as our
-natures dictated. I had noticed that the boat found adrift with Singh
-and Phillis in it, had been hoisted aboard the Seamew and was lashed
-amidships.
-
-Away we went on our tack, came about, and again neared our rival. The
-Seamew was not pulling away from us much; the wind was heavy. The
-Gullwing crept up on her and, finally, when the Seamew tacked again, we
-did the same and she had no chance to cross our bows, even had she been
-able to.
-
-So we sailed, neck and neck, not half a mile from each other, both
-ships plunging through the swells with a line of white foam under
-their quarters, and well heeled over to the wind. Whichever won the
-race--whether the Gullwing or the Seamew--it would be a good fight.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXII
-
-_In Which the Capes of Virginia Are In Sight_
-
-
-We had a stiff wind blowing--half a gale, indeed--and when we raised
-other sailing ships, their canvas was clewed down and some of them were
-running under little more than stormsails. But neither the captain of
-the Seamew nor of the Gullwing had any intention of losing a breath of
-such a favorable breeze.
-
-Our ship heeled over until her rail was under water; and she was laden
-so heavily that this sort of sailing was perilous. Suppose some of the
-cargo should shift? Where would we be? Well, just about there, I guess!
-
-“Some day the old man will carry the sticks out of her completely,”
-growled Mr. Gates to Mr. Barney.
-
-“Well, let him!” exclaimed the second mate. “We’ve got to win this
-time.”
-
-“What for?” I heard the other ask, curiously. “Just so Cap’n Joe will
-win his greening apple?”
-
-Mr. Barney cursed the captain and his apple.
-
-“You want us to win anyway, eh?” pursued Mr. Gates, in his slow,
-thoughtful way. “No matter what happens to the Gullwing?”
-
-“She’s insured; so’s her freight,” snapped Mr. Barney.
-
-“It doesn’t matter if both good ships should founder and be lost?”
-
-“I don’t give a hang!” exclaimed the younger man, bitterly, “as long as
-the Gullwing goes down fifty fathoms nearer Baltimore than the Seamew.”
-
-“And how about the crews?”
-
-“Who’s thinking of men--or ships--just now?” demanded Mr. Barney.
-“Aren’t both captains risking lives and property for a silly
-competition? I’m no worse than they are.”
-
-“And so, the rivalry of Cap’n Joe and Cap’n Si will excuse your own mad
-determination to get to port first?” suggested Mr. Gates, quietly. “I
-don’t believe you’ll feel that way, young man, twelve months from now.
-And how about the little girl?”
-
-“Pshaw! there’s no danger,” said Mr. Barney, lightly.
-
-“I hope there will be no danger--no more than there is now, at least,”
-said the mate, significantly. Then he saw me on lookout and said,
-irritably: “Come away! This is no place to talk.”
-
-I wondered what the mate thought Mr. Barney would do for the sake of
-helping the Gullwing to win the race; but I heard nothing more of their
-conversation. This occurred in the evening when we could just see the
-ghostly sails of the Seamew as she stood on for us. Mr. Barney soon
-after took the wheel himself, it being the captain’s watch. From that
-point on to the end the second mate was more frequently at the wheel
-than at any previous time during the cruise.
-
-Day and night the two huge schooners ran almost even. Our skipper was
-seldom off the deck. I don’t know when he found time to sleep. He never
-lost a chance to make the most of a puff of wind. The men worked for
-him eagerly and well; but they stood double watches.
-
-Some of the small sails Cap’n Joe even had us dip overboard so that,
-well wetted, they would better hold the wind. It was four bells in the
-morning watch when the Seamew crossed our bow. She had been trying for
-it for twenty-four hours, or more. And when she cut us off and we had
-to take her white water, a groan of derision was raised by her crew.
-
-We were sore--every man Jack of us. Cap’n Joe and Cap’n Si had it hot
-and heavy from their respective stations.
-
-“Better give us a line aboard so’t we can tow ye in, Joe!” bawled Cap’n
-Si.
-
-“You air mighty willin’ to give a helpin’ hand jest now, Si,” returned
-our skipper, with scorn. “But it warn’t allus so.”
-
-I saw Mr. Alf Barney at the Seamew’s wheel. He handled the ship
-splendidly. When the Seamew came about on the other tack, her helmsman
-met the waves just right and swung her over so that the sails scarcely
-shook at all. She reared up on one tack, turned as it were on her heel,
-and swept away on the other tack at a speed that sent the spray flying
-high above her rail. It was a pretty sight.
-
-Our Mr. Barney stood right beside me as I manipulated the Gullwing’s
-helm. He watched the handling of our rival with lowering brow.
-
-“Gimme that wheel!” he snapped, pushing me away and seizing the spokes.
-The Gullwing was right in the eye of the wind. Cap’n Bowditch was
-shouting his orders. If the Seamew had rounded prettily, the Gullwing
-went her one better. We wasted less time hanging in the wind than the
-Seamew.
-
-“That’s the way to do it!” bawled our skipper, dancing on the quarter.
-“By jinks, Mr. Barney, you handled that wheel well. Keep her so!
-Steady.”
-
-The second mate let me take the wheel again after a minute or two;
-and his face had remained unsmiling all the time. He had merely been
-determined to show them all that he could handle the big ship’s helm as
-well in every particular as did his brother.
-
-Our course was west-northwest now to the Capes of Virginia. The fresh
-gale was out of the same quarter. Therefore we had to beat to windward
-all the remainder of the race, and although the Seamew had gotten
-a little the start of us, the Gullwing had a slight advantage. She
-handled better to windward than her sister ship.
-
-The Seamew stood off on one tack, we on the other. She disappeared
-beyond the sea line, but standing in some hours later we found her
-again--and finding her were pleased more than a little in seeing that
-we had made something up on her. Our skipper’s shrewdness was telling.
-
-I knew how it was with Cap’n Si; when things broke wrong for him he
-paddled about the deck, cursing the hands and the wind and various
-other things, altogether irrational. Whereas our skipper never lost a
-trick, kept his head, and never gave an order he was sorry for--and
-that last is saying a good deal.
-
-We filled away once more and stood back to her. We were making distance
-fast. Had we held on this time we should have crossed her wake almost
-under her stern. The man aloft suddenly sang out:
-
-“Land, ho!”
-
-I heard the cry repeated in the Seamew’s tops.
-
-“Cape Henry, sir!” shouted our man to the skipper.
-
-“Aye, aye,” said Cap’n Joe, eagerly. “And when we tack back again we’re
-going to cross ahead of the Seamew’s bow--and the race will be over.”
-
-He said it with enormous satisfaction. He believed it, too.
-
-“Why will the race be over, Clint?” asked Phillis, who stood beside
-me at the moment. “I looked at the chart. We’re a long way yet from
-Baltimore. We are not in sight of the opening into Chesapeake Bay.”
-
-“There are tugs waiting up there in the roads for us,” I told her.
-“You’ll soon see their smoke. _They_ will race out for us, as we race
-in for the port. We shall go up to Baltimore under steam.”
-
-And my statement was scarcely made ere we saw in the far distance the
-pillars of smoke from the stacks of the ocean-going tugs. The land
-that had been merely a hazy line, grew more clearly defined, although
-we were not approaching it directly. Soon I could point out to my
-little friend the other cape guarding the mouth of the Chesapeake--Cape
-Charles.
-
-The tugs steamed out to meet us under forced draught. More quickly to
-get in tow of the tug nearest us, which was coming already hooked up,
-Cap’n Bowditch put the Gullwing about earlier than he had originally
-intended. As we tacked, so did the Seamew.
-
-“She’s afraid to give us an inch,” laughed Mr. Barney, taking his place
-beside the wheel again, and looking up at Mr. Gates.
-
-“It’s nip and tuck,” returned the first mate. Then to the skipper he
-said: “Shall I make ready to take the tug’s hawser, sir?”
-
-“Right-oh!” declared Captain Bowditch. “And be lively with it. We’re
-too close to fool away a moment. I hope we get the fastest tug.”
-
-“She’s the Sea Horse, Cap’n!” bawled down the man aloft.
-
-“Smart tug, she is,” agreed the skipper.
-
-“And I believe that’s the Comet makin’ to meet the Seamew.”
-
-“Both Norfolk Tug Company’s craft--and good ones. I wouldn’t give a
-dollar bonus either way on ’em, would you, Mr. Gates?”
-
-“They’re just as near alike as the Seamew and the Gullwing are alike,”
-agreed the mate, and went forward.
-
-We were standing in now directly for the channel. The Seamew was headed
-likewise. We were bound to pass close to our sister ship--so close
-that, as the moments slipped past, I began to feel some disturbance of
-mind.
-
-Heaven knows the ocean was broad enough; but the two skippers were
-obstinate and eager. One would not be likely to want to give way to the
-other. And moment after moment the two great ships, their canvas filled
-and the white water split in great waves from their prows, rushed
-closer and closer together.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXIII
-
-_In Which We Face Death by the Breadth of a Hair_
-
-
-I had walked forward, anxious over the situation of the sister ships.
-Tom Thornton was right by my side, for Mr. Barney had taken the wheel
-himself.
-
-“In case of doubt,” I asked Tom, “who gives way--the Seamew or the
-Gullwing?”
-
-“Why, the Seamew, of course,” growled Tom.
-
-“Are you sure?”
-
-“I be,” he said, emphatically. “No gittin’ around it. It has to be her
-gives way--not us. Both of us are close-hauled, that’s a fact; but we
-on this tack has the right of way. The Seamew’s got to come about and
-give us the road.”
-
-“She don’t look like she would,” I said, gravely.
-
-“Of course she will!”
-
-“Then she’ll miss meeting the other tug this time. It will give us a
-big advantage.”
-
-“Don’t ye suppose our skipper knows that?” returned Tom, with a wide
-grin. “That’s what he aimed to do. Oh, Cap’n Joe is a cleaner, now I
-tell ye!”
-
-It did look to me as though the two great ships were rushing together.
-If they had been two old-time frigates, aiming to come to a clinch and
-the crews ordered to “board with cutlass,” the appearance of the two
-could have been no more threatening.
-
-The Seamew’s men were grouped along her rail and swinging in her lower
-shrouds, watching us; and every person aboard the Gullwing, including
-the cook, was on deck. I heard Captain Bowditch growling to himself:
-
-“What does that lobster mean? Ain’t he goin’ to give us no seaway?”
-
-Mr. Barney had taken the wheel of the Gullwing. I saw that his brother
-was already glued to the spokes of the Seamew’s wheel.
-
-“’Ware what ye do there, Mr. Barney,” sang out Captain Bowditch.
-
-“Aye, aye, sir.”
-
-“Keep her steady.”
-
-“Aye, aye, sir.”
-
-I caught old Tom by the sleeve of his jumper again.
-
-“Cap’n Si don’t mean to give way!” I gasped.
-
-“Wal,” said the old seaman, reflectively, “it’ll be up to him if he
-doesn’t.”
-
-“But----”
-
-“It ain’t our place to give that blamed Seamew the whole ocean.”
-
-“But if the Seamew _won’t_ give way?” I repeated, vainly.
-
-“What! Not give way! That’d be foolish,” growled old Tom. “A man can go
-bullying his way ashore, pushin’ folks inter the gutter and all that,
-if he’s big enough--like Bob yonder. But a captain can’t do that at
-sea. He’d only git what’s due him. He’ll _have_ to give way.”
-
-Yet no order was given from the Seamew’s quarter; nor did our skipper
-say a word. I could not believe that Captain Bowditch, even with the
-sea-law on his side, would risk his beautiful ship and the lives of her
-crew. Yet if the Seamew continued to run in on us much longer we would
-have to fall off, or collide with her.
-
-Little Phillis was sitting calmly under her awning, busied with some
-pieces of sewing--for she was a housewifely little thing. It struck me
-that an awful death was threatening the innocent child, and I moved
-toward her. Thankful Polk was working his way along the deck in the
-same direction, too.
-
-Captain Bowditch glanced at the child under the awning. If he had had
-any desperate intention of keeping on, whether or no, so as to pick up
-his tug ahead of the Seamew, I believe the presence of Phillis Duane
-restrained him. His hard old face changed.
-
-The Seamew was holding on. She was going to force us. The old man
-jumped to the rail and motioned with his arm for the helmsman of the
-Seamew to keep off. But Mr. Alf Barney’s gaze rested only on the face
-of his brother at _our_ wheel; and Captain Somes never gave an order.
-
-Captain Bowditch turned and yelled:
-
-“Keep off! keep off, I say! D’ye wanter wreck us?”
-
-He started for the wheel. I do not know whether our Mr. Barney obeyed
-the order--or tried to obey it. The two great ships, their canvas
-bellied with the strong gale, seemed to sweep together as though they
-were magnetized!
-
-It may have been explained by the fact that we were so near each other
-that one took the wind out of the other’s sails. At least, the two huge
-ships were no longer under control.
-
-“I’m hanged if she ain’t got away from him!” I heard Tom Thornton
-yell; but which ship he meant I did not know.
-
-The Gullwing took a shoot. The Seamew took a shoot. Then the two ships
-clinched!
-
-Talk about a smash! It was the most awful collision one could imagine.
-Two express trains on the same track, coming head-on, could have made
-no greater explosion of sound. And it did seem as though no other kind
-of a collision could have resulted in so much wreckage.
-
-I grabbed up Phillis just before the ships came together, and dashed
-for the companionway. But as I gained its shelter I saw the spars
-raining from aloft on both vessels, with the canvas and cordage in a
-perfect jumble.
-
-It fairly shook the spars out of the Seamew. I believed, at the last
-moment, that the Gullwing had sheered off. At least, she had taken the
-blow on more of a slant. The wire stays upon our sister ship had been
-torn away and her foremast came down and hung over the rail a complete
-wreck.
-
-Her other masts wavered. I could see that she was shaking like a
-wounded thing; I believe she was settling even then. She had opened a
-great hole in her hull forward. I could see the ragged, splintered ends
-of the planks.
-
-Our own damage and peril I could not gauge until I had set Phillis down
-and rushed back to the deck. The old Gullwing was hobbling away from
-her sister ship. Captain Bowditch was bawling orders from the bridge;
-but I heard nothing but screams of rage and fear from the Seamew. _And
-Captain Si Somes was no longer in sight._
-
-“Axes, men!” roared our skipper. “Get aloft there! Cut away wreckage!
-Clew up everything that ain’t torn away. Look alive, up there, Mr.
-Gates.”
-
-“Aye, aye, sir!” responded the mate from forward.
-
-“Keep her steady, Mr. Barney!” commanded the captain.
-
-I heard no response. I glanced aft as I worked my way up the backstays.
-Mr. Jim Barney still stood at our wheel. He hung to the spokes and held
-the ship steady. But a whiter face and a more miserable face I had
-never seen upon mortal man.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXIV
-
-_In Which the Tragedy of the Racing Ship Is Completed_
-
-
-League upon league of the sea--across and again across two oceans--the
-sister ships had raced, to fall afoul of each other here almost within
-sight of port!
-
-While we aboard the Gullwing were cutting adrift the wreckage for dear
-life, another mast--the mizzen--fell across the Seamew. She was down
-dreadfully by the head. We could hear the roar of the water pouring
-into the hole stove in her hull.
-
-I knew Mr. Hollister’s voice, and he was shouting orders to the crew.
-But nobody heard Cap’n Si speaking; nor was he in sight. I knew as
-well then as I did afterward that, at the moment of the collision, the
-master of the Seamew went overboard, sank, and never came up again!
-
-Down came the aftermast of the Seamew; the mainmast was swaying. I
-reckon the crew responded to Mr. Hollister’s orders not at all. I
-heard the wail of:
-
-“Boats! boats! take to the boats!”
-
-But when they took another look at the wabbling masts, they waited to
-launch no boat. With a few words but much action the crew went over
-her rail, now almost even with the sea, and one after the other began
-to claw out for the Gullwing which lay to not two cable’s lengths away
-from the sinking ship.
-
-But Mr. Alfred Barney held to the spokes of her wheel; he made no offer
-to leave the Seamew, although Mate Hollister, like the men, was already
-in the sea.
-
-As I hacked at the steel cordage and broken spars I heard Captain
-Bowditch shouting directions to the men below, and to the men in the
-water. Ropes and life-buoys were flung to the seamen from the sinking
-ship. In this comparatively quiet sea there was little likelihood of
-any of them being drowned.
-
-Mr. Hollister waited to see his hands drawn over the rail of the
-Gullwing before he came inboard himself. But while this was going on
-Captain Bowditch discovered the missing second mate still on the wreck.
-
-“Come away from that!” he shouted to Alfred Barney. “Come on! Jump in!
-We’ll haul you out.”
-
-The young man made no reply, nor did he move from the wheel.
-
-“Come away, you fool!” roared Captain Bowditch.
-
-But Alfred Barney, like Jim Barney, seemed frozen to the spokes of
-the wheel. The thought in my confused mind was: _Had the two brothers
-deliberately wrecked the sister ships?_
-
-The Gullwing had recovered from the shock of the collision. She was not
-going to sink--at least, not right away. All her crew were inboard now,
-and Mr. Hollister followed. Nobody spoke of poor Cap’n Si. We all knew
-that he was missing. But there was a great to-do about Alfred Barney.
-
-“What does that etarnal fool want to stay over there for?” yelled
-Captain Joe to Mr. Hollister. “Is he a dummy?”
-
-“He iss _fey_,” whispered old Stronson in my ear.
-
-“Looks like it was his fault the ships came together,” said Bob Promise.
-
-We had descended to the deck again now. Our upper works were in an
-awful tangle; but we could do no more at present. The tug was steaming
-in near to us now and it did not matter if we did drift.
-
-All our eyes were fastened upon the Seamew. She was going down
-steadily, head-on. Already her bows were being lapped by the waves
-clear to the butt of the jib-boom.
-
-Mr. Hollister sent another wailing cry across to the second mate at the
-Seamew’s wheel; but the figure did not move, nor did Alf Barney make
-any reply.
-
-Suddenly our Mr. Barney left the helm. He just motioned to me, and I
-grabbed the spokes. He sprang to the rail and held out both his arms to
-his brother.
-
-“Come! Alf, Alf! Come!”
-
-Then it was that Alfred Barney turned his head and looked across at us.
-His face, white as his brother’s had been, broke into a frosty smile.
-He raised one hand and waved it to his twin. And then----
-
-There was a roar of sound, a rush of wind, a yell in chorus from all
-hands aboard the Gullwing, and the mainmast of the Seamew came rushing
-down, astern! The great spar had been shaken loose and it fell with all
-its weight along the deck of the laboring schooner. The topmast broke
-off and sprang into the air, along with a tangle of steel cable and
-shredded sails.
-
-And when that topmast struck the deck again it wrecked the Seamew’s
-wheel and pinioned Mr. Alfred Barney beneath its wreckage!
-
-A general shout of horror arose from the Gullwing; but above it rang
-the clarion tone of Jim Barney’s voice:
-
-“Boat! Boat! Launch the quarterboat!”
-
-Our men sprang to their stations; the young second mate gave his orders
-quick and sharp. Captain Bowditch did not gainsay him. Mr. Jim Barney
-had it all his own way.
-
-His crew--the same that had manned the boat when she had picked up the
-castaways--quickly took their places in the craft. She was lowered with
-a plop into the sea.
-
-“Give way, men!”
-
-They bent to the oars like giants. The boat shot across the sea to the
-fast sinking Seamew. I held the spokes of the Gullwing’s wheel idly and
-watched. Indeed, the tug coming up to hook us attracted no attention
-from anybody aboard our ship at that moment.
-
-The Seamew was wallowing deep in the water now. Her head was under and
-her stern was kicking up. She was about to dive like a duck to the
-bottom.
-
-Suddenly the air-pressure below blew off her forward hatch. Instantly
-the waves broke across the deck and the water poured into the open
-hatchway.
-
-Swiftly and more swiftly she sank. When our boat came to the hulk, she
-presented a steep side for one to mount from the small boat.
-
-“Alf! Alf!” we heard our second mate yell. We could not hear that there
-was an answer from the man under the wreckage of the topmast.
-
-“Hold her in close, boys!” commanded Mr. Jim Barney. “Give me that
-boathook!”
-
-“You’ll be drowned, sir!” I heard Thankful Polk cry.
-
-“She’s going down--she’ll suck us all under,” declared Bob Promise.
-
-“Stand by, as I tell you!” commanded the second mate again.
-
-In a moment he had fastened the boathook somehow, and went up hand over
-hand. He seized the rail of the sinking ship. The small boat backed
-away. I believe Bob Promise thrust her off with his oar.
-
-“Look out there!” bawled Captain Bowditch, from our poop. “You’re
-taking your life in your hand, lad!”
-
-Mr. Jim Barney merely waved his hand, notifying the master of the
-Gullwing that his warning had been heard. But he crawled right up to
-the stern over that wreckage. He did not look back once.
-
-And down settled the Seamew, lower and lower. She was under seas as
-far back as the stump of the mainmast. The water boiled around her.
-There was good reason for our men in the quarterboat to back off. Once
-caught in the suck of the sinking ship, our men and their craft would
-go under, too!
-
-I saw Mr. Jim Barney spring over a pile of debris. He stooped, tore
-away some of the wrecked stuff, and then stood up with his brother’s
-body clasped in his arms.
-
-For an instant I saw the white face of the unconscious man. There was
-a streak of crimson on his forehead. Jim Barney looked down into the
-countenance of his brother and the men in our quarterboat uttered in
-chorus a long-drawn cry. The Seamew was going down.
-
-Slowly, the eddying water seething about her wounded hull, the ship
-settled.
-
-“Jump!” shouted Cap’n Bowditch, leaning over the rail, his own face
-pallid and his eyes aglare.
-
-But that would not have saved them. Mr. Barney could not have leaped
-far enough with his burden to have overcome the suck of the maelstrom
-forming about the wreck. And it was right for the men in the small boat
-to sheer off.
-
-The wreck slid under the surface. Almost the last thing we saw was Mr.
-Barney, holding his burden in his arms, his own face still bent above
-the unconscious countenance of his brother.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXV
-
-_In Which a Very Serious Question Is Discussed_
-
-
-The boat from the Gullwing was so near the maelstrom caused by the
-sinking of the ship that her bow was sucked under and she shipped a lot
-of water. We saw the boys bailing energetically.
-
-Then Thank stood up and cast off his outer clothing and his shoes.
-Bob Promise, who pulled the bow oar, followed suit. They each took
-the precaution to lash the end of a line to one wrist before going
-overboard. Where the Seamew had sunk was a circle of tossing waves, and
-broken bits of wreckage were popping up from below in a most dangerous
-fashion.
-
-The suspense aboard the Gullwing and in the boat was great indeed as
-the two young fellows went down. If the Barneys had been entangled in
-any wreckage on the lost vessel, Thank and Bob would never be able to
-reach them, for the sea at that spot is very deep, and the hulk of the
-schooner would finally rest upon the bottom.
-
-Mr. Gates had run back to the stern and stood beside me, gazing off
-across the tumbling sea.
-
-“God help the boy!” he muttered, and I knew he referred to our Mr.
-Barney. “I doubt now he’d rather be under the seas than above after
-this day’s work.”
-
-“Do you believe it was Mr. Barney’s fault?” I whispered.
-
-He started and looked around at me. I repeated my question.
-
-“Was it Jim Barney’s fault?” he returned. “What do you think?”
-
-“I don’t believe it. He sheered off----”
-
-“Too late,” muttered Mr. Gates.
-
-“Just as soon as the captain ordered him to,” I declared eagerly. “When
-Captain Bowditch ordered him to ‘Keep off’ he swung her over. I saw
-him.”
-
-“It was too late then, I tell you,” declared the first mate of the
-Gullwing.
-
-“But how about Mr. Alf Barney?” I cried. “He held on to the course all
-the time till she hit us.”
-
-Mr. Gates said nothing.
-
-“If it was anybody’s fault it was Mr. Alf Barney’s,” I repeated,
-stubbornly.
-
-“No. It cannot be laid to his fault in any case,” said the mate,
-sternly.
-
-“Why not, sir?” I asked.
-
-“Because his captain gave no order. Captain Si had the deck. He was in
-command.”
-
-“Then Captain Bowditch is at fault, too,” I declared. “He did not speak
-quick enough.”
-
-“He gave the order quick enough,” returned Mr. Gates, gloomily, “but
-Jim Barney hesitated. That’s where the fault lies. Jim Barney hated to
-give the Seamew right of way, and he held us onto the course after he
-was ordered to keep off. That’s where the fault lies, my boy--that’s
-where it lies.”
-
-At another time I do not suppose the mate would have discussed the
-point with me, I being merely a foremast hand. But we were all stirred
-up and for the moment quarterdeck etiquette was forgotten.
-
-But in a moment there was a cheer raised in our little boat, dancing
-out there on the swells. Thank’s head appeared, and one hand grasped
-the gunwale of the boat. He dragged into view the two Barney’s, locked
-in an embrace that could not be broken.
-
-Bob Promise came to his help instantly. Together they held the twins
-up. Both the Barneys were unconscious. Mr. Jim must have had a
-frightful fight down there under the sea to hold to his brother and get
-out of the strong suck of the settling wreck.
-
-The brothers were hauled into the small boat, and then Thank and Bob
-followed. As quickly as possible she was rowed back to the Gullwing.
-
-Meanwhile the big tug Sea Horse had steamed up to us and rounded to
-under our bows. The hawser was passed and Mr. Gates took charge of the
-rigging of the bridle. Our skipper himself went to the rail to meet the
-incoming boat.
-
-“Good boys,” he said, warmly. “It’s a pity poor old Si warn’t found,
-too.”
-
-I wondered if that was so. It seemed to me that Captain Silas Somes was
-the man mainly to blame for the tragedy. I could not believe that the
-onus of it would be heaped upon our second mate.
-
-The boat was hoisted in. Both the Barneys remained unconscious; but Mr.
-Hollister and the captain declared they would be all right soon. Mr.
-Alf Barney had not been seriously injured by the falling of the mast.
-They were taken below and Mr. Hollister took charge of them, with one
-of his own hands to help in bringing the brothers back to their senses.
-
-The Gullwing quickly felt the tug of the hawser binding her to the Sea
-Horse and with her sails clewed up she wallowed on through the choppy
-seas into the broad mouth of the Chesapeake.
-
-No need of aiding the steam-tug by hoisting sail. The race was over.
-The Seamew had run her course and the Gullwing was the winner. But a
-sorry winning of the race it proved to be.
-
-Mr. Gates kept both watches at work for a time making the loose spars
-secure. The steel stays that had been broken had to be reset, or we
-might have one of our masts coming down as the Seamew’s had.
-
-The work was done before the second dog-watch and then we had a chance
-to sit down and fraternize with the men from the Seamew.
-
-“What gave the old Seamew her ticket,” said Job Perkins, “was our
-changing a live man for a dead one. When Clint, here, went over the
-side and a man that had been garroted came back inboard, I knowed
-we was in for trouble. And that ten dollars you’re to pay me at
-Baltimore,” he whispered in my ear, “ain’t going to pay me for the
-dunnage I lost.”
-
-“How d’ye s’pose that feller got strangled with his lanyard?” demanded
-another of the Seamew’s men.
-
-“Ask that nigger they’ve got aboard the Gullwing here,” growled
-another. “He knows. And he’ll hafter tell it to the consul.”
-
-But I made up my mind that, if it were possible, Dao Singh should not
-be obliged to go before any court, or any consul, to explain that
-matter. The fact was, there wasn’t anything he could explain. Under a
-dreadful provocation he had killed the sailor. But I doubted if his
-excuse for committing the act would be accepted by the law.
-
-The men were mainly interested, however, in the circumstances
-surrounding the collision of the sister ships and the sinking of the
-Seamew. The great question was: Who was at fault? But we conducted
-the discussion in very low tones, that the officer on deck might not
-overhear us.
-
-“Talk as ye please,” grunted Job Perkins. “If two other men--men that
-warn’t Barneys--had been at the helm of the two ships, there wouldn’t
-never been no trouble.”
-
-“Well,” declared I, “_our_ Mr. Barney sheered off.”
-
-“Not soon enough,” said Tom Thornton, shaking his head.
-
-“Just as soon as the order was given!” I cried. “And it wasn’t our
-place to give way, at that.”
-
-“Oh,” said Job, “we’ll all grant the old man--Cap’n Si--was the main
-one to blame. Leastways, he’s the one dead, and the dead man is always
-blamed. But Mr. Alf Barney never got no word to change his helm--and
-yours did.”
-
-“The ships come together; they was bound to do so, sooner or later,”
-said old Stronson, shaking his head. “It iss not de men iss to
-blame--no! You remember the Chieftain and de Antelope? Dey was sister
-ships, too. Dey could not be anchored within a cable’s length of each
-odder, or dey come togedder.”
-
-“By jings! the old man’s right,” declared Tom Thornton. “I sailed on
-the Antelope once. There seemed to be magnets drawin’ them two ships
-together. Gettin’ under way at Savannah we bumped the Chieftain and
-tore away her fore chains and made a mess of our own bows.”
-
-“I heered if the two craft was anchored full and plenty apart, and in
-no tideway, they’d rub sides within twenty-four hours,” said another
-man.
-
-“And das iss de trut’,” declared Stronson. “Dey wass sister
-ships--like das Seamew and Gullwing. Nopoty can keep dem apart when dey
-gets jest so near to each odder.”
-
-“That’s so! I bet that was what did it more than the Barney boys,”
-agreed Job Perkins.
-
-“Sich things happen, as we knows,” said Tom Thornton.
-
-And I declare, all the old fellows went off on this tangent and
-accepted this idea as the true explanation for the sinking of the
-Seamew. They talked it over and became more and more positive that it
-was so. The superstition that the sister ships had a natural attraction
-for each other took a firm hold upon their minds. I could see plainly
-that if the firm had any of these old barnacles into court, they would
-swear to this ridiculous idea. At least, it might throw a bit of weight
-against the idea that the Barney boys had deliberately wrecked the two
-ships.
-
-“Jest the same,” observed old Tom, slowly, “study on it as we may,
-there’s one place where it’ll be decided for sure, as far as the legal
-end of it goes. The insurance court will have the last say.”
-
-“Wrong you be, Tom,” declared Job, “wrong you be. The final settlement
-of the hull matter will be in the offices of Barney, Blakesley &
-Knight. Never mind what the court says, nor how the insurance is
-adjusted; them two boys will hafter go before the firm.”
-
-“By mighty! that’s so,” agreed Tom.
-
-“And the way it’s turned out,” pursued Job, “it looks like Mr. Jim
-Barney would have the best of it.”
-
-“How so?” we asked.
-
-“Don’t you see that he’s bound ter be first ashore at Baltimore?” and
-the Seamew’s oldest hand chuckled. “He’s come through on his ship and
-will stand first in the old man’s estimation--no matter how he done it.
-Ye know Jothan Barney.”
-
-“By crackey! will Mr. Jim beat Mr. Alfred, then, and be boss of the
-firm?” Thankful Polk demanded.
-
-“That’ll be the end of the story, son,” said Job, turning his cud in
-his cheek. “Old Jothan sent ’em out, one ter beat the other. By jinks!
-one _has_ beat the other. No matter how he’s done it. It’s done, and so
-old Jothan will agree, I reckon.”
-
-“But won’t the firm punish Mr. Jim?” I asked.
-
-“I wanter see the firm do anything that old Jothan don’t want it to
-do,” scoffed Job.
-
-“And that’s so, too,” agreed old Tom.
-
-“Then, believing that Mr. Jim Barney deliberately wrecked the Seamew so
-as to beat his brother into Baltimore, you fellows think his uncle will
-receive him with open arms?”
-
-“That’ll be about it,” said Job. “Jothan Barney is that way. He wanted
-one of his nephews to show what they call ‘initiative’ and all that.
-Jim Barney’s showed it----”
-
-“And risked drowning a whole ship’s crew--two ships’ crews, in
-fact!--including his brother?” I cried. “You believe he did that just
-to get ahead and win his uncle’s approval?”
-
-“That’s it,” said Job.
-
-“Then if he hated his brother so,” I demanded, raising my voice in my
-earnestness, “why did he risk his own life to save him?”
-
-The men were silent for a moment. Then Mr. Gates’ voice came booming
-forward from the quarter:
-
-“You men stow your jaw-tackle. You’re gassin’ too much.”
-
-That ended the discussion. But I was by no means convinced that the
-seamen understood the two Barneys. I had an entirely different idea of
-how the matter would fall out in the end.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXVI
-
-_In Which Is Told How the Barney Boys Go Ashore_
-
-
-Of course, the sinking of the Seamew would be reported by the tug
-Comet, that had gone out to meet her, and the news would be telegraphed
-to Baltimore long before we reached the port. The owners would know all
-about the trouble, and I reckon Captain Joe Bowditch had pretty serious
-thoughts that night as we were towed up the bay.
-
-It was a lovely evening and Phillis came out on deck and begged me to
-sit with her. She had not been so greatly frightened when the two ships
-collided, because I had been right with her and the trouble was over so
-quickly. I hated to think of what might have happened, however, if it
-had been the fate of the Gullwing to sink instead of her sister ship.
-
-Since they have been carried below, unconscious, none of we foremast
-hands had seen the two Barney boys. We only knew that they had both
-recovered and were none the worse for their ducking.
-
-It was now the captain’s watch, however, and Mr. Jim Barney came up
-and paced the larboard side of the deck, aft. It was not long before
-I caught sight of a similar figure pacing the starboard side of the
-house, and knew that Mr. Alf Barney had come up, too.
-
-Philly and I had been whispering together under her awning and suddenly
-she put her finger on my lips to enjoin secrecy, and tripped away to
-Mr. Jim Barney’s side.
-
-She tucked her hand in his, I could see, and walked beside him. I am
-not sure whether she said anything to him, or not; but I know he did
-not send her away from him, although he was on duty.
-
-Then, after a bit, I saw Philly go to the other side of the deck and
-join Mr. Alf Barney. She must have got acquainted with him below deck,
-for he welcomed her warmly. They talked earnestly for a few moments,
-and then the little girl ran back to me.
-
-I had been gazing idly off over the rail, watching the lights ashore,
-and thinking of my home-coming. In this land-locked bay I could be
-pretty safe in believing that I would soon be with my mother.
-
-Of course, through the machinations of my cousin I had been kept from
-coming directly home when I was at Punta Arenas. But Paul Downes would
-not be in Baltimore when we landed, to trouble me in the least. Once
-I got ashore with Phillis and Thank, I was determined to hike for
-Darringford House in short order.
-
-I had enough money to pay two railroad fares home--the little girl’s
-and my own. Thank and I were to receive no wages for our work aboard
-the Gullwing. But I would leave Thank enough money to keep him until I
-could telegraph him more from Darringford.
-
-He proposed to go home himself for a time--back to Georgia. He had a
-half sister there that he wanted to see. Then he was to join me for
-the balance of the summer on the Massachusetts coast. We had already
-planned great fun at Bolderhead, despite the fact that my bonnie sloop,
-the Wavecrest, was far, far away--at Buenos Ayres.
-
-The matter of Dao Singh was not so easily adjusted. I knew very
-well that Captain Bowditch would insist upon reporting the case of
-Phillis to the proper authorities at Baltimore. That would include the
-examination of the Hindoo on the details of the wreck of the Galland.
-And just as sure as they got the man into court I knew he would convict
-himself.
-
-I was not willing to see the examination dragged on for weeks, perhaps
-months. And the end was not sure, either. I did not want Dao Singh
-punished; and I knew that it would trouble Philly greatly if the man
-was not at her beck and call most of the time.
-
-However, if Dao Singh, as a pertinent witness in the case, was not to
-be found, I believed I could get any fair-minded court to place Phillis
-in the care of my mother until the matter was concluded. That was the
-scheme I had in mind.
-
-Therefore, when we landed I proposed that Dao Singh should disappear. I
-had already sounded him. I had no money to spare, but he seemed to have
-worn a belt about his waist under his clothing, in which he told me he
-carried valuables. Money I supposed.
-
-Nor was he ignorant of the port to which we were bound. He had studied
-the geography of the world and he had corresponded in some way with
-members of his own race located in Baltimore.
-
-“To them will I go, Webb Sahib, directly the ship docks. If there
-is hue and cry, they will not find me. When your augustness and the
-Memsahib en train for your home, I shall en train likewise. I shall not
-be far from you.”
-
-“But you will not know when we go,” I cried.
-
-“Let not the Sahib fear for that. Dao Singh will have means of knowing.
-Your movements, Webb Sahib, will be learned, although I be afar. Fear
-not.”
-
-And this is all he would tell me. Rather a rare bird, was Singh. He
-treated me always with immense deference, waited on me when I would let
-him, hand and foot, yet always retained an air of being upon a mental
-or spiritual plane immensely removed from my own. And I’m not at all
-sure that he was not possessed of intelligence far above the order of
-the European or American.
-
-But I have got away from my text. Philly and I were sitting watching
-the lights on shore. As we were under towage, the watch on deck had
-little to do. Therefore the captain did not mind being aft with the
-little lass.
-
-Suddenly I saw the two Barney boys cross the deck and stand together
-under the break of the quarter. It was dark there and I could not see
-how they looked at each other, nor could I hear what they said. But
-they stood there for some minutes and, when they separated, and Mr. Jim
-went back to his duty, I hoped that they had not parted in anger.
-
-It seemed a dreadful thing if either, or both, of the twins should be
-accused of losing one ship and all but wrecking the other. As young
-merchant officers, just starting out in life, the affair would about
-ruin them. And if old Jothan Barney stuck to his word and took Jim
-Barney into the firm, and gave him all his money, what would become of
-Mr. Alfred?
-
-At midnight I turned in; Philly had sought her cabin long before. She
-wished to be up bright and early to see the Gullwing docked. But I
-could not sleep for mulling over the case of the Barney boys in my mind.
-
-My watch was called at eight bells to wash down and make the deck as
-tidy as possible for the docking, although we were not yet far north
-of the mouth of the York river. The best we could do, however, our
-beautiful Gullwing looked like a drunken old harridan that had been out
-all night!
-
-The day was beautiful. As the shores and islands were more clearly
-revealed, Philly’s delight knew no bounds.
-
-“Oh, the land! the beautiful land!” she sighed. “I want to jump for
-joy.”
-
-“Have you got enough of the sea for all time?”
-
-“I do not think I am afraid of the sea--not as afraid as I was once,”
-she replied. “But think how good it will be to step ashore! I really
-don’t feel, Clint, as though I would care to sail again right away.”
-
-And despite the sorry story we had to tell of the Seamew, there was a
-briskness in everybody’s movements that told of shore leave, and most
-of the men’s faces were agrin. Those forward were making up parties for
-certain pleasures and entertainments which had been denied them for so
-many months.
-
-Old Stronson was going immediately to the Bethel, there to pay Captain
-Sowle the dollar he had owed the good superintendent for five years and
-more.
-
-“I do that chob at vonce,” said the old man, “pefore somet’ings happen
-to me. Meppe Captain Sowle vill take my moneys for me and find me a
-goot berth aboard some gentleman’s yacht. Das berth I like, I t’ank.”
-
-I knew he wanted to get away from the drink and I hoped with all my
-heart that the old man would be able to do so.
-
-Tom Thornton had a married sister in Baltimore, over to whom the bulk
-of his paycheck was always paid by Barney, Blakesley & Knight. He would
-be put up by her, and cared for, and kept straight as long as possible;
-then the old man would go to sea again--in the Gullwing if possible.
-
-As for Bob Promise and some other of the younger men, they were all for
-“the sporting life.”
-
-“I’m goin’ to tog meself up in decent clothes,” said Bob. “No slops
-or sheeny hand-me-downs for me. You watch my smoke, boy, when I get
-ashore. I ain’t sure that I won’t go up to some swell hotel and stay
-for a week. I reckon my bunch of coin will stand for it.”
-
-Never a word about salting some of the money away for some worthy
-object. Jack Tar of the merchant marine has only two states of
-existence--slavery aboard ship and license ashore. There seems to be no
-happy medium for him.
-
-The Sea Horse towed us into our berth. The hawsers went ashore and we
-were warped in beside the dock amid a deal of clatter and confusion.
-
-There was a crowd to receive us. Some of these people were newspaper
-men. The story of the wreck of the Seamew had appeared in the Baltimore
-morning papers and reporters for the afternoon sheets were here for the
-particulars at first hand. Nobody was allowed aboard, however, although
-the quarantine officers had given us a clean bill of health down the
-bay.
-
-I saw standing upon the dock a tall, withered old man, with a very
-sharp face and white hair and mustache. He looked like a hawk, and was
-dressed all in shabby black. Without asking, I knew this to be old
-Jothan Barney, the head of the firm that owned the Gullwing.
-
-I did not see either of his nephews greet him from the ship. Mr. Jim
-had plenty to do while the ship docked, and Mr. Alf was not far from
-his brother at any time. Indeed, I was not the only person who noticed
-that the Barney boys stuck together.
-
-A section of the rail had been removed amidships. A narrow gangway was
-run out from the dock, the ropes were caught by two of the seamen, and
-the plank made fast.
-
-“First ashore!” sang out the old man and looked from our Mr. Barney to
-his brother.
-
-We all fell back for a moment. It was evident that the Barneys would go
-ashore even before Cap’n Joe. They approached the plank and both smiled.
-
-“All right, Alf?” I heard Mr. Jim say.
-
-“I’m with you, Jim,” was the reply.
-
-And with their arms locked, the twin brothers walked ashore together
-and went straight to stand before old Jothan Barney!
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXVII
-
-_In Which I Receive a Telegram That Troubles Me_
-
-
-For a moment there was a dead silence among the crews of the sister
-ships. Then Captain Bowditch himself took off his hat and started the
-cheering.
-
-And how he did yell! If both vessels had come home safely we could not
-have given tongue more joyfully. For in that moment every man of us
-knew that whatever friction there had been betwixt Jim and Alf Barney,
-they were once more brothers and friends!
-
-Of course, the crowd ashore thought we were just glad to get home
-again--that we were expressing our satisfaction upon getting to
-Baltimore, safe and sound. But the Barneys knew what it meant and both
-of them waved their hands in response to our hearty hurrah.
-
-As the newspaper reporters crowded aboard to interview Captain Bowditch
-I saw that the three Barneys walked away. The old man did not even
-speak to the skipper of the Gullwing. I reckoned any comment upon the
-skipper’s actions by the members of the firm of Barney, Blakesley &
-Knight would be postponed until some later time.
-
-The newspaper fellows were eager for a story; but Mr. Gates and Mr.
-Hollister “shooed” them away from the foremast hands. The men would
-not be discharged until the next day, when they would be taken to the
-offices of the firm for a settlement of their accounts, and to receive
-their discharges. Until that time they must remain aboard and continue
-under the discipline of the officers.
-
-“If you writer chaps,” said Mr. Gates, with a grin, “want to get these
-old hardshells to spinning yarns, you’ll have to wait till they lay
-their course for Front Street. You’ll have to be contented with facts
-from Captain Bowditch just now.”
-
-So the stories of the Seamew’s tragedy were not very ornate in the
-afternoon papers after all; and public interest in the affair was soon
-quenched.
-
-When my watch was piped to dinner the doctor gave me the tip to wait on
-deck and in a few minutes Mr. Gates beckoned me to the afterhouse.
-
-“Quarterdeck etiquette is busted all to flinders, Clint,” he said, in
-an unusually jolly tone, for he was naturally a grave man. But the fact
-that we were in the home port after so many months was bound to thaw
-the iciest manner. “You’re to dine with the old man and Miss Philly.”
-
-It was a shame the way I looked! My second suit of slops from the
-chest were pretty well worn out and my head was a regular mop. I had
-reckoned on seeing a barber about the first thing I did when I went
-ashore; and I hoped to squeeze out money enough for a cheap suit, too,
-in which I might make a more presentable appearance going home.
-
-“Never mind your clothing, Clinton,” said Captain Bowditch, when I made
-some remark of this kind. “We’ll excuse your looks.”
-
-“And I’m not much better off than you,” laughed Philly. “I have to go
-to bed when Singh washes this dress.”
-
-“By the way, where _is_ Singh?” demanded the captain. “After dinner I
-want we should all go up to the British consul--and I want Singh to go
-to.”
-
-But Dao Singh was not to be found. I said nothing about my talk with
-the Hindoo. I knew that nobody had seen him after we got into our
-berth. He might, even, have gone ashore ahead of the Barneys. However,
-gone he was and the captain was quite put out.
-
-“That’s the trouble with these natives,” he growled. “Can’t trust ’em.
-I’d ought to put him in irons----”
-
-“What for, Captain? What has poor Singh done?” asked Philly.
-
-And then the captain took a tumble to himself. The little girl knew
-nothing about the man murdered in the boat from the wreck of the
-Galland.
-
-“Well, it’s a serious thing--for me--to have let him get away without
-his going before the authorities,” Captain Bowditch growled.
-
-That was not exactly true however. Nobody would blame him because the
-Hindoo had departed. But the old man said he would take us both up
-town right after dinner. I begged for a little time to make myself
-presentable and was given an hour’s leave ashore. I found a barber and
-got my hair trimmed properly and then went to a second hand shop and
-got an outfit of coat, pants and shoes, with a new hat for six dollars.
-Nothing very fashionable, you may be sure; but I reckoned the butler
-would let me into the house with ’em on--by the side door, at least!
-
-So the captain and Philly and I walked over to the British consulate
-and saw a young man with eyeglasses and something of a lisp, dressed in
-clothes that could not possibly be made so badly anywhere else but in
-London. He was a nice young man, though; and he insisted upon making
-tea for Philly when he heard that she had been two weeks in an open
-boat, as though she might still need a “pick-me-up” because of that
-adventure.
-
-It seemed that he had already heard of the loss of the Galland. Her
-burned hull had been sighted by two steamships and reported before
-the Gullwing arrived in port. But none of the crew or passengers of
-the ill-fated ship, until Phillis Duane came, had been reported as
-saved. The Galland had been posted as a complete loss, with crew and
-passengers.
-
-“What puzzles me,” said the English official, “is the distance the
-Galland and the boat you found drifted apart. Her bulk was reported as
-sighted only a day or two after your Gullwing picked up the little girl
-and the Hindoo.” The captain had already explained about Dao Singh.
-“Yet,” continued the consul, “the Galland had drifted far up the coast
-in the steamship route--she’s a dangerous derelict, and has been so
-reported to the Hydrographic office at Washington, and to Lloyds in
-London.
-
-“Whereas, Captain, the latitude and longitude you give is far, far to
-the south. South of the Straits, in fact.”
-
-“Three hunder’ mile sou’east of the Capes of the Virgin, sure enough,”
-admitted Captain Bowditch.
-
-“Yes. The Galland had come through the Straits and must have met with
-her accident not far outside. It seems strange that only one boat got
-away from her--and that one improperly manned.”
-
-“As near as we can find out, sir,” said the skipper, “she had but two
-seamen in her beside the Hindoo and the little girl here.”
-
-He had taken the captain and I into his private office while he
-examined us regarding the particulars of the affair. I told him frankly
-about the dead man in the boat.
-
-“I must find this Dao Singh,” he said. “Until I get him I cannot call
-the case closed, of course. And then, there’s the little girl.”
-
-Captain Bowditch spoke up for me, then. He had had a good report of me
-from Captain Hiram Rogers of the Scarboro, and he believed what I had
-told him about my folks. He would go bail for my appearance, and the
-production of Philly safe and sound, whenever we should be wanted.
-
-“A very good arrangement,” agreed the consul, seemingly mightily
-relieved regarding the girl. He was a bachelor himself. “Meanwhile I
-will do my best to locate her people. Of course, she must have been
-consigned to somebody in England, even if she does not know who.
-It seems to me as though the name of Captain Erskin Duane is not
-unfamiliar to me.”
-
-So we got away from there after a while. When I had gone ashore to get
-my fancy rigout I had sent a telegram to Ham Mayberry. I did that so as
-not to startle my mother, believing that Ham would know how to break
-the news of my arrival to her better than anybody else. Ham had been
-with us so many years that he was like one of the family.
-
-And having telegraphed him I was mighty anxious for a reply that all
-was well.
-
-Captain Bowditch left us to report at the offices of the ship owners
-and Philly and I went back to the Gullwing where Ham was to send his
-message. It had arrived while we were at the consul’s and Mr. Gates
-handed the envelope to me the moment I came aboard.
-
-With some perturbation, I broke the seal, and to say the least I was
-amazed when I read Hamilton Mayberry’s telegram:
-
-“I will meet every train. Speak to nobody until you see me.--H. M.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXVIII
-
-_In Which My Homecoming Proves To Be a Strange One Indeed_
-
-
-Naturally I thought that Ham’s telegram spelled trouble; but I kept my
-thoughts to myself. I did not feel like discussing the matter even with
-Thankful Polk.
-
-We had begun to break out the Gullwing’s cargo and worked until dark.
-The next day the roustabouts would come aboard and relieve us of that.
-All hands (save Thank and I) would go up to the office to be paid off.
-
-We in the forecastle heard nothing about the Barneys that day, nor
-did Mr. Jim return to the ship. We spent the evening skylarking on
-the forward deck. A man had come aboard with an accordion and the men
-danced, and sang, and had a general rough-and-tumble jollification.
-But I only looked on. Tomorrow would close such scenes for me--perhaps
-forever.
-
-In the morning a lawyer and his clerk came aboard to take testimony
-regarding the loss of the Seamew. Just as I had supposed, the men
-who talked most were the old fellows who believed that the two ships
-had come together because of some supernatural attraction. The real
-incidents of the collision were buried under a heap of rubbish,
-testimony that would help the courts and the insurance people mighty
-little in getting at the facts of the case.
-
-I was thankful that the lawyer did not put many questions to me. I
-stuck to my belief that Mr. Jim Barney had obeyed Captain Bowditch’s
-order to change the course of the Gullwing as soon as the order was
-given.
-
-When the examination was over there was a deal of bustle in preparation
-of all hands going ashore. I paid Job Perkins the ten dollars I had
-promised him and lent Thank all I could spare after saving out enough
-for the tickets for Philly and myself to Darringford.
-
-I suppose I might have borrowed a little money from Captain Bowditch;
-but Thank could get along until I could telegraph him a hundred from
-home. He had agreed to accept that much from me, and promised to join
-me at my mother’s summer home later.
-
-Then we bade the men good-bye, and shook hands with the skipper and Mr.
-Gates and Mr. Hollister. Thank went with Philly and me to the railroad
-station. There I hoped to find Dao Singh--and Philly was anxious about
-him, too. But the Hindoo did not appear.
-
-We could not wait for him; nor did I know how to find him in Baltimore.
-But I told Thank to keep a watch out for him, and if he saw Singh to
-let me know at once by telegraph.
-
-We took the fast express for Boston and only had to transfer at one
-point. From that point I had engaged seats in the chair car and berths
-for both Philly and myself. There was but one day coach attached to
-the train when we changed, and we were scarcely aboard when a tall,
-turbanned figure appeared at the window beside my seat.
-
-“Oh, Dao Singh!” cried Philly, and then rattled away to him in his own
-tongue.
-
-He made me a low obeisance. “I have come, Sahib, as I promised,” he
-said, softly. “I take train here with you and the Memsahib. I ride
-forward in the other coach;” and bowing he left us.
-
-I saw that he had a complete new outfit--a costume of his own country.
-He was a strange looking object as he stalked away to take his place in
-the day car.
-
-I sent Ham another wire to say what hour we would arrive at Darringford
-station. I was sincerely worried about my mother. Perhaps she was ill.
-Perhaps--I dared not ruminate farther on that subject.
-
-Phillis was greatly interested in the country through which the
-train flew. We looked pretty shabby--both of us--to be riding in a
-first-class coach, and the other passengers were curious about us. But
-we made no acquaintances on the way.
-
-We arrived safely in Boston in the morning, and crossed the city to the
-other station. We had not long to wait for a local train that stopped
-at Darringford. It was not long after nine o’clock when the train
-stopped and we disembarked.
-
-I saw Ham instantly; but he did not have our carriage. There was nobody
-else to welcome me--there was nobody about the station, indeed, who
-recognized me. I had changed a good deal during the twenty-two months I
-had been away.
-
-But old Ham knew me. He rushed at me and wrung my hands and sputtered
-something at first that I could not understand. At last he said:
-
-“And ye couldn’t have timed it better, Master Clint. You’re just in the
-nick of time. The court sits in ha’f an hour.”
-
-Then he caught sight of Phillis and Dao Singh right behind me.
-
-“What’s all this?” he muttered.
-
-“I’ll tell you later,” I said. “It’s too long a story to give you now.
-Besides, you’ve got to tell me things first. Isn’t the carriage here?
-Can’t we all go right to Darringford House? Haven’t you told mother?”
-
-He shook his head slowly.
-
-“Can’t take you home, jest yet, Master Clint,” he said.
-
-“But mother! is----?”
-
-“She ain’t sick, and she ain’t well. Only poorly. Nothing to be worried
-about. And now that you’re here I reckon things will be straightened
-out all right.”
-
-“Chester Downes!” I ejaculated.
-
-“Yes. He’s cutting up didoes,” grunted Ham.
-
-“But where is Lawyer Hounsditch?” I cried.
-
-And then Ham _did_ amaze me--and startle me, too.
-
-“Old Mr. Hounsditch died a month ago, Clint,” he said. “It was sudden.
-He was an old man, you know, and there is nobody to take his place.”
-
-“My guardian is dead, then!” I exclaimed.
-
-“He was co-trustee with your mother, Clint. That’s where the trouble
-lies. Chester Downes is riggin’ to get appointed in his place. It comes
-up before the Judge of Probate this morning. You ain’t but jest in
-time.”
-
-_That_ woke me up, now I tell you! All my wits were working in a
-minute. Ham needed to make little more talk about it for me to fully
-understand what was threatening.
-
-“And mother didn’t object?” I asked.
-
-“You know what a holt Downes has over her,” Ham said gravely. “She
-_did_ want him to wait until you came home. We got your letter from
-Valpariso and we knew the Gullwing was about due in Baltimore. But
-Chester Downes--you know him!”
-
-“Let us take my little friend and Dao Singh to the hotel,” I said.
-“They can wait for us there. I must have a lawyer, Ham.”
-
-“I got you one,” said the old man, quickly. “We’d have gone before the
-court if you hadn’t come in time and tried to get a stay.”
-
-“Who is he?”
-
-“Colonel Playfair.”
-
-I knew him by reputation. A better man didn’t live in Darringford, nor
-a better lawyer--now that Mr. Hounsditch was dead. And it seemed to me
-that I remembered something about Colonel Playfair and my grandfather
-having once been close friends.
-
-“Have you got any money, Ham?” I asked him. “For I haven’t a cent.”
-
-“Plenty,” he replied.
-
-“Get a carriage, then, and drive us to the hotel first; then to Colonel
-Playfair’s office.”
-
-“Aye, aye, sir!” returned Ham and in a few moments we were off in a
-station hack, Ham on the seat with the driver.
-
-Mr. and Mrs. Bramble kept the Darringford Hotel, and I left Philly in
-the good lady’s care. Dao Singh remained with her, of course. Then Ham
-and I raced to the office of the lawyer.
-
-It was already half past nine. There was no time to lose if the matter
-of an appointment of a new trustee for the Darringford estate was the
-first item on the docket.
-
-I knew Colonel Playfair by sight--a soldierly, white haired veteran
-with one arm. His shabby offices were in a brick building near the
-courthouse. I don’t suppose he would have known me in my present guise
-had not Ham Mayberry vouched for my identity.
-
-“A close call, young man,” he said. “I understand you object to this
-Chester Downes being appointed in the place of Mr. Hounsditch?”
-
-“I more than object,” I cried. “I won’t have it!”
-
-“Hoighty-toighty!” he said. “That’s not the way to go into court. You
-have a choice, of course; but don’t speak that way to Judge Fetter.”
-
-“No, sir,” I said, restraining myself.
-
-“And you must have somebody else in mind to suggest for the
-appointment.”
-
-“You are familiar with the situation, Colonel?” I asked. “You knew my
-grandfather, and you know how he made his will?”
-
-“Humph! I know all about it,” he returned, grimly.
-
-“You are the man to take Lawyer Hounsditch’s place. The co-trustee
-should be a lawyer, anyway.”
-
-“Well, well, I don’t know about this,” he said, slowly. “You really
-should have another attorney, then, to appear before Judge Fetter.”
-
-“Jest git it put over, Colonel,” said Ham, eagerly. “Then we kin settle
-about the trimmings afterward.”
-
-The colonel laughed and took up his hat.
-
-“All right,” he said. “We’ll go across to the judge’s chambers and see
-what we can do,” and he led the way out of his office.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXIX
-
-_In Which Mr. Chester Downes and I Again “Lock Horns”_
-
-
-This had not been the home-coming I had looked forward to. I had not
-desired to take up the old fight with my uncle, Mr. Chester Downes.
-But it seemed as though circumstances were forever opposing us in some
-wrangle or other!
-
-We three, with the old Colonel leading, went quietly into the room
-where Judge Fetter held his court. Nobody noticed us and Colonel
-Playfair motioned Ham and I to seats well back in the room. There
-were maybe a score of people on the benches. The lawyers and those
-individuals who were pertinently interested in the matters to be
-arranged, were allowed inside the rail before the Judge’s desk. Colonel
-Playfair went up there and the justice nodded to him. Nobody knew whom
-he represented, or in what matter he was interested.
-
-I saw Mr. Chester Downes at once; but my uncle did not see me. He sat
-with his back to me, in fact, and beside him was a slim and sleek
-looking man with a green bag before him on the table.
-
-“That’s Jim Maxwell,” whispered Ham. “And he’s the kind of a lawyer
-that Chester Downes would cotton to, all right. I ain’t got no manner
-o’ use for Jim Maxwell. He’s one o’ them landsharks, he is.”
-
-The proceedings droned along for a time. Two matters of probate were
-settled before our case came up. Then his clerk handed Judge Fetter
-some papers, he put on his nose glasses, glanced at them, and said:
-
-“In the matter of the appointment of Mr. Chester Downed as co-trustee
-with Mrs. Mary Webb, Widow--the Darrington Estate. There is a minor
-child, I believe? You speak in this matter, Mr. Maxwell?”
-
-“I have the honor to do so,” said the sleek man.
-
-“There is no objection to the appointment, I understand?” pursued the
-Judge. “The widow is satisfied?”
-
-“Very much so,” declared the lawyer.
-
-“She is not here present?”
-
-“Ill health, your honor,” said Maxwell, briskly! “But Mr. Downes, who
-is her brother-in-law, has been her man of business for years. Mr.
-Hounsditch, lately deceased, although appointed under the will, was
-merely a figure-head in the affairs of the estate.”
-
-“And this minor child--how old is he?”
-
-“Seventeen.”
-
-“Ah. He has no choice, then? He does not object to his uncle as a
-trustee?”
-
-“The boy has run away from home, your honor. He is a little wild----”
-began Mr. Maxwell.
-
-I was so enraged that I could not keep my seat; but Ham pulled me back.
-“Take it easy, Clint,” he whispered.
-
-“In that case,” the judge mooned along, rustling the papers, “there
-being no objection, and Mr. Chester Downes’ bond being entirely
-satisfactory----”
-
-Colonel Playfair arose. The Judge looked at him in surprise.
-
-“I beg pardon, Brother Playfair,” he said, politely. “You surely do not
-appear in this matter?”
-
-“Yes, your honor, I do,” said the Colonel.
-
-“You represent anybody interested?”
-
-“I most certainly do,” said the Colonel. “I represent the minor child,
-Clinton Webb.”
-
-Mr. Chester Downes leaned forward and whispered to his lawyer. The
-latter sprang up again.
-
-“I beg Colonel Playfair’s pardon,” Maxwell said. “Does he state that he
-has been engaged directly by the boy mentioned to represent him before
-this court?”
-
-Colonel Playfair was silent for a moment, and the other lawyer went on:
-
-“For if not, I object. No engagement of an attorney by outside parties
-will stand, your honor. We expected some interference by officious
-friends of the misguided boy. His mother is his legal guardian, Mr.
-Hounsditch being dead----”
-
-“Wait,” said the Judge, patiently. “Colonel Playfair knows the law as
-well as any man here,” and he smiled and bowed. “State your position,
-sir,” he said to the Colonel.
-
-“I represent the minor, your honor,” he said, quietly. “If it becomes
-necessary application will be made for the appointment of both a
-guardian as well as co-trustee of the estate, on behalf of Clinton
-Webb.”
-
-“But the boy has run away! He is incorrigible,” cried Lawyer Maxwell.
-
-“Brother Maxwell is misinformed,” said the Colonel, suavely, “If he
-does not know the truth, his client does. Clinton Webb did not run away
-from home. He was blown out to sea in a little sloop from Bolderhead.
-It is a matter of record--newspaper record, your honor. He was picked
-up by a vessel bound for the South Seas. From that distance he has only
-lately been able to get a ship homeward bound.”
-
-Chester Downes was whispering again to his lawyer. The eyes of the
-sleek Mr. Maxwell snapped.
-
-“Your honor!” cried he, interrupting Colonel Playfair.
-
-The colonel politely gave way to him. The Judge looked puzzled.
-
-“Your honor! The fact of his having left home in the first place
-involuntarily is admitted. But he has refused to return. His mother
-sent money for his passage to Buenos Ayres. He supposedly wasted the
-money and remained wilfully out of her jurisdiction.”
-
-“Colonel Playfair?” queried the Judge.
-
-“If Brother Maxwell is quite finished,” said the colonel, “I would like
-to state our side of the argument.”
-
-“Continue,” said the Judge.
-
-“I am sorry to wash dirty linen in court,” Colonel Playfair said,
-quietly. “These family troubles would better be settled outside of
-the courtroom. But it seems necessary to place the full facts before
-your honor. It is not only a proven fact that Clinton Webb left home
-involuntarily; but there was a crime attached to his adventure. He was
-nailed into the cabin of his boat and the boat was cut adrift at the
-beginning of the September gale, two years ago this coming fall.”
-
-The spectators began to sit up and take notice. The affair was assuming
-a serious hue.
-
-“The person who committed this dastardly crime is known--known to
-Brother Maxwell’s client. This person, afraid of being arrested for his
-deed, actually _did_ run away from home, went to Buenos Ayres, there
-represented himself as Clinton Webb and obtained the money sent there
-by Mrs. Webb for her son, and is now, I understand, a member of the
-crew of the whaling bark, Scarboro, in the South Pacific.
-
-“These final facts are proven by a letter from the American consul at
-Buenos Ayres, sent to Mr. Hounsditch, deceased, together with the
-amount of money which had been given to the false claimant by a clerk
-in the consul’s office. Does Mr. Maxwell wish me to state the name of
-the person who committed these criminal acts?”
-
-My uncle’s lawyer was evidently in a fine flurry. He jumped up to say:
-
-“We let the point pass for the present. But we claim that the minor
-child, Clinton Webb, has no standing in this court. He is on the high
-seas----”
-
-“Wrong, Brother Maxwell,” said the colonel, very sweetly. “He is here.”
-
-I saw Mr. Chester Downes start from his seat. He cried out something,
-but the Judge rapped his desk for order.
-
-“You say your client is present in court, Colonel?” he asked.
-
-“Clinton Webb! Come forward!” commanded my lawyer, and that time Ham
-did not try to keep me in my seat.
-
-I marched down the aisle. Mr. Chester Downes saw me coming. His dark
-face never paled; the blood flooded into it, darkening it until his
-cheeks and brow were almost black.
-
-We looked at each other. There was no need for either to threaten the
-other. As of old, we were sworn enemies. And I believed that I had
-again crossed him in his most precious project.
-
-The colonel let me into the enclosure through the gate.
-
-“You recognize your nephew, do you, Mr. Downes?” asked the Judge.
-
-Chester Downes nodded. He could not speak.
-
-“And I understand that Clinton Webb, here before us, objects to the
-appointment of his uncle as co-trustee of the estate?” he asked the
-colonel.
-
-“He does,” was the brief reply.
-
-“What is your wish, then, Colonel?” asked Judge Fetter. “This matter,
-evidently, is not ready for closing to-day?”
-
-“No, your honor. We ask for a postponement--that is all.”
-
-“Do you agree, Brother Maxwell?” asked the judge.
-
-Maxwell looked at his client. There was nothing else to do but to agree
-and Downes knew it as well as the lawyer.
-
-“Oh, yes!” snarled Chester Downes. “We will have to fight, I see.”
-
-He and I had locked horns again; but he would not admit then that he
-was worsted.
-
-Colonel Playfair had a few moments’ whispered conversation with Judge
-Fetter, and then we went back to the lawyer’s office. Chester Downes
-and Maxwell had hastened away from the courthouse. My uncle did not try
-to speak to me--and I was glad. I am afraid I could not have controlled
-myself just then.
-
-There were some papers to sign and more discussion in Colonel
-Playfair’s office. He called in a brother practitioner, Mr. Charles
-Ahorn, and the matters were turned over to him. Colonel Playfair
-agreed to step into poor Mr. Hounsditch’s shoes, and be my guardian
-and co-trustee with my mother, if the other side could come to an
-agreement. I believed, when I had talked with my mother, that she would
-make no objection.
-
-Crafty as I knew my uncle to be, I could not believe that he had so
-succeeded in warping my mother’s judgment that she would believe
-everything ill he had said of me. And I counted on her love as a surety.
-
-Much as she might disregard my personal opinion of Chester Downes, I
-was sure she would welcome me with open arms!
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXX
-
-_In Which My Welcome Home Is a Real Welcome, After All_
-
-
-Ham and I went back in the hack to the hotel, where we had dinner with
-Phillis, Dao Singh standing behind my chair, and waiting at table. I
-had an idea right then and there that James, the butler, would find his
-job in danger when we got settled at Darringford House.
-
-Briefly, while we ate, I related some of my adventures to my old
-friend. Particularly those that had to do with Philly and the Hindoo.
-
-“It beats all--it sure does!” Ham kept repeating, and could scarcely
-keep his eyes off the turbanned servant.
-
-When we drove through the wide gateway to the grounds surrounding
-Darringford House, I saw the flutter of a light dress upon the
-verandah. When we rounded the turn in the drive and the shrubbery was
-past, I knew my mother was standing there. But I certainly _was_ amazed
-to see Chester Downes sitting in one of the arm chairs. No matter what
-happened, he never owned up beat! I had to hand it to him there.
-
-But I saw what he was up to immediately. He had hurried ahead to break
-the news of my coming to my mother, and to lay plans for his continued
-influence in the house. My mother and the estate were practically his
-bread and butter. I knew that well enough.
-
-But nothing then could spoil the joy of my home-coming. I tore open the
-door of the hack before it stopped and leaped out. Mother rushed into
-my arms as I came up the step and I swung her up off the ground--she
-was such a little, dainty woman!--and I knew that she had never ceased
-to love me.
-
-“Clint! Clint!” she sobbed. “My dear, dear boy!”
-
-“Hug me again, mother!” I returned, trying to laugh, but making a poor
-mess of it. “This is the happiest minute I’ve seen for two years.”
-
-“And how you’ve grown!” she gasped, pushing me off a bit so that she
-could look me over better.
-
-“And you haven’t grown a bit!” I laughed, and swung her again until she
-was breathless.
-
-“And I hope you have got enough of the awful sea and sea-going!” she
-cried. “Oh, Clint! You will stay at home now?”
-
-“I certainly hope to,” I returned, casting a meaning glance at Chester
-Downes, who had risen, with a false smile on his face, and his hand
-outstretched.
-
-But in spite of the fact that at that moment I meant all that I said,
-and had not the remotest idea that I should ever go to sea again,
-circumstances not then dreamed of changed my intentions later; and the
-reader who so desires may follow my further course afloat in the fourth
-volume of this series, entitled: “The Ocean Express; or, Clint Webb
-Aboard the Sea Tramp.”
-
-Then my mother caught sight of Philly and Dao Singh. They had stepped
-out of the hack and the tall Hindoo, in his oriental costume, stood
-gravely behind the little golden haired beauty. She looked like a story
-out of some Eastern Fairy Tale, and Dao Singh just set her off nicely.
-
-“The pretty child!” mother murmured, clasping her hands, and I know
-that at that instant her heart went out to Phillis Duane.
-
-Philly was looking up at her with a bashful little smile; yet the
-golden lights in her brown eyes were dancing. She had laughed to see
-how I had caught my little mother up off the ground.
-
-“Who is she, Clinton?” mother asked.
-
-“My sister,” I told her, proudly.
-
-“What?” gasped mother, and I saw Chester Downes echo the word, but in a
-whisper. I could imagine the start my announcement gave him. And yet,
-my statement could not explain all that I saw in my uncle’s face as he
-glared at little Phillis. It was not until afterward, however, that I
-remembered how startled Chester Downes was.
-
-“That’s what we’ve agreed to, mother,” I said, smiling, too, at my
-pretty little friend. “We have adopted each other. Now it remains with
-you to take Phillis Duane right into your heart along with me.”
-
-“The dear, dear child!” mother murmured, and went down the verandah
-steps to meet the girl.
-
-“I know I shall love you, dearly! dearly!” cried Philly, and put her
-arms around mother’s neck as the latter stooped over her.
-
-Dao Singh made a low obeisance. Mother looked rather startled at him
-and then turned to me.
-
-“Dao Singh,” I explained, “has had much care of Phillis since she was
-little. He insists upon attending upon her----”
-
-“And upon the Webb Sahib,” concluded the Hindoo, gravely. “It is
-well that the little Memsahib and Webb Sahib, come in health to Her
-Ladyship, on whom be peace and health. Dao Singh is her servant.”
-
-He bent low again, took up the hem of my mother’s voluminous summer
-dress, and pressed it to his forehead. Mother looked amazed, and well
-she might--a new daughter and such a kingly serving person thrust upon
-her so unexpectedly. I had to laugh.
-
-“Your Ladyship will get used to it in time. As a man before the mast
-in an old windjammer, being served by an oriental prince has its
-drawbacks; but you’ll get used to it, Little Mum!”
-
-But mother’s interest was soon fixed entirely upon Phillis, and with
-her hand upon the child’s shoulder, she urged her up the steps. There
-Chester Downes was hanging about, eager to be noticed, anxious to come
-into the picture.
-
-“Your Uncle Chester, Clinton,” said mother, “has been so kind to me
-while you were away.”
-
-I said nothing. She glanced from my face to his, and then back again,
-and her lips began to tremble.
-
-“Oh! I hoped that you would meet him differently now, Clinton,” she
-said.
-
-“I am sorry if I consider Mr. Downes just what he was before I went
-away. Any house would be uncomfortable if both of us remained in it.
-Can I speak plainer?”
-
-“You don’t need to, boy!” snarled Mr. Downes, his face reddening again.
-
-“Colonel Playfair will probably see you at any time you wish to call on
-him--either he or Mr. Charles Aborn,” I said, pointedly. “They have my
-affairs in charge.”
-
-Mother did not hear. She was talking with Phillis. And Mr. Downes,
-after a brief hesitation, went down the steps and through the shrubbery
-to the street.
-
-I took the chair upon the other side of Philly and Dao Singh, like
-a gaily painted life-size statue, stood at a respectable distance.
-Briefly we told mother the story of the little girl’s adventures; and
-as I well knew mother received the waif with joy.
-
-“It has been a great sorrow all his life, my child,” mother said,
-drawing Philly upon her lap, “that Clint had no sister. A boy is a
-great comfort to a widowed woman; but he cannot take the place of a
-daughter. Love me, my child, if you can.”
-
-And I knew by the way that the child threw her arms about mother’s
-neck and sobbed upon her breast, that she had already begun to love my
-mother. Philly’s heart had been sore for just the sort of protective
-care my mother could give her. I saw that my scheme was going to be a
-huge success!
-
-With Chester Downes out of the way my home-coming was all that I could
-have hoped for. The help around the house welcomed me with delight,
-too. Even my mother’s French maid, Marie Portent, gave me a wintry
-smile--and I had never been a favorite with her.
-
-The neighbors came in to see me, too, for the news had spread all over
-town that I had come back from my wanderings. Mr. Chester Downes had
-not succeeded in turning everybody against me.
-
-But you may believe I got into some decent clothes before I held any
-reception. Then I went down town and wired Thankful Polk a hundred
-dollars and the news that everything was O. K. with me.
-
-“Now we will go to Bolderhead and open the house for the rest of the
-summer,” mother said that very evening. “I could not bear to open it
-without you, dear boy.”
-
-We kept off the subject of the Downes just then; but I might as well
-state right here that Mr. Chester Downes was not appointed by the court
-co-trustee with my mother. Colonel Playfair _was_, and that before we
-closed Darringford house and went to live in mother’s summer villa on
-Bolderhead Neck.
-
-Thankful Polk came north to visit us, too; and mother was greatly
-pleased with him. Dao Singh, as I foresaw, soon made it advisable for
-us to find another situation for James, our butler. Singh actually,
-when we got to Bolderhead, took the entire responsibility of the
-housekeeping upon himself, and mother thankfully declared that she had
-never had so easy a time before, nor had the household been run so
-smoothly.
-
-For the first time since I could remember Mr. Chester Downes did not go
-to Bolderhead with us. I had no friction over it, and mother was not
-troubled. Colonel Playfair knew how to bring things about. I liked him
-a whole lot better for a guardian than I had Mr. Hounsditch.
-
-As for my cousin Paul, when he returned home--if he ever did--I knew I
-had a method of keeping him at a distance. The threat of punishment for
-what he had done to me still hung over him like a sword of Damocles.
-
-It was not many weeks before I had a letter from Mr. Jim Barney. Among
-other interesting items of news, he stated that both he and his brother
-had been exonerated together with Captain Bowditch in the matter of the
-collision and the sinking of the Seamew. If blame lay anywhere it was
-upon poor Captain Somes, who had gone down with his ship.
-
-As to the Barney brothers’ private affairs, they had both refused their
-uncle’s offer of money and position. As long as the old man would not
-divide his wealth between them and give both of them an opportunity of
-entering the shipping firm, Jim and Alf had resigned and were going to
-sail upon ships belonging to other owners. That seemed to them to be
-the best and final settlement of the matter.
-
-I often thought of my long cruise in the Windjammer, and I could
-not say that I was sorry for having gone through those adventures.
-I certainly was not sorry that they had brought about the coming of
-Phillis Duane to our house. For, as the weeks flew by, the British
-consul heard nothing regarding the girl’s friends or relatives.
-
-It looked as though she was ours “for keeps,” as Thank said; and both
-my mother and I were satisfied.
-
-
-THE END.
-
-
-
-
-TRANSCRIBER’S NOTES:
-
-
- Italicized text is surrounded by underscores: _italics_.
-
- Obvious typographical errors have been corrected.
-
- Inconsistencies in hyphenation have been standardized.
-
- Archaic or alternate spelling has been retained from the original.
-
-*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK FROM SEA TO SEA ***
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the
-United States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following
-the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use
-of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for
-copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very
-easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation
-of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project
-Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away--you may
-do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected
-by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark
-license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country other than the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you will have to check the laws of the country where
- you are located before using this eBook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm website
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that:
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the manager of
-the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the Foundation as set
-forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non-profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's business office is located at 809 North 1500 West,
-Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up
-to date contact information can be found at the Foundation's website
-and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without
-widespread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our website which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This website includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
diff --git a/old/67495-0.zip b/old/67495-0.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 8ccdb3f..0000000
--- a/old/67495-0.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67495-h.zip b/old/67495-h.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index e8d24e5..0000000
--- a/old/67495-h.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67495-h/67495-h.htm b/old/67495-h/67495-h.htm
deleted file mode 100644
index a83b512..0000000
--- a/old/67495-h/67495-h.htm
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,9147 +0,0 @@
-<!DOCTYPE html PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD XHTML 1.0 Strict//EN"
- "http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml1/DTD/xhtml1-strict.dtd">
-<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml" xml:lang="en" lang="en">
- <head>
- <meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html;charset=utf-8" />
- <meta http-equiv="Content-Style-Type" content="text/css" />
- <title>
- From Sea to Sea, by W. Bert Foster&mdash;A Project Gutenberg eBook
- </title>
- <link rel="coverpage" href="images/cover.jpg" />
- <style type="text/css">
-
-body {
- margin-left: 10%;
- margin-right: 10%;
-}
-
- h1,h2 {
- text-align: center;
- clear: both;
-}
-
-p {
- margin-top: .51em;
- text-align: justify;
- margin-bottom: .49em;
-}
-
-div.titlepage {text-align: center; page-break-before: always; page-break-after: always;}
-div.titlepage p {text-align: center; font-weight: bold; line-height: 1.5; margin-top: 2em;}
-
-hr {
- width: 33%;
- margin-top: 2em;
- margin-bottom: 2em;
- margin-left: 33.5%;
- margin-right: 33.5%;
- clear: both;
-}
-
-hr.tb {width: 45%; margin-left: 27.5%; margin-right: 27.5%;}
-hr.chap {width: 65%; margin-left: 17.5%; margin-right: 17.5%;}
-@media print { hr.chap {display: none; visibility: hidden;} }
-
-
-div.chapter {page-break-before: always;}
-h2.nobreak {page-break-before: avoid;}
-
-table {
- margin-left: auto;
- margin-right: auto;
-}
-
-.tdr {text-align: right; white-space: nowrap;}
-
-
-.pagenum {
- position: absolute;
- left: 92%;
- font-size: smaller;
- text-align: right;
- font-style: normal;
- font-weight: normal;
- font-variant: normal;
-}
-
-.center {text-align: center;}
-
-
-
-.smcap {font-variant: small-caps;}
-
-.gap {padding-left: 5em;}
-
-.caption {font-weight: bold; text-align: center;}
-
-.large {font-size: 125%;}
-.tiny {font-size: 60%;}
-
-.figcenter {
- margin: auto;
- text-align: center;
- page-break-inside: avoid;
- max-width: 100%;
-}
-
-
-.ph1 {text-align: center; font-size: large; font-weight: bold; margin-bottom: 2em;}
-.ph2 {text-align: center; font-size: xx-large; font-weight: bold;}
-
-.transnote {background-color: #E6E6FA;
- color: black;
- font-size:smaller;
- margin-left: 17.5%;
- margin-right: 17.5%;
- padding: 1em;
- margin-bottom: 1em;
- font-family:sans-serif, serif; }
-
- </style>
- </head>
-<body>
-<p style='text-align:center; font-size:1.2em; font-weight:bold'>The Project Gutenberg eBook of From Sea to Sea, by W. Bert Foster</p>
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
-most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
-of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online
-at <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you
-are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws of the
-country where you are located before using this eBook.
-</div>
-
-<p style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:0; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Title: From Sea to Sea</p>
-<p style='display:block; margin-left:2em; text-indent:0; margin-top:0; margin-bottom:1em;'>Or, Clint Webb’s Cruise on the Windjammer</p>
-<p style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:0; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Author: W. Bert Foster</p>
-<p style='display:block; text-indent:0; margin:1em 0'>Release Date: February 24, 2022 [eBook #67495]</p>
-<p style='display:block; text-indent:0; margin:1em 0'>Language: English</p>
- <p style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:0; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em; text-align:left'>Produced by: D A Alexander, David E. Brown, and the Online Distributed Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net (This file was produced from images generously made available by the Library of Congress)</p>
-<div style='margin-top:2em; margin-bottom:4em'>*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK FROM SEA TO SEA ***</div>
-
-<div class="figcenter"><img src="images/cover.jpg" width="40%" alt="" /></div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-<div class="chapter">
-<div class="figcenter"><img src="images/i_frontispiece.jpg" alt="" /></div>
-<p class="caption"><span class="smcap">&#8220;You Want Us To Lose This Race, You Sawney!&#8221; He Exclaimed.</span><br />
-
-(From Sea to Sea)<span class="gap"> (Page <a href="#Page_135">135)</a></span></p>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="titlepage">
-<h1>From Sea to Sea</h1>
-
-<p>Or<br />
-<br />
-<span class="large">Clint Webb&#8217;s Cruise on the<br />
-Windjammer</span></p>
-
-<p>By<br />
-<span class="large">W. BERT FOSTER</span><br />
-
-Author of<br />
-
-The Frozen Ship; or, Clint Webb Among the Sealers.<br />
-Swept Out to Sea; or, Clint Webb Among the<br />
-Whalers. The Ocean Express; or, Clint<br />
-Webb and the Sea Tramp.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter"><img src="images/i_title.jpg" alt="" /></div>
-
-<p>Chicago<br />
-M. A. Donohue &amp; Co.</p>
-
-</div>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p class="center">
-Copyright 1914<br />
-M. A. Donohue &amp; Company<br />
-Chicago</p>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2 class="nobreak">CONTENTS</h2>
-</div>
-
-<table border="0" cellpadding="0" cellspacing="0" summary="table">
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">Chapter</td><td class="tdr" colspan="2"> Page</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr" valign="top">I&mdash;</td><td>I Shield a Friend and Make an Enemy</td><td class="tdr" valign="bottom"><a href="#Page_7"> 7</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr" valign="top">II&mdash;</td><td>I Relate My History and Stand Up to a Bully</td><td class="tdr" valign="bottom"><a href="#Page_15"> 15</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr" valign="top">III&mdash;</td><td>The Bubble of My Conceit Is Pricked</td><td class="tdr" valign="bottom"><a href="#Page_27"> 27</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr" valign="top">IV&mdash;</td><td>Captain Bowditch Crowds On Sail and There Is Much Excitement</td><td class="tdr" valign="bottom"><a href="#Page_37"> 37</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr" valign="top">V&mdash;</td><td>We See a Ship Sailing in the Sky</td><td class="tdr" valign="bottom"><a href="#Page_47"> 47</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr" valign="top">VI&mdash;</td><td>The Gullwing Suffers a Ghostly Visitation</td><td class="tdr" valign="bottom"><a href="#Page_54"> 54</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr" valign="top">VII&mdash;</td><td>Is Pictured a Race in Mid-Ocean</td><td class="tdr" valign="bottom"><a href="#Page_64"> 64</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr" valign="top">VIII&mdash;</td><td>It Seems That a Prophecy Will Be Fulfilled</td><td class="tdr" valign="bottom"><a href="#Page_72"> 72</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr" valign="top">IX&mdash;</td><td>I Pass Through Deep Waters</td><td class="tdr" valign="bottom"><a href="#Page_80"> 80</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr" valign="top">X&mdash;</td><td>The Impossible Becomes the Possible</td><td class="tdr" valign="bottom"><a href="#Page_88"> 88</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr" valign="top">XI&mdash;</td><td>I See That There Is Tragedy in This Ocean Race</td><td class="tdr" valign="bottom"><a href="#Page_96"> 96</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr" valign="top">XII&mdash;</td><td>The Captain&#8217;s Dog Goes Overboard</td><td class="tdr" valign="bottom"><a href="#Page_103"> 103</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr" valign="top">XIII&mdash;</td><td>I Learn a Deal About Sea Monsters in General and the Giant Squid in Particular &nbsp; &nbsp; </td><td class="tdr" valign="bottom"><a href="#Page_110"> 110</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr" valign="top">XIV&mdash;</td><td>A Signal Retards the Race</td><td class="tdr" valign="bottom"><a href="#Page_121"> 121</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr" valign="top">XV&mdash;</td><td>We Have a Race in Good Earnest</td><td class="tdr" valign="bottom"><a href="#Page_131"> 131</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr" valign="top">XVI&mdash;</td><td>I Return to the Gullwing&mdash;and With My Arms Full</td><td class="tdr" valign="bottom"><a href="#Page_138"> 138</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr" valign="top">XVII&mdash;</td><td>We Learn the Particulars of the Wreck of the Galland</td><td class="tdr" valign="bottom"><a href="#Page_146"> 146</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr" valign="top">XVIII&mdash;</td><td>I Become Better Acquainted with Phillis Duane</td><td class="tdr" valign="bottom"><a href="#Page_156"> 156</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr" valign="top">XIX&mdash;</td><td>I Learn Something More About the Barney Twins</td><td class="tdr" valign="bottom"><a href="#Page_164"> 164</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr" valign="top">XX&mdash;</td><td>Phillis Tells Me of Her Dream</td><td class="tdr" valign="bottom"><a href="#Page_172"> 172</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr" valign="top">XXI&mdash;</td><td>The Sister Ships Once More Race Neck and Neck</td><td class="tdr" valign="bottom"><a href="#Page_179"> 179</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr" valign="top">XXII&mdash;</td><td>The Capes of Virginia Are in Sight</td><td class="tdr" valign="bottom"><a href="#Page_189"> 189</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr" valign="top">XXIII&mdash;</td><td>We Escape Death by the Breadth of a Hair</td><td class="tdr" valign="bottom"><a href="#Page_197"> 197</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr" valign="top">XXIV&mdash;</td><td>The Tragedy of the Racing Ships Is Completed</td><td class="tdr" valign="bottom"><a href="#Page_203"> 203</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr" valign="top">XXV&mdash;</td><td>A Very Serious Question Is Discussed</td><td class="tdr" valign="bottom"><a href="#Page_210"> 210</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">XXVI&mdash;</td><td>Is Told How the Barney Boys Go Ashore</td><td class="tdr" valign="bottom"><a href="#Page_219"> 219</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr" valign="top">XXVII&mdash;</td><td>I Receive a Telegram That Troubles Me</td><td class="tdr" valign="bottom"><a href="#Page_227"> 227</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr" valign="top">XXVIII&mdash;</td><td>My Homecoming Proves To Be a Strange One Indeed</td><td class="tdr" valign="bottom"><a href="#Page_234"> 234</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr" valign="top">XXIX&mdash;</td><td>Mr. Chester Downes and I Again &#8220;Lock Horns&#8221;</td><td class="tdr" valign="bottom"><a href="#Page_241"> 241</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr" valign="top">XXX&mdash;</td><td>My Welcome Home Is a Real Welcome After All</td><td class="tdr" valign="bottom"><a href="#Page_249"> 249</a></td></tr>
-</table>
-
-
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_7">[7]</span>
-
-<p class="ph2">From Sea to Sea<br />
-
-
-<span class="tiny">Or,</span><br />
-
-<small>Clint Webb&#8217;s Cruise on the Windjammer</small></p>
-
-
-
-<h2 class="nobreak"><span class="smcap">Chapter I</span></h2>
-
-
-<p class="ph1"><i>In Which I Shield a Friend and Make an Enemy</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p>The after port anchor had come inboard
-before I stepped over the rail of the Gullwing,
-and leaped to the deck. The starboard and port
-bowers were both catted and fished and the
-stay-fore-sail had filled to pay off her head.</p>
-
-<p>The wind was blowing directly on shore; the
-current ran parallel with the land; there was no
-choice of direction in getting the big four-master
-under weigh, and she was headed into the stream.</p>
-
-<p>A clarion voice shouted from the poop:</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Haul main-tack!</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Come aft with that sheet!</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Set jib and spanker! Look alive there!</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Mr. Gates! see if you can&#8217;t get some action
-out of your watch!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Aye, aye, sir!&#8221; from the mate.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Helm a-lee! hard a-lee!&#8221;</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_8">[8]</span>&#8220;Hard a-lee she is!&#8221; growled the helmsman,
-a great, hairy, two-fisted salt, with an enormous
-quid of tobacco in one cheek, a cast in his eye,
-and his blue shirt so wide open at the throat
-that we could catch a glimpse of a dashing looking
-mermaid, in blue and red, upon his chest.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Set fore-sail! Be alive, there, Mr. Barney.
-Those men of yours act as stiff as Paddy&#8217;s
-father&mdash;and him nine days dead!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>The stamping of the men on the deck as
-they hauled on the ropes, a confusion of cries
-from those in the tops, the squeal of the cables
-running over the drum, the coughing of the
-donkey-engine amidships by which the huge
-anchors had been started from the bottom of
-Valpariso roadstead, and the general bustle and
-running about, kept Thankful Polk&mdash;who had
-followed me aboard the big, four-stick schooner&mdash;and
-I right there by the rail, where we would
-be out of the way. Thankful gave me a sly
-glance, as he whispered:</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I reckon we&#8217;ve caught a Tartar in Cap&#8217;n
-Joe Bowditch&mdash;what?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>But I had noted the lines about the skipper&#8217;s
-mouth and the wrinkles at the corners of his
-quick, gray eyes. Those lines and wrinkles had
-not been graved in the old sea-captain&#8217;s face by
-any long-standing grouch. Captain Bowditch<span class="pagenum" id="Page_9">[9]</span>
-was a man who liked his joke; and even his
-voice as he bawled orders from the quarter had
-a tang of good-nature to it that was not to be
-mistaken.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I reckon we&#8217;ll get along all right with him,
-if we play the game straight,&#8221; I observed to my
-chum, and turned then to wave my cap to Cap&#8217;n
-Hi Rogers, of the whaling bark Scarboro, who
-was now being rowed back to his own ship
-after leaving us to the tender mercies of Cap&#8217;n
-Bowditch.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;By hickey!&#8221; exclaimed the boy from Georgia,
-glancing now along the deck, &#8220;ain&#8217;t she a
-monster? Looks a mile from the wheel to the
-break of the fo&#8217;castle.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>It was the largest sailing vessel I had ever
-been aboard of myself. The Scarboro was a
-good sized bark, but as we crossed her stern
-we could look down upon the whaler&#8217;s deck and
-wave our hats to the friendly crew that had
-been so kind to us. Only a single scowling face
-was raised to ours as the Gullwing swept on, a
-creamy wave breaking either side of her sharp
-bow. This face belonged to my cousin, Paul
-Downes, who scowled at me and shook his fist.
-But I merely smiled back at him. I thought
-that&mdash;at length&mdash;I could afford to laugh at my
-cousin&#8217;s threats. I was bound straight for home<span class="pagenum" id="Page_10">[10]</span>
-aboard the Gullwing; he had eighteen months,
-or more, to serve aboard the whaling bark.</p>
-
-<p>Seeing that both the captain and the mates
-were too busy just then to bother with us,
-Thank and I strolled forward. It was a long,
-long deck&mdash;and the boards were as white as
-stone and water could make them. There was
-some litter about just now, of course; but from
-the look of the whole ship I made up my mind
-right then and there that if Captain Bowditch
-was a martinet in anything, it was in the line of
-neatness and order. The slush tub beside the
-galley door was freshly painted and had a tight
-cover; there was no open swill bucket to gather
-flies; the cook&#8217;s wiping towels had been boiled
-out and were now hung upon a patent drying
-rack fastened to the house, and were as white
-and clean as the wash of a New England housewife.
-Every bit of brightwork shone and where
-paint was needed it had been newly put on with
-no niggard hand. As the sails were broke out
-and spread to catch the light wind, many of
-them were white-new, while those that were
-patched had been overboard for a good sousing
-before being bent on again. Oh, the Gullwing
-was a smart ship, with a smart skipper, and a
-smart crew; one could appraise these facts with
-half an eye.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_11">[11]</span>&#8220;Makes you think you ought to have wiped
-your feet on the mat before stepping in, eh?&#8221;
-chuckled Thank. &#8220;I bet we got to a place at
-last, Sharp, where we&#8217;re bound to work. That
-old feller with the whiskers up there could spot
-a fly-speck on the flying jib-boom. I wonder
-he don&#8217;t have brass cuspidors setting &#8217;round for
-the deck-watch!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Compared with the frowzy old vessels, captained
-and manned by foreigners, that make
-American ports, this American ship, American
-skippered, and American manned, was a lady&#8217;s
-parlor. &#8220;She&#8217;s a beauty,&#8221; I said. &#8220;We may
-work for our pay&mdash;whatever it is to be&mdash;but
-thank&#8217;s be &#8217;tis no sealing craft. The stench of
-the old Gypsey Girl will never be out of my
-nostrils.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>We stood about for a few minutes longer,
-trying to keep out of the way of the busy crew;
-but one husky, red faced fellow came sliding
-down the backstays and landed square on
-Thank&#8217;s head and shoulders, pitching him to the
-deck.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Get out o&#8217; the way, you two young sawneys!&#8221;
-growled this fellow. &#8220;Don&#8217;t you know enough
-to keep out from under foot?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Thank had picked himself up quickly and
-turned with his usual good-natured grin. It<span class="pagenum" id="Page_12">[12]</span>
-was hard for anybody to pick a quarrel with
-Thankful Polk.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;My law-dee, Mister&#8221; he exclaimed. &#8220;Is
-that the way you us&#8217;ally come from aloft?
-Lucky I was right here to cushion ye, eh?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>The red faced fellow, without a word, swung
-at him with his hard fist doubled. I was a
-pretty sturdy fellow myself, with more weight
-than my chum, and I saw no reason for letting
-him receive that blow when interference was so
-easy. I stepped in and the bully crashed
-against my shoulder, his blow never reaching
-Thank. Nor did he hurt me, either. His collision
-with my shoulder threw him off his
-balance and he sprawled upon the deck, striking
-his head hard. He rolled over and blinked up
-at me for half a minute, too stunned to realize
-what had happened to him.</p>
-
-<p>The encounter was seen by half a dozen of the
-men, but none of the officers spied us. The
-spectators laughed as though they hugely enjoyed
-the discomfiture of the bully.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Sarves ye right, Bob Promise,&#8221; muttered
-one of the A. B.s; &#8220;I bet ye got more than ye
-bargained for in that youngster.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Caught a Tartar, eh, Bob?&#8221; scoffed another
-man.</p>
-
-<p>The fellow on the deck &#8220;came to&#8221; then, and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_13">[13]</span>
-sprang up with every apparent intention of
-attacking me. I had shielded my chum, but
-it was plain that I had made an enemy.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I&#8217;ll teach ye, ye young swab!&#8221; Bob ejaculated,
-and started for me.</p>
-
-<p>But the others interfered. Several hustled the
-bully back.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;None o&#8217; that, Bob Promise!&#8221; exclaimed the
-first speaker. &#8220;We&#8217;ll have the old man down
-here in a second.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I&#8217;ll break that feller&#8217;s neck!&#8221; cried Bob.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I dunno whether ye will or not&mdash;in a stand
-up fight,&#8221; drawled another of his shipmates.
-&#8220;He looks like he could take care of himself.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>I had involuntarily fallen into an attitude of
-self-defense. That is where I had the advantage
-of Thank; I knew something about boxing,
-and although the bully was heavier and
-older than I, it was pretty certain that he had no
-science. At any rate I wasn&#8217;t going to let him
-think I was afraid of him.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;You wait!&#8221; growled Bob Promise. &#8220;You
-stand up to me in the watch below, and I&#8217;ll eat
-you alive.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>I had an idea that if he did I should disagree
-with his stomach badly; but I did not say this.
-I don&#8217;t think I am naturally a quarrelsome fellow,
-if I am impulsive. Nor did I wish to get in<span class="pagenum" id="Page_14">[14]</span>
-bad with the captain and officers of the ship by
-being mixed up in a fight.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Oh, pshaw!&#8221; I said, mildly. &#8220;I don&#8217;t want
-to fight you, Mister. Thank didn&#8217;t intentionally
-get in your way, and I didn&#8217;t mean&mdash;&mdash;&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;You struck me, you white livered&mdash;&mdash;&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I didn&#8217;t,&#8221; I denied. &#8220;You ran against me.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Don&#8217;t you give me no back talk,&#8221; snarled
-the fellow, but looking out watchfully for the
-officers now.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Don&#8217;t be mad,&#8221; I said, with a smile. &#8220;I&#8217;m
-sorry if I hurt you&mdash;&mdash;&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>I guess that wasn&#8217;t a wise thing to say, although
-I did not mean to heap fuel on the flames
-of his wrath. He gave me a black look as he
-turned away, muttering:</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Wait till I git you a-tween decks, my lad.
-I&#8217;ll do for you!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Thank and I looked at each other, and I guess
-my countenance expressed all the chagrin I
-felt, for my chum did not smile, as usual.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;You butted in for me, Sharp,&#8221; he said,
-gloomily, &#8220;and now that big bruiser will beat
-you up, as sure as shooting.&#8221;</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_15">[15]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak"><span class="smcap">Chapter II</span></h2>
-
-
-<p class="ph1"><i>In Which I Relate My History and Stand Up to a
-Bully</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p>A fine introduction to my readers! That is
-the way I look at it. It does seem to me, looking
-back upon the last few years of my life, that
-my impetuosity has forever been getting me into
-unpleasant predicaments. Perhaps if I wasn&#8217;t
-such a husky fellow for my age, and had not
-learned to use my fists to defend myself, I
-should not have &#8220;butted in,&#8221; as Thankful Polk
-said, and so laid myself open to a beating at
-the hands of Bob Promise, the bully of the Gullwing&#8217;s
-fo&#8217;castle.</p>
-
-<p>A quarrel with my cousin, Paul Downes, on a
-certain September evening more than a year and
-a half before, had resulted in a serious change in
-my life and in a series of adventures which no
-sensible fellow could ever have desired. For all
-those months I had been separated from my
-home, and from my mother who was a widow
-and needed me, and at this particular time when
-I had come aboard the Gullwing, my principal<span class="pagenum" id="Page_16">[16]</span>
-wish and hope was to get back to my home, and
-that as quickly as possible. That the reader
-may better understand my situation I must
-briefly recount my history up to this hour.</p>
-
-<p>Something more than fifteen years previous
-my father, Dr. Webb, of Bolderhead, Massachusetts,
-while fishing from a dory off shore
-was lost overboard and his body was never recovered.
-This tragedy occurred three weeks
-after the death of my maternal grandfather, Mr.
-Darringford, who had objected to my mother&#8217;s
-marriage to Dr. Webb, and who had left his
-large estate in trust for my mother and myself,
-but so tied up that we could never benefit by a
-penny of it unless we separated from Dr. Webb,
-or in case of my father&#8217;s death. Dr. Webb had
-never been a money-making man&mdash;not even a
-successful man as the world looks upon success&mdash;and
-he was in financial difficulties at the time
-of his fatal fishing trip.</p>
-
-<p>Considering these circumstances, ill-natured
-gossip said that Dr. Webb had committed suicide.
-I was but two years old at the time and before
-I had grown to the years of understanding, this
-story had been smothered by time; I never
-should have heard the story I believe had it not
-been for my cousin, Paul Downes.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Chester Downes had married my mother&#8217;s<span class="pagenum" id="Page_17">[17]</span>
-older sister, and that match had pleased Mr.
-Darringford little better than the marriage of
-his younger daughter. But Aunt Alice had died
-previous to grandfather&#8217;s own decease, so Mr.
-Downes and Paul had received but a very small
-part of the Darringford estate. I know now
-that Chester Downes had attached himself like
-a leech to my weak and easily influenced mother,
-and had it not been for Lawyer Hounsditch,
-who was co-trustee with her, my uncle would
-long since have completely controlled my own
-and my mother&#8217;s property.</p>
-
-<p>Chester Downes and his son, who was only a
-few mouths older than myself, had done their
-best to alienate my mother from me as I grew
-older; but the quarrel between Paul and myself,
-mentioned above, had brought matters to a
-crisis, and I believed that I had gotten the
-Downeses out of the house for good and all.
-Fearing that Paul would try to &#8220;get square&#8221;
-with me by harming my sloop, the Wavecrest,
-I slept aboard that craft to guard her. At the
-beginning of the September gale Paul sneaked
-out of the sloop in the night, nailed me into the
-cabin, and cut her moorings. I was blown out
-to sea and was rescued by the whaling bark,
-Scarboro, just beginning a three-years&#8217; voyage
-to the South Seas.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_18">[18]</span>I was enabled to send home letters by a mail-boat,
-but was forced to remain with the Scarboro
-until she reached Buenos Ayres. The
-story of an old boatsteerer, Tom Anderly by
-name, had revived in my mind the mystery of
-my poor father&#8217;s disappearance. Tom had been
-one of the crew of a coasting schooner which had
-rescued a man swimming in the sea on a foggy
-day off Bolderhead Neck, at the time&mdash;as near
-as I could figure&mdash;when my father was reported
-drowned. This man had called himself Carver
-and had left the coasting vessel at New York
-after having borrowed two dollars from Tom.
-Years afterward a letter had reached Tom from
-this Carver, enclosing the borrowed money, and
-postmarked Santiago, Chile. The details of
-the boatsteerer&#8217;s story made me believe that the
-man Carver was Dr. Webb, who had deserted
-my mother and myself for the obvious reason
-that, as long as he remained with us, we could
-not benefit from grandfather&#8217;s estate.</p>
-
-<p>While ashore at Buenos Ayres I was accosted
-by a queer old Yankee named Adoniram Tugg,
-master and owner of the schooner Sea Spell,
-but whose principal business was the netting of
-wild animals for animal dealers. He called me
-&#8220;Professor Vose,&#8221; not having seen my face, and
-explained that my voice and build were exactly<span class="pagenum" id="Page_19">[19]</span>
-like a partner of his whom he knew by that name.
-The character of this Professor Vose, as described
-by Captain Tugg, as well as other details,
-led me to believe that he was the same man
-whom the boatsteerer aboard the Scarboro had
-known as Jim Carver, and the possibility of the
-man being my father took hold of my imagination
-so strongly that I shipped on the Sea
-Spell for Tugg&#8217;s headquarters, located some miles
-up a river emptying into the Straits of Magellan.</p>
-
-<p>But when we reached the animal catcher&#8217;s
-headquarters we found the shacks and cages
-destroyed and it was Tugg&#8217;s belief that his
-partner&mdash;the mysterious man I had come so
-far to see&mdash;had been killed by the natives.
-Making my way to Punta Arenas, to take a
-steamship for home, feeling that my impulsiveness
-had delayed my return to my mother unnecessarily,
-I fell in again with the Scarboro.</p>
-
-<p>To my surprise I found aboard of her, under
-the name of &#8220;Bodfish,&#8221; my cousin, Paul Downes.
-Fearing punishment for cutting my sloop adrift,
-when his crime became known, Paul had run
-away from home and had worked his way as
-far as Buenos Ayres on a Bayne Line Steamship.
-There Captain Rogers of the whaling bark had
-found him in a crimp&#8217;s place and had bailed him<span class="pagenum" id="Page_20">[20]</span>
-out and taken him aboard the Scarboro. Paul
-didn&#8217;t like his job, and demanded that I pay his
-fare home on the steamship, but I believed
-that a few months&#8217; experience with the whalers
-would do my cousin no harm, and should have
-refused his demand even had I had money
-enough for both our fares. The details of these
-adventures are related in full in the first volume
-of this series, entitled, &#8220;Swept Out to Sea; or,
-Clint Webb Among the Whalers.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Because I refused to aid Paul he threatened
-again to &#8220;get square,&#8221; and he certainly made
-good his threat. I was to remain but two
-nights at Punta Arenas and had already paid
-my passage as far as Buenos Ayres on the
-Dundee Castle; but Paul got in with some men
-from the sealing steamer, Gypsey Girl, and they
-shanghaied me aboard, together with a lad from
-Georgia, Thankful Polk by name, who had tried
-to help me. Our adventures with the sealers,
-and our finding of the whaleship Firebrand
-frozen in the ice and deserted by her crew after
-her cargo of oil was complete, is related in number
-two of the series, entitled, &#8220;The Frozen
-Ship; or, Clint Webb Among the Sealers.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>During those adventures I learned that
-Adoniram Tugg&#8217;s partner, Professor Vose, escaped
-death at the hands of the Patagonians,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_21">[21]</span>
-had joined forces with the animal catcher again,
-and in the Sea Spell they likewise had sought and
-found the frozen ship and her valuable cargo.
-Professor Vose boarded the abandoned ship
-and remained by her when the Sea Spell lost
-most of her spars and top-hamper and Tugg was
-obliged to beat into port to be refitted. Meanwhile,
-from the deck of the Gypsey Girl, I saw
-the vast field of ice and bergs in which the Firebrand
-was frozen break up in a gale; was horrified
-by the overwhelming of the frozen ship, and
-had the evidence of my own eyes that, whether
-the mysterious man in whom I was so greatly
-interested was merely Vose, Jim Carver, or my
-own father, he had sunk with the Firebrand
-under the avalanche of ice.</p>
-
-<p>Later the captain of the Gypsey Girl, a Russ
-named Sergius, and Thankful Polk and I were
-lost from the sealing steamer and are picked up
-by the Scarboro which was on her way to Valpariso
-to refit after the gales she had suffered
-on the South Pacific whaling grounds. Captain
-Rogers, knowing my exceeding anxiety to return
-home, got a chance for Thank and I to work
-our passage on the Gullwing, which was just
-setting sail from Valpariso as the Scarboro
-arrived at that port.</p>
-
-<p>And here we were on the deck of the handsome<span class="pagenum" id="Page_22">[22]</span>
-schooner, homeward bound; but before I
-had been here half an hour, it seemed, my ill-luck
-had followed me. I was enmeshed in a
-quarrel with the bully of the fo&#8217;castle, and
-could look forward to suffering a most finished
-trouncing when the sails were all set, the deck
-cleared, and the captain&#8217;s watch was piped below.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I&#8217;ve got a good mind to give one of the
-mates warning,&#8221; muttered Thank, in my ear, as
-the bully went grumbling away at some call to
-duty by the dapper little second mate, whom I
-already judged to be Mr. Barney.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Don&#8217;t you dare!&#8221; I admonished. &#8220;That&#8217;s
-no way to start. We&#8217;d have all the men down
-on us, then. And we don&#8217;t know how many
-weeks we may have to sail with them aboard of
-this windjammer.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>When they began to clear up the litter made
-by the work of getting under weigh, Thank and
-I saw where we could lend a hand, and we did
-so. We learned, by talking with the men, that
-the Gullwing was short-handed, and that is why
-Captain Bowditch, shrewd old Down East
-skipper as he was, had so willingly given two
-rugged boys, with some knowledge of seamanship,
-their passage home. Two men had deserted
-at Honolulu, and another had to be
-taken ashore to the hospital at Valpariso.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_23">[23]</span>The ship, we learned, was well found, and the
-men gave the officers a good name. Most of
-the crew had been with her more than this one
-trip. She was owned by the Baltimore firm of
-Barney, Blakesley &amp; Knight, and her run had
-been out from her home port, touching at
-Buenos Ayres, at Valpariso and thence on to
-Honolulu and from there to Manila. On her
-return voyage she made Honolulu again, Valpariso,
-and now hoped to not drop her anchor
-until she reached the Virginia Capes.</p>
-
-<p>It was the captain&#8217;s watch that was short and
-we were turned over to Mr. Barney, the smart
-young second mate. He was a natty, five-foot-nothing
-man, whom, if he had voted once, that
-was as much as he&#8217;d ever done! But the men
-jumped when he spoke to them, and he had a
-blue eye that went right through you and Thank
-declared&mdash;made the links of your vertebrae
-loosen.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile the Gullwing began to travel.
-Unless one has stood upon the deck of a great
-sailing ship, and looked up into the sky full of
-sails that spread above her, it is hard to realize
-how fast such a craft can travel through the sea
-under a fair wind. Many a seaworthy steamship
-would have been glad to make the speed
-that the Gullwing did right then, with but a<span class="pagenum" id="Page_24">[24]</span>
-fairly cheerful breeze. She made a long tack
-to seaward and then a short leg back, and in
-that time the Valpariso roadstead was below
-the horizon and the outline of the Chilean coast
-was but a faint, gray haze from the deck.</p>
-
-<p>We went below, leaving the mate&#8217;s watch to
-finish the job. &#8220;Now for it,&#8221; I thought, for
-Bully Bob had kept his eye on me most of the
-time, and he crowded down the stairs behind me
-when I entered the well-lighted and clean fo&#8217;castle
-of the four-stick schooner. I expected
-he might try to take me foul; for I knew what
-sort of fighters these deep-sea ruffians were. As
-a whole the crew of the schooner seemed much
-above the average; but I believed Bob Promise
-needed a good thrashing and I wished with all
-my heart that I were able to give it to him.</p>
-
-<p>But if I could keep him off&mdash;make him fight
-with his fists alone&mdash;I believed I at least might
-put up so good a fight that the other men would
-interfere when they considered Bob had given
-me my lesson. I hated the thought of being
-knocked down and stamped on, or kicked about
-the fo&#8217;castle floor. I had seen two of the
-men fight aboard the Gypsey Girl and a more
-brutal exhibition I never hope to witness.</p>
-
-<p>So I kept my eye on Bob, as he watched me,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_25">[25]</span>
-and drew off my coat and tightened my belt the
-moment I got below.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Getting ready for that beating are you?&#8221; he
-demanded, with an evil smile.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I hope you won&#8217;t insist,&#8221; I said. &#8220;But if
-I&#8217;ve got to take it, I suppose I must. All I
-have to say, is, that I hope you other men will
-see fair play.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;You can lay to that, younker,&#8221; declared the
-big fellow who had held the wheel. He was an
-old man, but as powerful as a gorilla. &#8220;Give
-&#8217;em room, boys, and don&#8217;t interfere.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Scarcely had he spoken when the bully made
-for me. His intention was, quite evidently, to
-catch me around the waist, pinion my arms, and
-throw me. But I determined to be caught by
-no such wrestler&#8217;s trick. The ship was sailing
-on an even keel and I was light of foot. Just
-before the bully reached me I stepped aside and
-drove my right fist with all my might into his
-neck as he passed me.</p>
-
-<p>Goodness! but he went down with a crash.
-Big as he was I had fairly lifted him from his
-feet. The men roared with delight, and slapped
-their thighs and each other&#8217;s backs. I could
-see that they were going to enjoy this set-to if I
-lasted any length of time against my antagonist.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Hold on!&#8221; I cried, before Bob Promise had<span class="pagenum" id="Page_26">[26]</span>
-managed to pick himself up, and believing that
-my first blow had won me the sympathy of the
-majority. &#8220;This man has all the advantage of
-weight and age over me. If he&#8217;ll stand up and
-fight clean with his fists, I&#8217;ll do my best to meet
-him. But I won&#8217;t stand for rough work, or
-clinches. He&#8217;ll best me in a minute, wrestling.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;The boy speaks true,&#8221; declared the hairy
-man. &#8220;And I tell you what, mates. It ain&#8217;t
-clear in my mind what the fight&#8217;s about, or
-who&#8217;s in the wrong. But the lad shall have his
-way. If you try to grab him, or use your feet,
-Bob, I&#8217;ll pull you off him with my own two hands
-and break you in two! Mark that, now.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Hurrah!&#8221; cried the irrepressible Thank.
-&#8220;Go to it, Sharp! I believe you can win out.&#8221;</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_27">[27]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak"><span class="smcap">Chapter III</span></h2>
-
-
-<p class="ph1"><i>In Which the Bubble of My Conceit Is Pricked</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p>Now this is no place to report the details of a
-fight of this character. It is all well and good for
-a boy to learn to box; it is one of the cleanest
-sports there is. It teaches one to be quick of
-eye and foot, inculcates courage, gives even a
-naturally timid person confidence, and aids
-wind and muscle. But the game should be
-played only with soft gloves&mdash;never with bare
-fists.</p>
-
-<p>Maybe once or twice in the average boy&#8217;s life
-will he need the knowledge gained in the
-gymnasium to save himself from a beating. I
-think now I should have sidestepped this
-trouble with Bob Promise, and could have done
-so with no loss of honor or self-respect.</p>
-
-<p>But as I saw how lubberly the fellow was, and
-how clumsy he was on his feet, I was fired with
-the conceit that I had a chance to hold my own
-in the contest. And so I did.</p>
-
-<p>I passed my watch to Thank and claimed two-minute
-rounds; he acted as timekeeper while<span class="pagenum" id="Page_28">[28]</span>
-the gorilla man was referee. We fought altogether
-five rounds, and during that time my
-antagonist only managed to reach me half a
-dozen times, and only once did he knock me to
-the deck.</p>
-
-<p>I was pretty fresh at the end of this time,
-while Bob was blowing like a porpoise, I had
-closed one of his eyes, and his face was bleeding
-where my knuckles had cut him deeply. During
-the last round I noticed that the men had kept
-mighty quiet, and as the big fellow stepped in
-between us when Thank announced the end of
-the round, I saw Mr. Barney, the second mate,
-standing behind me.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I reckon that&#8217;s enough, boys,&#8221; said the little
-second mate, good-naturedly enough. &#8220;They&#8217;re
-not matched by the rules you are following.
-This young fellow will soon have Bob groggy.
-The boy&#8217;s got all the science and Bob has no
-show.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>This was putting it in a light that vexed me.
-I had thought <i>I</i> was the one to earn sympathy,
-not the bully.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Why,&#8221; I complained, &#8220;he pitched on me for
-nothing. And he outweighs me thirty pound.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;And you outweigh <i>me</i> twenty pound, you
-young bantam, you!&#8221; laughed the second mate.
-&#8220;Come! I&#8217;m a better match for you than Bob is.&#8221;</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_29">[29]</span>I flushed pretty red at that, for although I
-saw Mr. Barney was a man to respect, I did not
-think he handled his watch by the weight of his
-muscle.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;If you don&#8217;t think so, put up your hands
-again, and we&#8217;ll try a bout,&#8221; said Mr. Barney,
-still laughing. &#8220;If you give me the kind of an
-eye Bob has, I won&#8217;t chalk it up against you.
-The boys will tell you that if there&#8217;s anything
-aboard the old Gullwing, it&#8217;s fair dealing.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;And that&#8217;s right for ye, Mr. Barney!&#8221; exclaimed
-the gorilla man. Then he winked at
-me. &#8220;Hit him as hard as ye kin, boy!&#8221; he
-whispered.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Come on,&#8221; said the mate, buttoning his
-jacket tight and taking his position. &#8220;You
-won&#8217;t have to fight the whole crew to get a
-standing.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>I saw he meant it, and I knew by his smile
-that he was a fair-minded man and wished me
-no harm. I secretly thought, too, that I was
-as good as he was.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Time!&#8221; called Thank, rather shakily.</p>
-
-<p>The very next second something happened to
-me that I hadn&#8217;t expected. I thought I could
-parry his first blow, at least; but it landed under
-my jaw and every tooth in my head rattled. I<span class="pagenum" id="Page_30">[30]</span>
-leaped back and he followed me up with a swiftness
-that made me blink.</p>
-
-<p>I parried several more swift blows and then
-hit out myself when I thought I saw my chance.
-He just moved his head a trifle to one side and
-my fist shot by. My whole weight went with it
-and I collided against him. He only rocked a
-little on his feet, and as I dodged back he struck
-me a blow on the chest that drove me half a
-dozen yards into the arms of the spectators.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;If I had placed that higher up&mdash;as I might&mdash;you
-would have been asleep, my lad,&#8221; he said,
-coolly. &#8220;Don&#8217;t you believe it?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I do, sir,&#8221; I said, panting.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I am just as much better than you, as you
-are than Bob,&#8221; he said, laughing again. &#8220;He
-has no science and you have a little. But I
-have more science and so we&#8217;re not fairly
-matched. And now, boys, that&#8217;s fun enough for
-to-day,&#8221; and he turned on his heel and went up
-on deck.</p>
-
-<p>I tell you right now, I felt pretty foolish.
-But the men didn&#8217;t laugh. The big man, whom
-I learned later was Tom Thornton, said:</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;He&#8217;s a smart little bit of a man, is Mr. Jim
-Barney. You might be proud to be put out
-by him.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Excuse me!&#8221; I returned, feeling to see if all<span class="pagenum" id="Page_31">[31]</span>
-my teeth were sound. &#8220;No kicking mule has
-got anything on him when he hits you.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;And his brother Alf, on the Seamew, is a
-match for him,&#8221; said another of the men.
-&#8220;There&#8217;s a pair of them&mdash;brothers and twins,
-and as much alike as two peas in a pod. I mind
-the time they was looking for some men down
-in a joint on Front Street, Baltimore, and a
-gang started in to clean &#8217;em up. Thought they
-was dudes trying to be rounders. The Barney
-boys held off a dozen of them till the police came,
-and neither of them even showed a scratch.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>I pulled myself together and went over to
-Bob, who was swabbing his face in a bucket of
-water. I held out my hand to him, and said:</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;The second mate was right. If we&#8217;d fought
-rough and tumble you could have easily fixed
-me. But you&#8217;ve got lots of muscle and I bet
-that second mate doesn&#8217;t sail without a set of
-gloves in his cabin. If he&#8217;ll lend &#8217;em to us I&#8217;ll
-teach you what little I know myself about
-boxing.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;That&#8217;s fair enough!&#8221; shouted Tom Thornton.
-&#8220;The boy&#8217;s all right.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I&#8217;m game,&#8221; growled Bob, giving me his
-hand. &#8220;But I don&#8217;t like fresh kids.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;That&#8217;s all right,&#8221; said I. &#8220;Mebbe I&#8217;ll get
-salted a little before the voyage is over.&#8221;</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_32">[32]</span>And so the affair ended in a laugh. But I
-guess I learned one lesson that I was not likely
-to forget in a hurry.</p>
-
-<p>And both Thankful Polk and I had a whole
-lot to learn about this big ship. Although my
-chum had been five years from home (leaving
-his native village in the hills of Georgia when he
-was twelve) he had learned little seamanship.
-Nowadays ships do not receive apprentices as
-they used to in the palmy days of the American
-merchant marine, which is a regrettable fact,
-for it was from the class of apprentices that most
-of our best shipmasters came.</p>
-
-<p>A seaman&mdash;a real A. B.&mdash;must know every
-part of the ship he serves, its rigging and whatnot,
-just as any other journeyman tradesman
-must know his business. It is not necessary
-that an able seaman should be a navigator; but
-every navigator should be an able seaman. Such
-a man likewise should be something of a sailmaker,
-rigger and shipbuilder. In these days
-when the work of a crew is so divided that men
-are stationed at certain work in all weathers
-few men before the mast are all-round seamen.
-And this is likewise regrettable.</p>
-
-<p>In the months I had spent upon the Scarboro
-I had learned much&mdash;and in that I had the advantage
-of Thank. Captain Rogers and Mr.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_33">[33]</span>
-Robbins were both thorough-going seamen, and
-when we were not chasing whales I had been
-drilled by the mate, and by young Ben Gibson,
-the second officer, in the ropes, the spars, the
-handling of gear, and taught to take my trick
-at the wheel with the best man aboard.</p>
-
-<p>And I was thankful for all this now, for although
-the Gullwing was a much larger ship,
-and differently rigged from the whaler, I could
-catch hold now pretty well when an order was
-given. I knew, too, that men like Captain
-Bowditch and Mr. Gates and Mr. Barney liked
-their hands to be smart, and I was not afraid to
-tackle anything alow or aloft.</p>
-
-<p>The men told me, too, that &#8220;the old man&#8221;
-(which is a term given the captain aboard ship
-not at all disrespectful in meaning) was a terror
-for crowding on sail. Besides, there was a
-deeper reason for Captain Bowditch wishing to
-put his ship through the seas and reaching Baltimore
-just as soon as possible.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Ye see,&#8221; said old Tom Thornton, in the dog-watch
-that afternoon, &#8220;the firm owns another
-ship like the Gullwing&mdash;the very spittin&#8217; image
-of it&mdash;the Seamew. They&#8217;re sister ships; built
-in the same dockyard, at the same time, and by
-the very same plans. A knee, or a deck plank,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_34">[34]</span>
-out o&#8217; either one would fit exactly into the
-similar space in the other&mdash;and vicy varsy.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;They was put into commission the same
-month, and they make the same v&#8217;yges, as
-usual. Cap&#8217;n Si Somes, of the Seamew is about
-the same age as our skipper. They was raised
-together down east; they went to sea together
-in their first ship. And they got their tickets
-at the same time, since which they&#8217;ve always
-served in different ships, one mounting a notch
-when the other did. Rivals, ye&#8217;d call them, but
-good friends.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;But they&#8217;re always and forever trying to
-best each other in a v&#8217;yge. They races from the
-minute they cast off moorings at Baltimore to
-the minute they&#8217;re towed inter their berths
-again. They crowd on sail, and work their
-crews like kildee, and stow their cargoes, and
-unload the same like they was racin&#8217; against
-time. And now, this trip, they&#8217;ve got a wager
-up,&#8221; and old Tom chuckled.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;It was this here way: We battened down
-hatches the same morning the Seamew did at
-Baltimore, and the tugs was a-swinging of us
-out. Cap&#8217;n Si sung out from his poop: &#8216;Joe!
-I bet ye an apple I tie up here afore you do when
-the v&#8217;yge is over.&#8217;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;&#8216;I take ye,&#8217; says our skipper, &#8216;pervidin&#8217; it&#8217;s a<span class="pagenum" id="Page_35">[35]</span>
-Rhode Islan&#8217; Greenin&#8217;&mdash;I ain&#8217;t sunk my teeth
-into no other kind for forty year&mdash;it&#8217;s the kind
-I got my first stomach-ache from eatin&#8217; green,
-when I was a kid.&#8217;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;And that settled it. The bet was on,&#8221;
-chuckled Tom. &#8220;And we fellers for&#8217;ard have
-suffered for it, now I tell ye! The Seamew beat
-us to Buenos Ayres by ten hours on the outward
-v&#8217;yge. We caught her up, weathered the Horn
-and was unloading at Valpariso when the Seamew
-arrived. But, by jinks! she beat us to
-Honolulu.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;How was that?&#8221; I asked.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Made a better passage. We got some top-hamper
-carried away in a squall. To tell you
-the truth, Cap&#8217;n Joe carried on too much sail
-for such a blow. But we weren&#8217;t long behind
-her at Manila, and my soul! how Cap&#8217;n Joe did
-make those Chinks work unloadin&#8217; an&#8217; then
-stowin&#8217; cargo again when we started back.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;The Seamew got away two days before we
-did. But we left Honolulu a few hours ahead
-of her, and she has to touch at Guayaquil&mdash;up
-in Equidor. As far as time and distance goes,
-however, both ships is about even. We had to
-unload a lot of stuff back there at Valpariso,
-and load again. Both are hopin&#8217; not to touch
-nowheres till we git home. And it wouldn&#8217;t<span class="pagenum" id="Page_36">[36]</span>
-surprise me none if we sighted the Seamew almost
-any day now, unless she&#8217;s clawed too far
-off shore.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>This good-natured competition between the
-two big ships had, I believe, something to do
-with the smart way in which the crew of this
-one on which I sailed went about their work.
-Jack Tar is supposed to be a chronic grumbler;
-and surely the monotony of life at sea may get
-on the nerves of the best man afloat; but I
-seldom heard any grumbling in the fo&#8217;castle of
-the Gullwing.</p>
-
-<p>However, there was another rivalry connected
-with this voyage of the sister ships&mdash;a much
-more serious matter&mdash;and, indeed, one that
-proved tragic in the end, but of this I was yet
-to learn the particulars in the eventful days
-that followed.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_37">[37]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak"><span class="smcap">Chapter IV</span></h2>
-
-
-<p class="ph1"><i>In Which Captain Bowditch Crowds On Sail and
-There Is Much Excitement</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p>In writing a story of the sea&mdash;even a narrative
-of personal experiences&mdash;it is difficult to
-give the reader a proper idea of the daily life
-of the man before the mast. It naturally falls
-that the high lights of adventure are accentuated
-while the shadows of monotony are very faint
-indeed. But the sailor&#8217;s life is no sinecure.</p>
-
-<p>Saving on occasion the work on shipboard
-is not very hard. The watch-and-watch system
-followed on all ships makes the work easy in
-fair weather; and foul weather lasts but for
-short spells, save in certain portions of the two
-hemispheres.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Eight bells! Rise and shine!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>This order, shouted into the fo&#8217;castle at four
-o&#8217;clock in the morning, roused Thankful Polk
-and I from our berths. No turning over for
-another nap&mdash;or for even a wink of sleep&mdash;with
-that command ringing in one&#8217;s ears. We
-tumbled out, got into our outer clothing, ran<span class="pagenum" id="Page_38">[38]</span>
-our fingers through our hair (no chance for any
-fancy toilets at this hour) and went on deck
-with the other members of the captain&#8217;s watch.</p>
-
-<p>There was plenty of light by which to chore
-around, and Mr. Barney&#8217;s sharp voice kept us
-stirring until five when we lined up at the galley
-door and each man got a tin of hot coffee&mdash;and
-good coffee it was too, aboard the Gullwing.
-Then buckets and brooms was the order and
-the ship began to be slopped and scrubbed from
-the bowsprit to the rudder timbers. No housewife
-was ever half as thorough as we had to be
-to satisfy Mr. Barney and the old man. Thank
-and I learned that Captain Bowditch made a
-tour of the deck every morning after breakfast,
-and if there had been any part of the work
-skimped he would call up the watch and have
-the whole job done over again.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;But that don&#8217;t happen more&#8217;n once on a
-v&#8217;yage,&#8221; chuckled Tom Thornton, working beside
-us. &#8220;The feller that skips any part of the
-work he&#8217;s set to do on this here packet, gets to
-be mighty onpopular with his mates.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Thus warned, we two boys were very careful
-with our share of the scrubbing&mdash;and likewise
-the coiling down of ropes which followed. I
-can assure the reader that, when we were
-through, everything in sight was as spick and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_39">[39]</span>
-span as it could be&mdash;every stain was holystoned
-from the deck, the white paint glistened, and
-the brasswork shone.</p>
-
-<p>At seven-thirty the watch below was given
-breakfast and at four bells&mdash;eight o&#8217;clock&mdash;we
-were relieved and went below to our own
-breakfast; and that was not a bad meal aboard
-the Gullwing. There are no fancy dishes
-tacked onto Jack Tar&#8217;s bill of fare&mdash;nor does he
-expect it; but on this ship food was served with
-some regard to decency.</p>
-
-<p>On the Gypsey Girl &#8220;souse&#8221; was served in a
-bucket, set down in the middle of the long fo&#8217;castle
-table, and every man scooped his cup into
-the mess, broke in his hardtack, and inhaled it a
-good deal after the style of a pig at a trough.
-But for breakfast on this ship there was more
-good coffee, tack that was not mouldy and scraps
-of meat and potatoes fried together&mdash;a hearty,
-satisfying meal.</p>
-
-<p>Each man washed and put away his own cup,
-plate and knife and fork. Some used their
-gulleys, or sheath-knives; but Thank and I had
-brought aboard proper table tools in our dunnage
-bags. After the breakfast was cleared
-away, and the fo&#8217;castle itself tidied up, the
-watch below busied itself in mending, sock darning,
-and such like odd jobs. A sailor has got<span class="pagenum" id="Page_40">[40]</span>
-to be his own tailor, seamstress and housewife;
-and even such a horny-handed and tar-fingered
-giant as Tom Thornton was mighty handy with
-his needle and &#8220;sailor&#8217;s palm.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Some of the men shaved at this time, one cut
-another&#8217;s hair and trimmed his beard. The
-crew of the Gullwing respected themselves; the
-deck of the fo&#8217;castle was kept as well scrubbed
-as the deck above. Nobody came to the table
-without having scrubbed his face and hands
-clean; nor was the men&#8217;s clothing foul with
-tar or the grease of the running gear. They
-may all have been &#8220;sword-swallowers&#8221; when it
-came to &#8220;stowing their cargo &#8217;tween hatches,&#8221;
-but cleanliness was the order, and the ordinary
-decencies of life were not ignored. These men
-may not have been particularly strong on
-etiquette, and were not &#8220;parlor broke,&#8221; as the
-saying is; but they were neat, accommodating,
-cheerful, and if they skylarked some, it was fun
-of a good-natured kind and was not objectionable.</p>
-
-<p>I liked old Tom Thornton, for despite the
-cast in his eye, and his gorilla-like appearance,
-he was good hearted. He was just about
-covered with tattooing, I reckon. As he said,
-if he&#8217;d wanted to take any more indigo into his
-system he&#8217;d have to swallow it! Most of the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_41">[41]</span>
-work had been done on him by a South Sea
-Islander who had sailed in whaling ships and
-the like and made a little &#8220;on the side&#8221; by
-tattooing pictures on foolish sailors.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;&#8217;Taint done now, no more,&#8221; old Tom said,
-shaking his head. &#8220;But when I was a youngster
-it was the fashion. Poor Jack can&#8217;t afford to
-buy picters and have a family portrait gallery,
-or the like. But he used to be strong for art,&#8221;
-and the old man grinned.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I was wrecked with this here nigger-man I
-tell you about. About all he saved from the
-wreck was his colors and bone needles, and the
-patterns he outlined his figgers from. We was
-held prisoner on that blamed reef, living on
-stuff from the wreck, for three months. There
-wasn&#8217;t nothing else to do. His tattooing me
-kept him from going crazy, and the smart of the
-thing kept me alive. So there you have it&mdash;tit
-for tat! He never charged me nothing for
-his work, neither, and I allus was a great lad for
-gittin&#8217; a good deal for my money.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Tom&#8217;s legs were mural paintings of serpents
-and sea monsters. He had anklets and bracelets
-worked in red and blue. On his back was a
-picture of three gallows with a man hanging in
-chains from the middle one. I believe that it
-was the ignorant South Sea native&#8217;s idea of the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_42">[42]</span>
-story of Calvary, for there was the typical
-cross and crown worked above it at the back of
-Tom&#8217;s neck. The mermaid on Tom&#8217;s chest
-could have won a job as fat woman with a
-traveling circus; but then, Tom had an enormous
-chest which had given the tattooer plenty
-of space to work on. Around his waist was
-tattooed a belt like a lattice-work fence. When
-he stripped to &#8220;sluice down,&#8221; as he called his
-daily bath, he looked as gay as a billboard.</p>
-
-<p>At ten o&#8217;clock (six bells) of the forenoon watch
-most of the watch below turned in for a nap, and
-at half past eleven we answered the call to
-dinner. At noon we were on duty again until
-four o&#8217;clock. In pleasant weather this afternoon
-watch is a mighty easy one. Besides the
-man at the wheel and the two on lookout, the
-others haven&#8217;t much to do but tell stories, play
-checkers, or read. As long as everything was
-neat and shipshape the old man did not hound
-us to work at odd jobs as some masters do.</p>
-
-<p>From four to eight p. m. the time is divided
-into two dog-watches, although the second half
-of that spell is the actual dog-watch. &#8220;Dog&#8221;
-is a corruption of &#8220;dodge,&#8221; the object of this
-division being to make an even number of
-watches to the twenty-four hours so that there
-will be a daily changing or shifting, thus dodging<span class="pagenum" id="Page_43">[43]</span>
-the routine. For example, the watch that goes
-below one day at noon will the next day come on
-deck at that hour.</p>
-
-<p>At five-thirty our watch had supper and at six
-we took the deck once more until eight o&#8217;clock.
-Then we could sleep until midnight and from
-thence had the watch until four in the morning.
-It is a monotonous round&mdash;especially in fair
-weather. We were like to welcome a bit of a
-blow now and then, although the Gullwing was
-such a big ship, and her crew was so small, that
-all hands had to turn out to shorten or make
-sail. On some ships this fact would have made
-the crew ugly but these boys had even a good
-word for the cook or &#8220;doctor,&#8221; and usually
-Jack looks upon that functionary as his natural
-enemy.</p>
-
-<p>But during those first few days of the run down
-the coast of Chile it was seldom that we were
-called on to shorten sail. Captain Bowditch
-was living up to his reputation; the Gullwing
-foamed along through the short green seas
-with every sail she would bear spread to the
-favoring gale. With her four whole sails on
-the lower spars and all her jibs set, she spread
-a vast amount of canvas to the wind. And the
-only changes we made were in her topsails.
-Those the skipper kept spread every moment<span class="pagenum" id="Page_44">[44]</span>
-that he dared; and it took a pretty strong gust
-to make him give the order to reef down.</p>
-
-<p>When he left the deck himself, either day or
-night, he instructed his mates to call him before
-they took in an inch of cloth. And Mr. Gates
-and Mr. Barney were just as hungry for speed,
-as the old man. The Gullwing was heavily
-laden, but there was probably few stiffer
-vessels at sea that day than she. With plenty
-of ballast there was no gale or no sea that could
-capsize her.</p>
-
-<p>She took cheerfully all the wind and all the
-sea could give her. A little loose water flopping
-around her deck didn&#8217;t trouble Captain Bowditch.
-&#8220;Tarpaulin her hatches, clamp &#8217;em
-down, and let her roll!&#8221; had been his order when
-we had got well away from our anchorage at
-Valpariso. We had good weather, however, as
-I have said, for some days.</p>
-
-<p>Then suddenly, one afternoon in the first dog-watch,
-it came on to blow. Carefully as the
-captain watched the glass, I do not think this
-squall was foretold. A more cautious navigator
-might have been better prepared for a
-squall. He wouldn&#8217;t have had his topsails
-spread in any such gale as had been blowing.
-And when all hands were called to go aloft, the
-wind shrieked down upon us and the foretopsail<span class="pagenum" id="Page_45">[45]</span>
-and two staysails were blown clean out of
-the boltropes before the men could get at them.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;What are ye about, ye sawneys!&#8221; yelled
-Captain Bowditch, dancing up and down on the
-deck and shaking his fists at the men above.
-&#8220;Save my sails for me! Think I&#8217;m <i>made</i> o&#8217;
-sailcloth? And them right new fixin&#8217;s, too! Git
-busy there!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Oh, we were busy! I had been sent aloft and
-so had Thank. We were nimble enough in the
-shrouds; but we were not as smart about
-handling the stiff canvas as some. I found my
-chum beside me as we hauled down the stiff
-canvas upon the spar, and threw ourselves upon
-the folds to hold them till they could be secured.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;My law-dee!&#8221; gasped the Georgian boy,
-grinning. &#8220;Jest as lives try to pin an apron
-around the waist of a baby hippopotamus&mdash;what?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>I saw his wet, red, grinning face for a moment
-looking across at me. Then, suddenly, the ship
-keeled over, the rope on which we stood overhung
-those leaping, green, froth-streaked waves&mdash;waves
-which seemed hungrily trying to lap
-our feet. Thank disappeared! Something gave
-way, his weight left the sail to me alone. And
-perhaps, fearful for my chum, I bore off the
-canvas myself to look for him.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_46">[46]</span>The next instant I was cast back by the wind
-tearing under the canvas and lifting it in a great
-balloon.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Swish&mdash;r-r-rip!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Like a banshee on a broomstick that sail
-kited off to leeward, and I was left hanging
-desperately to the shrouds, with the wind booming
-in my ears so that I could not even hear the
-angry roaring of the skipper below.</p>
-
-<p>And all the time this question kept thumping
-in my head: &#8220;Where was Thankful Polk?&#8221;</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_47">[47]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak"><span class="smcap">Chapter V</span></h2>
-
-
-<p class="ph1"><i>In Which We See a Ship Sailing in the Sky</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p>I had forgotten my own peril. Indeed, so
-disturbed was I for the moment for my chum&#8217;s
-safety that I cared nothing for the lost sail. I
-yelled for Thank at the top of my voice, though
-doubtless the shrieking of the wind drowned all
-sound of my cries. And Thank, for all I knew,
-was already far to leeward, fighting in that
-tempestuous sea.</p>
-
-<p>And then suddenly, through a rift in the flying
-spray that stung my face so cruelly and almost
-blinded me, I beheld something swinging
-from the ropes on which I stood. The ship was
-almost on her beam-ends and the waves broke
-just below me. There Thank hung by his foot,
-which had twisted in the ropes and was held
-firm, his head and shoulders buried in the foaming
-sea at every plunge of the laboring Gullwing!</p>
-
-<p>I shrieked again and, clinging with one hand
-with a desperate grip, I sought to seize him as
-he swung, pendulum-like, to and fro. <i>I could
-not reach him.</i></p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_48">[48]</span>But now the brave ship was righting herself.
-We rose higher and higher from the leaping
-waves. Thank swung back and forth and, as
-we came inboard, I feared he would batter his
-poor brains out against the wire cables, or
-against some spar.</p>
-
-<p>He was unconscious. He was helpless. And
-it seemed as though I was helpless as well.
-Those few momentous seconds showed me
-plainly how deeply I loved the youth who had
-been my comrade in adventure and labor and
-peril during these last few months. I had
-never had a chum before of my own age&mdash;not
-one whom I had really cottoned to. Thank
-was as dear to me as a brother would have been.</p>
-
-<p>As we rose higher and higher another fear
-smote me. If his foot loosened now and he
-fell, he would be dashed to death upon the deck
-below. In my struggles my hand found a
-loose rope. I hauled it in quickly, hung to the
-spar by my elbows while I formed a noose in the
-end, and was unsuccessfully trying to get this
-over Thank&#8217;s head and shoulders when another
-man sprang to the footrope beside me.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Git down there and grab him!&#8221; yelled this
-individual in my ear. &#8220;I&#8217;ll hold you both.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>It was Bob Promise and although he was the
-man aboard whom I least liked, he was an angel<span class="pagenum" id="Page_49">[49]</span>
-of mercy to me just then. I knew his muscle
-and vigor. With one hand he clung to the rope
-and seized my belt with his other paw. I knew
-that belt would hold, and I swung myself, without
-question, head-downward.</p>
-
-<p>It was only for a moment that he had to be
-under the strain of all my weight and Thank&#8217;s
-as well. Then I had scrambled back to the
-footrope, and held my chum in the hollow of my
-arm. Thank was half drowned, but his eyes
-opened and he gasped out something or other
-before Bob steadied us both again upon the footrope.
-Later I realized that he tried to say, in
-his cheerful way: &#8220;That&#8217;s all right, Sharp!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Between us Bob and I managed to get him
-down to the deck. We should not have been
-able to do that without a sling had the squall
-not passed away and left the old Gullwing once
-more on a comparatively level keel.</p>
-
-<p>When we landed upon the deck boards, Thank
-managed to stand erect. And we three shook
-hands with a sort of grim satisfaction. I don&#8217;t
-think any of us ever spoke of the event thereafter,
-and our mates had not seen our peril,
-but we three were not likely to forget it.</p>
-
-<p>The old man was still careening around the
-quarter, like a hen on a hot skillet, fussing about
-the lost sails. And scarcely had the squall<span class="pagenum" id="Page_50">[50]</span>
-passed when he was ordering up new ones to
-replace those that had been lost. We went to
-work bending on the fresh sails while it was yet
-blowing so hard that most captains would have
-kept their crews out of the rigging.</p>
-
-<p>I began to see that Tom Thornton had not
-been joking when he said that the men were
-paying the penalty for the skipper&#8217;s betting an
-apple with Captain Si Somes, of the Seamew.
-Had it been a thousand dollars at stake, Captain
-Bowditch would have been no more earnest in
-his determination to beat the Gullwing&#8217;s sister
-ship.</p>
-
-<p>But the wind was little more than a stiff gale
-when the new sails were set and the ripping repaired.
-We drove along until night and then
-the air became very light. During the night a
-fog began to gather and when our watch was
-called at eight bells in the morning it was pretty
-thick.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Looks like a Cape Horn soup,&#8221; growled old
-Tom, as he stepped on deck. &#8220;Though we&#8217;re a
-good bit of a ways from that latitude yet.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>As we stumbled around the deck, doing that
-everlasting cleaning up that Mr. Barney watched
-so sharply, the fog began to thin and waver.
-Somewhere overhead there was a breeze; but<span class="pagenum" id="Page_51">[51]</span>
-it was pretty near a dead calm down here on the
-deck of the Gullwing.</p>
-
-<p>By the time the sun began to glow upon the
-edge of the sea, looking like a great argand lamp
-in the fog; overhead the billows of mist were
-rolling in imitation of the long, swinging swell
-of the sea itself. At first those billows in the
-sky glowed in purple, and rose hues, ever changing,
-magnificently beautiful! It was a seascape
-long to be remembered.</p>
-
-<p>The sun rose higher. Its rays shot through
-the rolling mist like arrows. Now and then
-the breeze breathed on our sails and the Gullwing
-forged ahead at a better pace. The fog
-left us. We were sailing in an open space, it
-seemed, with the mist bank encircling us at a
-distance on a few cable-lengths, and the billows
-still rolling high above the points of our masts.</p>
-
-<p>And then, to the westward, the curtains rolled
-back as it seemed for the scene that had been
-set for us. Like the stage of a great theatre,
-this setting of cloud and mist and heaving sea
-appeared, and there, sailing with her keel in the
-clouds, and her tapering masts and shaking
-sails pointing seaward, was a beautiful, misty,
-four-stick schooner.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;What do you know about that?&#8221; demanded
-Thankful Polk. &#8220;Do you see what I see, Sharp,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_52">[52]</span>
-or have I &#8216;got &#8217;em?&#8217; That ship&#8217;s upside down.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;It&#8217;s a mirage,&#8221; I murmured.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;It&#8217;s a Jim Hickey of a sight, whatever the
-right name of it is,&#8221; he rejoined.</p>
-
-<p>Everybody else on deck was aware of the
-mirage, and a chorus of exclamations arose from
-the watch.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;It&#8217;s the Gullwing herself!&#8221; ejaculated Bob
-Promise. &#8220;Of course it is! It&#8217;s a four-sticker.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;How do you make that out?&#8221; demanded
-Thank. &#8220;I know derned well <i>I</i> ain&#8217;t standing
-on my head, whatever you be.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;It&#8217;s her reflection, sawney!&#8221; said somebody
-else.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Oh! well I reckoned that I knew whether I
-was on my head, or my heels,&#8221; chuckled the
-boy from Georgia.</p>
-
-<p>But I had been watching the mirage very
-sharply. I knew just what sails were set upon
-the Gullwing, and I counted those upon the
-ship in the sky. Misty as the reflection was I
-could distinguish them plainly. And suddenly
-I saw a movement among those sails. <i>Sharply
-defined figures of men swarmed into her
-rigging.</i></p>
-
-<p>&#8220;That&#8217;s not the Gullwing at all!&#8221; I shouted.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;That boy&#8217;s right,&#8221; said Mr. Barney sharply,
-coming out of the afterhouse with his glass, and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_53">[53]</span>
-with the captain right behind him. &#8220;You&#8217;ve
-got good eyes on you, Webb.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;By jinks! It&#8217;s the Seamew!&#8221; roared our
-skipper, the moment he set his eyes upon the
-mirage. &#8220;And if she&#8217;s sailing that way, she&#8217;ll
-never beat us to the Capes of Virginia.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>A roar of laughter greeted this joke. But the
-ship in the sky began immediately to fade away,
-and it had soon disappeared, while the wind
-freshened with us and we forged ahead still
-faster. When the fog completely disappeared
-there was not a sail in sight anywhere on that
-sea, although Mr. Barney went into the tops
-himself and searched the horizon with a glass.</p>
-
-<p>But I know that they made a note of the appearance
-on the log. Some of the sailors
-thought the Seamew couldn&#8217;t be far from us,
-either head or astern; but I knew that the
-mirage might have reflected our sister ship
-hundreds of miles away. The incident gave us
-a deal to talk about, however, and an added
-savor to the race we were sailing half around
-the globe.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_54">[54]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak"><span class="smcap">Chapter VI</span></h2>
-
-
-<p class="ph1"><i>In Which the Gullwing Suffers a Ghostly Visitation</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p>&#8220;The words of Agur, the son of Jaketh....
-There be three things which are too wonderful
-for me, yea, four which I know not: The way
-of an eagle in the air, the way of a serpent
-upon a rock, <i>the way of a ship in the midst of the
-sea</i>....&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>That old fellow whose wise sayings make up
-the final chapter of the Book of Proverbs had a
-deal of experience and knowledge; but navigation
-was a mystery to him. And to see a great
-ship sailing straight away on her course, in the
-midst of the sea, without a sign of land anywhere
-about, is like to make one think of the wonder
-of it.</p>
-
-<p>We picked up many a sail after the mirage of
-our sister ship, during the next few days; but
-none of them were the Seamew. The wind increased
-and the Gullwing went snoring through
-green seas, her bow in a smother of foam and a
-good deal of loose water inboard on occasion.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_55">[55]</span>
-But that did not bother the captain. We were
-speeding up toward the Horn and little else
-mattered.</p>
-
-<p>We were getting into a colder latitude, too.
-Now we were down about to the line where the
-Gypsey Girl had steamed in and out of the
-channels after seals. But we never saw the
-land. The Gullwing was keeping well off shore.</p>
-
-<p>The keen wind blew a fitful gale. We were
-glad to get into the lee of the deck-houses when
-we were on duty. Thanks to Captain Rogers of
-the Scarboro, however, my chum and I were well
-dressed for colder weather; but we got each a
-suit of tarpaulins and hip boots from Captain
-Bowditch, for we had not owned them. We
-could safely dress in these water-shedding garments
-every watch above, when the weather
-was not fair; for the schooner was bound to ship
-a deal of suds.</p>
-
-<p>In our watch besides old Tom Thornton, was
-another ancient mariner, and the only man not
-an American born aboard the Gullwing&mdash;August
-Stronson. He was a queer, gentle old man with
-the marks of dissipation strong upon his face,
-although most of his spare time below he sat and
-read a well-thumbed Swedish Bible. He was a
-man in whom Alcohol had taken a strangle hold
-on Will. A more than ordinarily good seaman,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_56">[56]</span>
-when ashore he soon became a derelict along the
-docks, finally ending in some mission or bethel
-where he would be straightened out and a berth
-found for him again. He was only safe aboard
-ship. Eternally sailing about the Seven Seas
-was his salvation.</p>
-
-<p>He was aboard the Gullwing, as Thank and I
-were, merely by chance. And his reason for
-wishing to make the port of Baltimore was a
-curious one&mdash;yet one that gives a sidelight upon
-the sailor&#8217;s character. As a usual thing, Jack
-is grateful to anybody who does him a kindness,
-and he does not often forget a favor done him.
-Besides, he prides himself on &#8220;being square.&#8221;
-Yet it seemed to me that old Stronson was carrying
-that trait farther than most seamen.</p>
-
-<p>He had been picked up at Honolulu by Cap-Bowditch,
-after the two men before mentioned
-had deserted the Gullwing to go with a native
-trader into the South Seas. Stronson had already
-traveled by one craft and another from
-Australia and would have traveled, when he
-reached Baltimore, all of ten thousand miles to
-see just one man. He told me this story in one
-watch below and I think it worth repeating.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Captain Sowle, who iss de superintendent of
-that mission where dey iss so goot to sailormans,
-lend me a dollar five years ago when I<span class="pagenum" id="Page_57">[57]</span>
-was sick. I ban goin&#8217; to pay dat dollar, me! I
-ban going to Baltimore to pay him.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;But why didn&#8217;t you send it to him by mail?&#8221;
-I asked the old fellow.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Captain Sowle, gif me dat dollar in his own
-hand, and I haf to give it back to him mit mine.
-I could nefer forget his kindness&mdash;no. In many
-foreign ports I thought of him&mdash;how goot he
-wass. I long carry that dollar note in my shirt&mdash;yes.
-In Sydney I went to the sailor&#8217;s mission
-one night and heard an old song das Captain
-Sowle sung to me and odders in Baltimore. I
-had that dollar note I haf saved mit me den.
-Why! I ban shipwrecked once and safe only dot
-dollar and a jumper. Luck foller me mit das
-dollar.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I says to my mate dere in Sydney, &#8216;Bill,&#8217;
-I says, &#8216;I got de old man&#8217;s dollar yet. Meppe
-he need it for de poys when he sing dot old
-hymn to-night over seas.&#8217;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;&#8216;Do you feel uneasy like?&#8217; Bill asks me.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;&#8216;No,&#8217; says I, &#8216;but I seems to hear the old
-man singing and I&#8217;m minding the old Bethel and
-the winter night he ban givin&#8217; me de dollar.&#8217;
-&#8216;Well,&#8217; says Bill, &#8216;you must bring your cargo to
-port and get a discharge. You must show de
-old man dat you sail straight. That&#8217;s my verdict.&#8217;</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_58">[58]</span>&#8220;So we shook hands undt I go find me a
-berth to Manila&mdash;best I can do just then. I
-makes Honolulu on a Pacific Mail; but she drops
-me there. Then I finds de Gullwing. She iss
-de ship for me,&#8221; added Stronson, smiling in his
-simple way. &#8220;She carry me straight for Baltimore,
-undt I pay das dollar to Captain Sowle.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Some of the men made a good deal of fun of
-Stronson because he was slow of intellect; but
-he was an able seaman and even the sharp-spoken
-Mr. Barney seemed to bear easy on the
-old man. He was stiff in his joints at times, for
-the sailor&#8217;s chief enemy, rheumatism, had got a
-grip on Stronson. Thank and I saved him
-many a job aloft, and in return he patiently set
-about teaching us all he knew about splicing and
-knotting&mdash;which was no small job for either
-the old man or for us.</p>
-
-<p>It was soon after this that we got the four
-days&#8217; gale that I, for one, shall not soon forget.
-The wind, however, did not increase so suddenly
-as before, and Captain Bowditch took warning
-in time and had the small sails furled. But when
-the gale fairly struck us we had enough lower
-canvas set in all good conscience. The ship
-fairly reeled under the sudden stroke of the
-blast.</p>
-
-<p>With the wind, too, came the snow. Such a<span class="pagenum" id="Page_59">[59]</span>
-snowstorm I had not seen for several years, for
-we had had two or three mild winters in New
-England before I had gone to sea. We were
-forced to reef down the big sails, though every
-order from the skipper to this end was punctuated
-by groans. The canvas was stiff and the
-snow froze on it, and we had a mess. Glad was
-I that the work was not to be done in the tops.</p>
-
-<p>A smother of snow wrapped the Gullwing
-about and we plunged on without an idea as
-to what was in our path. The lookout forward
-could not see to the end of the jib-boom. The
-sea was lashed to fury and, again and again, a
-wave broke over our bows and washed the deck
-from stem to stern. To add to the wonder of it,
-somewhere in the depths of the universe above
-us an electrical storm raged; we could hear the
-sullen thunder rolling from horizon to horizon.
-At first I had thought this was surf on the rocks
-and believed we were going head-on to death
-and destruction; but the officers knew where we
-were and they assured us that the chart gave us
-an open sea.</p>
-
-<p>The decks were a mess of slush and it was
-dangerous to go about without hanging to the
-lifelines that checkrowed the Gullwing from
-forward of the fo&#8217;castle to the after companionway.
-Yet how the staunch craft sailed! She<span class="pagenum" id="Page_60">[60]</span>
-shook the waves off her back like a duck under
-a waterspout, and seemed to enjoy the buffeting
-of the sea like a thing alive.</p>
-
-<p>While the storm continued we got just such
-food as we could grab in our fists. Nothing
-was safe on the table. The doctor kept the
-coffee hot in some magic way; yet there were
-times when the ship rolled so that the lids flew
-off his stove and the fire was dumped on the
-deck of the galley.</p>
-
-<p>Sixty hours and more of this sort of weather
-dragged past. I once said to Tom Thornton:</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;It&#8217;s a pity the skipper didn&#8217;t try for the
-Straits, isn&#8217;t it?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;And what would the Gullwing be doing in
-the Straits, in a blow like this, my lad?&#8221; he
-demanded. &#8220;A big ship like her in that narrow
-way has little chance in a storm. The tail of
-such a gale as this would heave her on the rocks.
-There&#8217;s not seaway enough there for anything
-bigger than a bugeye canoe.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;But the Scarboro made a fair course through
-it,&#8221; I said.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;That greaser!&#8221; snorted the old A. B. &#8220;She
-can loaf along as she pleases. Sea-anchor, if
-there&#8217;s a bit of a gale. But the Windjammer
-has to make time. These days the big sailin&#8217;
-ships hafter compete with them dirty steam<span class="pagenum" id="Page_61">[61]</span>
-tramps. We can&#8217;t risk bein&#8217; becalmed in any
-narrow waterway&mdash;no, sir!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>It was on the fourth night, with the wind
-blowing a hurricane and the snow as thick about
-us as a winding-sheet, that our watch had come
-on deck at midnight. I was sent as second man
-with Bob Promise to the wheel. It took both
-of us to handle the steering gear when the old
-schooner kicked and plunged so.</p>
-
-<p>We were under close-reefed mainsail and jibs
-and were battling fearful waves. The sleet-like
-snow drove across her deck and all but blinded
-us. I had to keep wiping the slush off the
-binnacle, or the lamp would have been completely
-smothered and we could not have seen
-the trembling needle.</p>
-
-<p>Sometimes the officer on the quarter was
-hidden from our eyes, but his voice reached us
-all right:</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Steady your helm! You lubbers act like
-your muscles were mush. Keep off! Can&#8217;t you
-hear that sail shaking? You&#8217;ll have us under
-sternway yet. Call yourselves sailors? You&#8217;re
-a pair of farmers! What d&#8217;ye think you&#8217;re doing?
-Plowing with a pair of steers? Steady!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Bob muttered imprecations on Mr. Barney&#8217;s
-head; but I knew better.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_62">[62]</span>&#8220;He&#8217;s nervous, that&#8217;s all,&#8221; I said. &#8220;He&#8217;s
-always so when the skipper ain&#8217;t on deck.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;All he thinks of is whether we&#8217;re beatin&#8217; the
-Seamew, or not,&#8221; growled Bob.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I notice that bothers him,&#8221; said I. &#8220;But
-he hasn&#8217;t bet a Greening apple on the race, has
-he?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;It&#8217;s bigger than that, I reckon. They say
-it&#8217;s something betwixt him and his brother Alf.
-They&#8217;ve been sore on each other for a year or
-more.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>I knew Mr. Alfred Barney was second mate
-of the Seamew, and I wondered what the
-trouble was between the twin brothers.</p>
-
-<p>But just as this moment something happened
-that gave our minds a slant in another direction.
-The snow squall had thinned. We could see
-pretty near the length of the deck from where
-we stood&mdash;Bob and I&mdash;at the wheel.</p>
-
-<p>Suddenly my mate uttered a stifled yell and
-his hands dropped from the spokes.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Looker there!&#8221; he gasped.</p>
-
-<p>I hung to the wheel, although a kick of the
-schooner near sent me on my head.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Catch hold here, confound you!&#8221; I bawled.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;There!&#8221; he cried again, pointing with a
-terror stiffened arm into the forerigging.</p>
-
-<p>I saw a flash of light&mdash;a glow like that of a big<span class="pagenum" id="Page_63">[63]</span>
-incandescent lamp bulb. It hung for fully
-thirty seconds to the very tip of one of the fore-topmast
-spars. Again, another flashed upon
-another point of the rigging. Bob Promise
-crouched by the wheel; he fairly groveled, while
-I could hear cries and groans from many of the
-hands on deck.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;What&#8217;s the matter with you? What is it?&#8221;
-I demanded, still fighting with the wabbling
-wheel alone; and I am afraid I kicked him.
-&#8220;Catch hold here!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Corpse lights!&#8221; groaned Bob, not even resenting
-my foot. &#8220;We&#8217;re all dead men. We&#8217;re
-doomed.&#8221;</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_64">[64]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak"><span class="smcap">Chapter VII</span></h2>
-
-
-<p class="ph1"><i>In Which Is Pictured a Race in Mid-Ocean</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p>There was a snapping and crackling in the air
-over the laboring ship. It sounded as though
-the taut stays were giving way, one after another.
-For the moment, what Bob said about &#8220;corpse
-lights&#8221; I did not understand; I was mainly
-giving my attention to the wheel.</p>
-
-<p>But the ship came to an even keel for a minute
-and I was able to hold her on her course, and get
-my breath. Then I beheld the strange lights
-shining here, there, and everywhere about the
-rigging, and I was amazed. Not that I was
-frightened, as Bob and some of the others of the
-watch appeared to be. The sailor is a very
-superstitious person; and let him tell it, there
-are enough strange things happen at sea to convince
-a most philosophical mind that there is a
-spirit world very, very close to our own mundane
-sphere. There&#8217;s a very thin veil between the
-two, and at times that veil is torn away.</p>
-
-<p>But I knew in a minute that what Bob<span class="pagenum" id="Page_65">[65]</span>
-meant by &#8220;corpse lights&#8221; were corposant lights
-and were an electric display better known as
-&#8220;St. Elmo&#8217;s fire.&#8221; The lights were globular in
-shape, and about four inches in diameter.
-There were apparently a score of them all
-through the rigging, and they appeared at
-intervals of a minute, or two. The driving
-sleet could not hide them, and the fires illuminated
-the ship and the sea for some distance
-around her.</p>
-
-<p>It certainly was a queer sight, and the brilliance
-of the corposant lights was very marked.
-I heard Mr. Barney shouting from his station:</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Keep your shirts on, you hardshells! They
-won&#8217;t bite&mdash;nor none o&#8217; you ain&#8217;t got to go aloft
-to put &#8217;em out. There&#8217;s one sure thing about
-them lights&mdash;they won&#8217;t set the rigging afire.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Get up and take hold of this wheel, Bob,&#8221;
-I exclaimed, &#8220;or I&#8217;ll yell for help. I can&#8217;t
-handle her proper if she plunges again.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>He got up shakingly and took hold. When
-the sea was sucked away from the bow of the
-Gullwing next time we held her on her course.
-But my companion was still frightened and
-looked at the glowing lights askance.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Holding your own there at the wheel, boys?&#8221;
-demanded Mr. Barney.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_66">[66]</span>&#8220;Aye, aye, sir!&#8221; I replied, but Bob didn&#8217;t even
-whisper.</p>
-
-<p>Suddenly the last light disappeared&mdash;as suddenly
-as the first had appeared&mdash;and immediately
-there was a loud explosion over our
-heads and Mr. Barney pitched down the ladder
-to the deck. Several of the other men were
-flung to the deck, too, and Bob gave another
-frightened yell and started forward on a dead
-run.</p>
-
-<p>He collided with Captain Bowditch, who had
-just shot up through the companionway.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;What&#8217;s this, you swab?&#8221; yelled the skipper,
-grabbing Bob by the collar with one hand and
-seizing a rope with the other, as the ship staggered
-again. &#8220;What d&#8217;ye mean?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Then he saw Mr. Barney just scrambling to
-his feet.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;What&#8217;s this mutinous swab been doing,
-sir?&#8221; added the captain.</p>
-
-<p>The second mate explained in a moment.
-But Bob suffered. The old man was in a towering
-rage because he had left his post.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;You flat-footed son of a sea-cook!&#8221; he
-bawled, shaking Promise, big as he was, like a
-drowned kitten. &#8220;What d&#8217;ye mean by leaving
-the wheel? That boy yonder kept his place
-didn&#8217;t he? Scared of a light, be ye? Why, if a<span class="pagenum" id="Page_67">[67]</span>
-sea-sarpint came aboard that wouldn&#8217;t be no
-excuse for your leaving the helm. Git back
-there!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>And when he started Bob aft again he accelerated
-his motions with a vigorous kick in
-the broad of the seaman&#8217;s back. Bob grabbed
-the spokes of the wheel, and braced himself,
-with a face like a thundercloud. I crowded
-down my amusement and perhaps it is well I
-did. The fellow was in no mood for enduring
-chaffing. When a man is both angry and scared
-a joke doesn&#8217;t appeal to him&mdash;much.</p>
-
-<p>I am reminded that this is a sorry scene to
-depict. Yet Captain Bowditch was a kindly
-man and not given to unjust punishments.
-And I believe that Bob got only what he deserved.
-Even terror cannot excuse a man for
-neglecting his duty, especially at sea. It is
-like a private in the ranks enduring the natural
-fear of a first charge against the enemy. No
-matter what he may feel in his trembling soul,
-for the sake of the example he sets the man
-next to him, he must crowd down that fear and
-press on!</p>
-
-<p>The storm had broken, however. At daylight
-we found that four feet of the fore-topmast
-had been snapped off short, whether by the
-electrical explosion, or by the wind, we could not<span class="pagenum" id="Page_68">[68]</span>
-tell. But that was the end of that bad spell of
-weather, thanks be! The Gullwing sailed
-through it, we spliced on a new spar, trimmed our
-sails, and tore on, under a goodly press of canvas,
-for the Horn.</p>
-
-<p>But several of the crew remained gloomy because
-of the &#8220;corpse lights.&#8221; Something was
-bound to happen&mdash;of course, something unlucky.
-The lights had foretold it. And Stronson, with
-Tom Thornton and other of the old salts, told
-weird tales in the dog-watch.</p>
-
-<p>In spite of the hurricane we had made good
-time in this run from Valparaiso. As far as I
-could see, however, nothing momentous happened
-at once; and the next important incident
-that went down in the ship&#8217;s log was the sighting
-of the Seamew.</p>
-
-<p>We really saw her this time&mdash;&#8220;in the flesh,&#8221;
-not a ghostly mirage. She came out of the murk
-of fog to the south&#8217;ard at dawn and, far away as
-she was, the lookout identified her.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Seamew, ahoy!&#8221; he yelled.</p>
-
-<p>It brought all hands upon deck&mdash;even the
-mate himself who had just turned in, and the
-captain, too. There the sister of the Gullwing
-sailed, her canvas spread to the freshening morning
-breeze, her prow throwing off two high foamy
-waves as she tacked toward us.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_69">[69]</span>She was on one tack; we were on the other.
-Therefore we were approaching each other
-rapidly. And what a sight! If a marine artist
-could have painted the picture of that beautiful
-ship, with her glistening paint, and pearl-tinted
-sails, and her lithe masts and taut cordage, he
-would have had a picture worth looking at.
-And from her deck the Gullwing must have
-seemed quite as beautiful to those aboard the
-Seamew.</p>
-
-<p>The two ships were the best of their class&mdash;more
-trimly modeled than most. I had not
-realized before what a beautiful ship the Gullwing
-was. I saw her reflected in the Seamew.</p>
-
-<p>She carried an open rail amidships; and her
-white painted stations, carved in the shape of
-hour-glasses, with the painted flat handrail
-atop, stood clearly and sharply defined above
-her black lower sides and the pale green seas.</p>
-
-<p>Not that either ship showed much lower
-planking, saving when they rolled; they were
-heavily laden. With all her jibs and all her
-whole sails on the four lower spars, and most of
-the small sails spread above, our sister ship
-certainly was a beautiful picture.</p>
-
-<p>But the old man wasn&#8217;t satisfied. Through
-his glass he saw something that spurred him to
-emulation.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_70">[70]</span>&#8220;She&#8217;s got all her t&#8217;gallant-sails set, by
-Pollox!&#8221; he bawled. &#8220;Mr. Gates! what are you
-moonin&#8217; about? Get them men up there in
-short order, or I&#8217;ll be after them myself.&#8221; And
-as we jumped into the rigging, I heard him growling
-away on the quarter: &#8220;That&#8217;s the way Cap&#8217;n
-Si beats us. He crowds on sail, <i>he</i> does. Why, I
-bet he never furled a rag durin&#8217; that four-day
-breeze we just struck, and like enough had the
-crew pin their shirts on the wash line inter the
-bargain.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Two vessels may be rigged alike and built
-alike, but that doesn&#8217;t mean that they will sail
-exactly alike. The Seamew was a shade faster
-in reaching and running than the Gullwing.
-Mr. Barney told me that.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;But to windward we have the best of her.
-And that&#8217;s not because of our sailing qualities.
-The difference is in the two masters,&#8221; the second
-mate said. &#8220;Captain Joe can always get more
-out of his ship than Captain Si can out of his
-when the going is bad. In fair weather the
-Seamew will beat us a little every reach. But it
-isn&#8217;t all fair weather in a voyage of ten thousand
-miles, or so,&#8221; and he smiled&mdash;I thought&mdash;rather
-nastily.</p>
-
-<p>I was reminded of the hint Bob Promise had
-given me that there was bad blood and no<span class="pagenum" id="Page_71">[71]</span>
-pleasant rivalry between our second mate and
-the twin who held the same berth on our sister
-ship. Mr. Barney was in the tops studying the
-Seamew a good deal through the glass that day,
-too. I wondered if he was trying to see if his
-brother was on deck.</p>
-
-<p>For we did not run near enough to her that
-day for figures to be descried very clearly either
-on her deck or in her rigging.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_72">[72]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak"><span class="smcap">Chapter VIII</span></h2>
-
-
-<p class="ph1"><i>In Which It Seems That a Prophecy Will Be
-Fulfilled</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p>We wallowed through the seas, but with
-comparatively fair winds, for two days. The
-Seamew would stand off on one tack, we on the
-other; and by and by we would lose her below
-the horizon; but, standing in, after some hours,
-we found her again and were glad to see that she
-had not pulled so very much ahead of us. But
-it made Captain Joe awful fidgety, and he
-certainly did keep the men hopping&mdash;reefing
-and letting go the topsails, and working every
-moment to gain a bit over his antagonist. Why,
-we might as well have been sailing a crack yacht
-for the America&#8217;s cup!</p>
-
-<p>All this activity was very well during bad
-weather; but the men began to get pretty sore
-when the hard work continued throughout the
-hours of fair days too. The Gullwing was, as I
-have said, short-handed. The sea laws cover
-such cases as this; but there are so many excuses
-masters may give for going to sea without sufficient<span class="pagenum" id="Page_73">[73]</span>
-hands to properly manage the ship that
-it is almost impossible to get a conviction if
-the case is carried to court.</p>
-
-<p>Besides, it is the law that, if a case is not
-proved against the master of a vessel, the men
-bringing the suit must pay all the costs. Jack
-Tar knows of something else to do with his small
-pay without giving it to &#8220;landsharks of lawyers.&#8221;
-That is why being a sailor and being a slave is
-an interchangeable term. Many legislators,
-having the welfare of seamen at heart, have
-tried to amend the laws so that the sailor will
-get at least an even break; but it seems impossible
-to give him as fair a deal as the journeyman
-tradesman in any other line of work obtains.</p>
-
-<p>Old Captain Joe Bowditch, as decent a master
-as he really was, had a streak of &#8220;cheese-paring&#8221;
-in him that made him delight in saving on
-the running expenses of his ship. Besides, he
-probably knew his employers, Barney, Blakesley
-&amp; Knight. Many a sea captain takes
-chances, and runs risks, and sails in a rotten
-ship with an insufficient crew, because he needs
-to save his job, and if he doesn&#8217;t please his employers,
-some other needy master will!</p>
-
-<p>Although the Gullwing was so large a ship,
-there are larger sailing vessels afloat, notably<span class="pagenum" id="Page_74">[74]</span>
-some engaged in the Atlantic sea-board trade,
-and a fleet of Standard Oil ships that circumnavigate
-the world. These are both five and six
-masted vessels; but many of them are supplied
-with steam winches, steam capstans, and various
-other mechanical helps to the handling of the
-sails and anchors. The Gullwing had merely a
-donkey-engine amidships, by which the anchors
-could be raised, one at a time, or to which the
-pumps might be attached. The great sails on
-her lower masts had to be raised by sheer bull
-strength.</p>
-
-<p>But in our watch old Tom Thornton was a
-famous chantey-man, and the way we hauled
-under the impetus of his rhythm, and the swing
-of the chants (&#8220;shanties,&#8221; the sailor-man calls
-them) would have surprised a landsman. I
-learned that &#8220;a strong pull, a long pull, and a
-pull altogether&#8221; would accomplish wonders.</p>
-
-<p>We were now down in the regions where the
-tide follows the growing and waning of the
-moon exactly. Indeed, the great Antarctic
-Basin, south of the Cape of Good Hope and
-Cape Horn, is the only division of the seas where
-the tide follows the moon with absolute regularity.
-This is because the great sweep of water
-here is uninterrupted by land.</p>
-
-<p>The enormous wave, raised by the moon&#8217;s<span class="pagenum" id="Page_75">[75]</span>
-attraction, courses around the world with nothing
-to break it. Here in our northern hemisphere
-immense masses of land interfere with the
-coursing of this tidal wave; and the shallow seas
-interfere, too. In the Mexican Gulf, for instance,
-the tide seldom rises more than two feet,
-while up along our north Atlantic shores it
-often rises six and eight feet, while everybody
-has heard of the awful tidal wave of the Bay of
-Fundy.</p>
-
-<p>The depth of the water, therefore, has much
-to do with tidal irregularities. Out in the open
-ocean, where the tide is abyssmal&mdash;that is, about
-five thousand fathoms&mdash;the speed of the waves
-is amazing. Where the depth decreases to five
-fathoms the tide cannot travel more than fifteen
-miles an hour. In England, for example, which
-is surrounded by narrow land-broken seas, the
-result is that they get some of the most terrible
-and dangerous tidal races and currents to be
-found anywhere on the globe.</p>
-
-<p>In the South Seas&mdash;particularly at Tahiti&mdash;the
-ebb and flow of the tide is perfectly adjusted.
-It is always full tide at noonday and at
-midnight, while at sunrise and sunset it is low
-water. The rise and fall seldom exceeds two
-feet; but once in six months a mighty sea comes
-rolling in and, sweeping over the corral reefs,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_76">[76]</span>
-nature&#8217;s breakwater, it bursts violently on the
-shore. Indeed, sometimes this tidal wave inundates
-entire islands.</p>
-
-<p>In various parts of the world the tide creates
-various natural phenomena. There is the
-whirlpool between the islands of Jura and Scarba,
-on the west coast of Scotland, known as the
-&#8220;Cauldron of the Spotted Seas.&#8221; The Maelstrom
-upon the coast of Norway is another
-creation of the tide. The force of a heavy tidal
-current pushing up a wide-mouthed river,
-causes what is termed a &#8220;bore.&#8221; The most
-striking example of this tidal feature is seen at
-the mouth of the Amazon, where a moving wall
-of water, thirty feet high and from bank to bank,
-rushes inland from the ocean.</p>
-
-<p>The waves raced by the Gullwing&#8217;s bulwarks
-with dizzy speed. We plowed on, gaining all
-we could in every reach, but noting likewise that
-the Seamew, when she was in sight, seemed to
-draw away from us. When we had beheld her
-in the mirage she must have been a long way
-behind.</p>
-
-<p>I reckon Captain Bowditch prayed for foul
-weather. And he did not have to pray long in
-this latitude. We were in the district of the
-Boiling Seas. Fogs are frequent; gales sweep
-this section below the Horn almost continually&mdash;sometimes<span class="pagenum" id="Page_77">[77]</span>
-from one direction, sometimes from
-another. All the winds of heaven seem to meet
-here and gambol together.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;He&#8217;s runnin&#8217; us into trouble, that&#8217;s what he
-ban doing,&#8221; croaked Stronson. &#8220;De old man, I
-mean. He iss not satisfied with the fair wedder;
-and who but a madt man vould crave for a gale
-down here under de Horn?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>But we younger fellows laughed at the old
-Swede. We were almost as much excited in the
-race between the two windjammers as were
-Captain Bowditch and Mr. Barney.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Remember!&#8221; croaked Stronson. &#8220;The corpus
-lights wass not for nottings. Trouble iss
-coming.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;But not necessarily trouble to the ship,&#8221;
-declared Tom Thornton. &#8220;Them St. Elmo&#8217;s
-fires foreruns death.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Dey ban mean bad luck, anyway,&#8221; growled
-Stronson.</p>
-
-<p>Thank and I listened to all this croaking with
-a good deal of amusement. It surely never
-entered my head that the prophecy of the old
-men might be in anyway fulfilled.</p>
-
-<p>And I certainly did not feel any foredoom of
-peril myself. The expected gale came down.
-We passed within sight of the islet named Cape
-Horn, with a terrific wind blowing and the waves<span class="pagenum" id="Page_78">[78]</span>
-running half mast high. The Seamew had then
-been dropped behind. Indeed, the last we saw
-of her, she was wallowing in our very wake.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Gimme a breeze like this,&#8221; roared Captain
-Joe from his station, to Mr. Gates and Mr.
-Barney, &#8220;all the way to the time we take our
-tug, and we&#8217;ll be eating supper in Baltimore
-before that Seamew sights the Capes o&#8217; Virginia.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>But this, of course, was only brag. The
-Seamew was not far behind us.</p>
-
-<p>And then, that very night the prophecy of ill-luck
-was fulfilled, at least insofar as it affected
-me. Something broke loose and began to slat
-in the tops. Mr. Gates, roaring through the
-captain&#8217;s speaking trumpet, shouted for all
-hands. We had barely got to sleep below, and I
-reckon I was half way up the shrouds before I
-got both eyes open.</p>
-
-<p>It was a black night, with the wind coming in
-strange, uneven puffs, and the deck all a-wash
-with loose water. The ship was rolling till the
-ends of her yardarms almost dipped in the leaping
-waves.</p>
-
-<p>My foot slipped; futilely I clutched at the
-brace with the tips of my fingers. I knew I was
-lost, and the shriek I uttered was answered by
-Thank&#8217;s voice as I whirled downward:</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_79">[79]</span>&#8220;Man overboard!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>I shot down, and down, and down&mdash;and then
-struck the sea and kept on descending. I
-thought of Mahomet&#8217;s coffin, hung between the
-heavens and the earth. I was hung between the
-ship&#8217;s keel and the bottom of the vast deep,
-swinging in that coffin which can never rot&mdash;the
-coffin of the ocean.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_80">[80]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak"><span class="smcap">Chapter IX</span></h2>
-
-
-<p class="ph1"><i>In Which I Pass Through Deep Waters</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p>But I came to the surface after a time&mdash;and
-with all my wits about me. I had need of them.</p>
-
-<p>In these months that I had been knocking
-about the seas I had been in peril often. Nor
-was this the first time that death by drowning
-had threatened me.</p>
-
-<p>But on no former occasion had I been in so
-desperate a strait. I know that in this rising
-gale the Gullwing could neither be hove to, nor
-could a boat be launched for me.</p>
-
-<p>The schooner had gone on at the pace of a
-fast steamship. And the tide was sweeping me
-astern just as rapidly as the ship was sailing.
-When I rose breast high on the first breaker I
-saw the Gullwing&#8217;s twinkling lights so far ahead
-that they seemed like candle flames.</p>
-
-<p>I was alone&mdash;and this was one of the loneliest
-seas upon all this great, round globe!</p>
-
-<p>But when one is thrown into such a situation
-of peril as I was then, his thoughts are so confused
-that it is only afterward&mdash;if there <i>is</i> an<span class="pagenum" id="Page_81">[81]</span>
-afterward&mdash;that he analyzes his mental activities.
-Just then I had only the clear desire to
-live.</p>
-
-<p>I turned on my back almost immediately and
-letting my legs hang well down, floated easily
-with my nostrils just out of water, and enjoyed
-two or three minutes of very, very grateful repose.
-I had been under the surface so long that
-it was some time before I could breathe clear to
-the bottom of my lungs again.</p>
-
-<p>The buzzing in my head gradually died away.
-I began to think collectedly. I did not waste
-time thinking of rescue. At least, I could expect
-no help from my comrades on the Gullwing.</p>
-
-<p>When I took my headlong plunge from the
-rigging I was clad in the heavy garb that most
-deep-water seamen wear. I had on two thick
-shirts, a heavy pea-jacket closely buttoned, and,
-worse than all, boots to my hips. Sooner or
-later all this weight of clothing would drag me
-down.</p>
-
-<p>I had paddled half a day at a time in Bolderhead
-Bay; and even the fresh water ponds about
-Darringford House, with their hidden springs
-and under-tows, had never frightened me. I
-was the first boy to go in swimming in the
-spring and it had to be a pretty cold day in the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_82">[82]</span>
-fall that drove me out of the water after the first
-plunge.</p>
-
-<p>Of course, this sea off the boisterous islet of
-Cape Horn, was no warm bath. The chill of
-it struck through to the marrow of my bones;
-yet I believed I was good for several hours yet,
-if I could get rid of those clothes.</p>
-
-<p>Undressing under water was a trick I had tried
-more than once; but it was those long-legged
-boots that scared me. They already made my
-lower limbs feel as heavy as lead.</p>
-
-<p>Paddling with one hand I tore open my jacket
-with the other, ripping the buttons off or through
-the buttonholes as they pleased, and finally got
-one shoulder and arm clear. As I was fumbling
-to get the other arm out of the sleeve I felt the
-handle of my knife.</p>
-
-<p>The coat stuck to my left shoulder; but a
-few slashes cleared me of the garment. It went
-floating away on the tide.</p>
-
-<p>I had bobbed up and down in this operation;
-but was none the worse for the plunges under the
-surface, being careful to breathe no water into
-my lungs.</p>
-
-<p>With the knife I slit both my shirts and tore
-them off. But the boots were the problem
-that shook me. I had to rest a bit before I
-tackled them.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_83">[83]</span>I doubled up in a sitting posture and made a
-slash at one bootleg. Down I went&mdash;down,
-down, until it was a fight to get up again&mdash;especially
-with my fist closed upon my knife
-handle. It was pretty hard work; every slash
-meant a plunge under. It was slow.</p>
-
-<p>I would draw up my left foot, for example,
-paddle vigorously with my left hand, take a long
-breath, make a slash with the knife in my right
-hand&mdash;and start for the bottom of the sea!</p>
-
-<p>But I got those boots off at last, though not
-without suffering several cuts and slashes upon
-my legs, which the salt seawater stung tremendously.
-I had already gotten rid of my
-belt, and my trousers came off easier. I was
-sorry to lose some things in my pockets; but
-was glad to think that my father&#8217;s chronometer
-was hanging above my berth in the Gullwing&#8217;s
-fo&#8217;castle and that what money I had was in the
-keeping of Captain Bowditch.</p>
-
-<p>And yet, it seemed utterly foolish to think of
-escape from this predicament. I had heard
-stories of wonderful rescues from drowning in
-mid ocean; but why should <i>I</i> expect a miracle?
-Here I was, struggling miles behind the Gullwing,
-as naked as the day I was born.</p>
-
-<p>Not many minutes had been spent in these
-maneuvers, for all the time occupied in their<span class="pagenum" id="Page_84">[84]</span>
-telling. For the Gullwing to have launched a
-boat to hunt for me would have been ridiculous.
-By day there might have been some chance of
-their finding me before I sank for good; but in
-the night&mdash;and a night as black as this&mdash;such
-an attempt would endanger a boat&#8217;s crew for
-nothing.</p>
-
-<p>If they had flung me life-buoys, they would
-have to come to me, for I could not see them.
-Gazing up into the sky I saw that scurrying
-clouds gave signs of a break in the weather.
-Here and there a little lightening of the gloom
-overhead showed the moon&#8217;s rays trying to
-break through the mists.</p>
-
-<p>Breast high again upon a rising wave, I took
-one swift, whirling look all about. Dense
-blackness everywhere on the face of the ocean;
-but just as I sank back again the moon, breaking
-through a rift, lighted up a silvery path before
-me and at the end of that path&mdash;for an instant&mdash;I
-believed I saw the glistening sails of the Gullwing!</p>
-
-<p>It may have been a mirage&mdash;a vision. The
-blackness shut down upon me, and upon the
-sea again; but I fell back into the trough experiencing
-a more sickening sense of desolation
-than I had yet felt. It seemed to me as though<span class="pagenum" id="Page_85">[85]</span>
-I had looked upon the last sign of human life
-that I would ever see.</p>
-
-<p>I suppose a more hopeless situation than mine
-could scarcely be imagined. Yet I have philosophized
-upon it much more since than I did at
-the time. I would not let my mind picture the
-natural end of this adventure. My mind rebounded
-from the horrible thought that I was
-lost. I would not contemplate it.</p>
-
-<p>In the middle of this broad, tempestuous sea&mdash;naked&mdash;alone.
-No hope of rescue by my companions
-on the Gullwing, with not a splinter to
-cling to, keeping from death only by constant
-effort. Yet there was something inside me that
-would not give up hope&mdash;that would not let my
-muscles relax&mdash;that clung with a desperation
-that clamped me to life!</p>
-
-<p>But at first it was little exertion for me to
-keep afloat. I was in first rate physical condition
-and I was not afraid of sinking right
-away. I knew how to handle myself.</p>
-
-<p>I lay on my back with my head deep, my
-mouth closed, only my nostrils above, conserved
-the strength of my legs by letting them hang
-deep, kept my arms outstretched, pretty well
-down in the water, palms down, and paddled
-gently, sometimes with both legs and arms, and
-again only with my hands.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_86">[86]</span>The waves rolled me over occasionally and
-used me roughly; but I did not lose my head
-and never sank to any depth, having always
-plenty of air in my lungs. When I felt that my
-arms might become wearied I folded them under
-my head and kicked easily.</p>
-
-<p>I am not sure that the sea subsided; but I
-believe it must have done so. It was a providence
-for me, then. I know that not many of
-the waves broke over me, and I seemed sliding
-up and down vast swells which heaved up out of
-Nowhere, gray and green and foam-streaked,
-and then disappeared and left me floating in the
-deep trough.</p>
-
-<p>If anyone was ever literally rocked in the
-cradle of the deep, I was that person&mdash;from the
-crest of the wave, down, down, in a gradually
-diminishing rush, and then up and up to the
-crest of the next roller&mdash;and so on, over and
-over again.</p>
-
-<p>Once I let my mind slip and began to calculate
-the chances for and against my escape. The
-conviction that it was impossible rushed over
-me and I turned over quickly and struck out
-with a savage, hand-over-hand stroke through
-the waves, with the momentary insane feeling
-that I must get somewhere!</p>
-
-<p>The dogged idea of living as long as I could,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_87">[87]</span>
-however, came to me again with fatigue, and I
-rolled over and rested, cradled in the waves.</p>
-
-<p>My hand touched my knife, which still hung
-by its lanyard from my neck. An awful thought
-touched my mind, at the same moment. They
-say it is an easy death, this drowning; but I
-can imagine nothing more awful than to drift
-for hours upon the surface of the sea with the
-knowledge in one&#8217;s mind that, after all, there is
-but one end possible. I opened my knife and
-held it tightly gripped in my hand a moment.
-Then I pulled the lanyard over my head and
-let the knife and all drop into the depths&mdash;and
-the curse went from me.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_88">[88]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak"><span class="smcap">Chapter X</span></h2>
-
-
-<p class="ph1"><i>In Which the Impossible Becomes the Possible</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p>Four hours had I floated on the tumbling
-sea, with the clouds above gradually breaking
-and with the moon finally paleing under the
-stronger light of the advancing sun. The blackness
-disappeared. A wind-driven sky arched
-the sea. And I lay looking up into heaven, waiting
-for the end.</p>
-
-<p>For I was in a sort of mesmerized state toward
-the last, and kept myself afloat automatically.
-It must have been so; by no other means can I
-explain that I was still floating on the surface
-when the sun arose.</p>
-
-<p>The rocking motion of the swells soothed me
-to a strange content that I can neither explain
-nor talk about sanely. I remember I babbled
-something or other over and over again; I was
-talking to the moon riding so high there among
-the rifted clouds.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>In the night of July 14, 1886, the British ship<span class="pagenum" id="Page_89">[89]</span>
-Conqueror, fourteen days out from Liverpool,
-bound for the lumber and fishing ports of the
-Miramichi, in the Straits of Northumberland,
-lost overboard Robert Johnson, A. B. The fact
-is registered on the ship&#8217;s log. Three days after
-the Conqueror reached Miramichi, the Bark
-Adelaide, from Belfast, likewise came into port
-and when she was warped into her berth beside
-the Conqueror, the first man to step from the
-Adelaide to the Conqueror&#8217;s deck was Bob
-Johnson.</p>
-
-<p>There are reasons for the sailor-men being
-superstitious. The crew of the Conqueror would
-not sail with Bob Johnson again. He was <i>fey</i>.
-But really, he had only experienced a strange
-and harsh adventure. The Adelaide, following
-the unmarked wake of the Conqueror, had
-picked him up after he had floated for some
-hours.</p>
-
-<p>And there are plenty of similar incidents in the
-annals of those who go down to the sea in ships
-to match this narrative of Bob Johnson.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>The men who picked <i>me</i> up told me that I
-shouted to them; but I do not remember it.
-They were a crew of a boat put overboard by
-the Seamew, and they brought me aboard and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_90">[90]</span>
-I lay in a bunk in the fo&#8217;castle all that day without
-knowing where I was, or how I had been
-snatched from an ocean grave.</p>
-
-<p>About the first thing I remember clearly was
-that a young man stood beside my berth and
-looked down upon me with a rather quizzical
-smile. I knew him at once and thought that I
-must be in my old bunk aboard the Gullwing.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I&mdash;I&mdash;. Have I been sick, Mr. Barney?&#8221; I
-asked, and was surprised to find my voice so
-weak.</p>
-
-<p>He seemed surprised for a moment, too, and
-then I saw his face flush. He exclaimed:</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;By the great hornspoon! this fellow is off
-the Gullwing.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I <i>was</i> off the Gullwing,&#8221; I whispered. &#8220;But
-I guess this is no dream? I am aboard again
-now.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;No you&#8217;re not!&#8221; he declared, but he still
-seemed bewildered.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;This isn&#8217;t the Gullwing?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;It&#8217;s the Seamew,&#8221; he said.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;But&mdash;but&mdash;you&#8217;re Mr. Barney?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I am,&#8221; he said, grimly. &#8220;But not the Mr.
-Barney you know, young man.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Then the mystery broke and I understood.
-It was Mr. Alf Barney I was talking to, the
-second mate of the Seamew.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_91">[91]</span>&#8220;Then&mdash;then you picked me up,&#8221; I murmured.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;And we had an idea that you were a merman,&#8221;
-he said, with a quick laugh. &#8220;Out here
-in the ocean without a stitch of clothing on you.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>I told him how I had got rid of my garments
-after falling overboard from the other ship. The
-men below gathered around to listen. They
-were men of about the same class as manned the
-Gullwing, I saw.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;You&#8217;re the luckiest fellow that ever drew
-breath, I believe,&#8221; said the second mate, finally.
-&#8220;You stay abed here till morning. Then you
-can go forward and talk to the captain. It&#8217;s
-almost unbelievable.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>And I scarce believed it myself&mdash;at least, not
-while I was so lightheaded and weak. But being
-a husky fellow my strength quickly came back
-to me, and the care of the kind fellows in the
-fo&#8217;castle set me on my pins the next day. I had
-a brief interview with Captain Si Somes&mdash;a long,
-cadaverous, hatchet-faced man who barked his
-words at one as though he did not like to waste
-either voice or words.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;So Cap&#8217;n Joe didn&#8217;t try to pick ye up?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I reckon he couldn&#8217;t. It was blowing pretty
-hard just then.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;That&#8217;s like the old murderer,&#8221; he snapped.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_92">[92]</span>
-&#8220;Didn&#8217;t clew down his tops&#8217;ls quick enough of
-course. He means to beat me if he kin.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Yes, sir,&#8221; I said.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Well, he won&#8217;t. We&#8217;ll pick him up if the
-wind keeps this a-way.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;No chance of my getting back to her I
-sp&#8217;ose?&#8221; I suggested.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;To the Gullwing?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Yes, sir.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Wa-al! I ain&#8217;t goin&#8217; to waste no time puttin&#8217;
-you aboard. He&#8217;s short-handed anyway. He
-allus is. I&#8217;ll feed ye for the sake of keepin&#8217;
-ye,&#8221; and he cackled rather unpleasantly.</p>
-
-<p>I didn&#8217;t like him as well as I did Captain
-Bowditch. And my interest was centered in
-the success of the Gullwing, too. I wanted to
-get back to her and see her win the race.</p>
-
-<p>I found the fo&#8217;castle hands of the Seamew just
-as much interested in the rivalry of the two
-ships as the Gullwing&#8217;s hands were. They believed
-they were on the better craft, too.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Why, she sails a foot and a half to the Gullwing&#8217;s
-one in fair weather,&#8221; one man told me.
-&#8220;Wait till we get out of this latitude. You&#8217;ll
-see something like sailing, then, when the Seamew
-gits to going.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>I thought she was sailing pretty fast just then,
-and said so.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_93">[93]</span>&#8220;If she ever struck another craft&mdash;or anything
-drifting in the sea&mdash;she&#8217;d just about cut it
-down with that sharp bow,&#8221; I observed.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Ain&#8217;t much danger of running into anything
-down here. We ain&#8217;t seen another sail but the
-Gullwing&mdash;save one&mdash;for a week.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;We hadn&#8217;t spoken a vessel on the Gullwing
-for a number of days,&#8221; I replied.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;No. Not many windjammers just now in
-these waters. And all the steamers go through
-the Straits,&#8221; my informant said. &#8220;But this
-craft we spoke three days ago was a-wallowin&#8217;
-along pretty well&mdash;and she had a tow, too.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;A steamship, then?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;No. She was a two-stick schooner, but
-she had a big auxiliary engine and was under
-both steam and sail. The Sea Spell, she was.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;The Sea Spell!&#8221; I cried, in surprise. &#8220;I
-know her. I&#8217;ve been aboard her. Cap&#8217;n Tugg,
-skipper and owner.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;That&#8217;s the Yankee,&#8221; said my friend. &#8220;And
-ain&#8217;t he a cleaner? What do you suppose he
-had in tow?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>I was too amazed to answer, and the man
-went on:</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;That&#8217;s one cute Yankee, that Adoniram
-Tugg. If there wasn&#8217;t but two dollars left in<span class="pagenum" id="Page_94">[94]</span>
-the world he&#8217;d have one in his pocket and a
-mortgage on the other.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>I had to laugh at this description of the
-master of the Sea Spell. And it hit off Adoniram
-pretty well, too.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;That Yankee has made a killing this time,&#8221;
-continued my informant. &#8220;He has been for
-weeks cruising south of here, so he yelled across
-to Cap&#8217;n Somes, hunting for an old whaler
-stranded in the ice.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;The Firebrand. I know about her. Indeed,
-I&#8217;ve seen her,&#8221; I said, and told him the story of
-my cruise on the Gypsey Girl and how we had
-come across the frozen ship and I had boarded
-her.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Well! don&#8217;t that beat cock-fighting!&#8221; ejaculated
-the seaman, who was called Job Perkins.
-&#8220;That old ile boiler was worth a mint of money.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I know it. They said she had fifty thousand
-dollars in oil aboard.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;And if Adoniram Tugg makes port with her
-he&#8217;ll turn a pretty penny. Salvage and all,&#8221;
-ruminated Job.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;What do you mean?&#8221; I gasped, suddenly
-awakened to the fact that I was listening to a
-mighty queer story.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Why, that&#8217;s what Tugg was tugging,&#8221; and
-Job smote his knee and laughed at his own joke.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_95">[95]</span>&#8220;He was tugging <i>what</i>?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Why, I told you he had a ship in tow. She
-was a sight, she was! Her masts were just
-stumps; there wasn&#8217;t ten feet of her rail that
-hadn&#8217;t carried away, and she was battered and
-bruised and looked like she&#8217;d sink under the
-surface every time a wave struck her.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;But that cute Yankee had broached oil
-barrels on her deck, and she was just wallowin&#8217;
-along in a pond of ile&mdash;a reg&#8217;lar slick. The
-waves couldn&#8217;t break over her,&#8221; declared Job,
-still laughing. &#8220;I reckon he&#8217;d patched up her
-hull in some way, and it looked to me as though
-he&#8217;d tow her into San Pedro, at least.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;But, man alive!&#8221; I cried. &#8220;What was she?
-What was the Sea Spell towing?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Why, that Firebrand,&#8221; he said. &#8220;And he&#8217;ll
-make a mint of money out of her, as sure as
-you&#8217;re a foot high.&#8221;</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_96">[96]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak"><span class="smcap">Chapter XI</span></h2>
-
-
-<p class="ph1"><i>In Which I See That There Is Tragedy in This
-Ocean Race</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p>I was dumfounded by this story of Job
-Perkins. Later it was corroborated by the other
-hands. It had really been Adoniram Tugg and
-the Sea Spell that had sailed near enough to this
-ship for conversation between the two skippers.
-And the Sea Spell actually had that old whaleship
-in tow.</p>
-
-<p><i>This</i> was the astonishing part of it: The fact
-that the Firebrand was not at the bottom of the
-seas. I thought I had seen her rained upon by
-ice&mdash;beaten down by the bursting berg&mdash;driven
-under the leaping waves.</p>
-
-<p>Yet, come to think of it, the rotating icefield
-had turned so as to hide the frozen ship from us
-aboard the Gypsey Girl when the ice split up,
-and a curtain of ice-mist and leaping waves had
-really hidden the spot where the Firebrand lay.</p>
-
-<p>I had taken it for granted that the frozen
-ship&mdash;more than a year and a half in the ice&mdash;had
-found her grave right then and there. But<span class="pagenum" id="Page_97">[97]</span>
-I remembered how sound the hulk of the whaleship
-seemed when I went aboard of her. Only
-her spars and upper works were wrecked. She
-had collided with the ice and slid right out of the
-sea at the collision. Perhaps the blow had
-never made her leak a drop!</p>
-
-<p>And then it smote upon my mind that the man
-of mystery, Tugg&#8217;s partner, must be alive, too.</p>
-
-<p>That stern, sturdy man with his gray beard
-and hair, and his wonderfully sharp eyes, who
-had stuck by the frozen ship when his mates
-were driven off, and had battled against the gang
-of sealers to preserve the treasure of oil from
-their greed&mdash;this man in whose presence I had
-felt a thrill not yet to be explained even in my
-most serious times of thought. Why, Professor
-Vose must be alive! There was no doubt of
-that.</p>
-
-<p>I could remember very distinctly our brief
-interview upon the frozen ship. How quickly
-he had disarmed me and showed me that he was
-my master. I could imagine that he had not
-given up hope even when the ice split up and the
-Firebrand had slid back into the water amid the
-crashing bergs and boiling sea.</p>
-
-<p>Whoever this man was, he was a person of
-marked character. He had impressed me deeply
-and I felt that I could never really get him out of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_98">[98]</span>
-my mind. Be he Jim Carver, the renegade
-that had stolen money from the fish firm back
-in Bolderhead, or Professor Vose, the marvelous
-scientist that Tugg claimed him to be, the man
-who had risked his life for the fortune of oil
-aboard the Firebrand, was an individual whom
-I should never forget.</p>
-
-<p>I can&#8217;t say that I was as pleased, as the hours
-passed, with my situation aboard the Seamew as
-I had been on her sister ship. In the first place,
-I had no proper niche here. I was not one of the
-crew. I was really an outsider&mdash;and from the
-enemy&#8217;s camp at that.</p>
-
-<p>There seemed to be a different spirit in this
-crew. They spoke more bitterly of the Gullwing&#8217;s
-company. They seemed to have no good
-word for Captain Bowditch and Mate Gates,
-and it was from Job Perkins that I finally got an
-insight into the real significance of the rivalry
-between the sister ships.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Ye wanter jump quick, young feller, when
-Mr. Barney speaks,&#8221; Job advised me.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I know. That is the way it is with <i>our</i>
-Mr. Barney,&#8221; I replied.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Shucks! Jim Barney&#8217;s another sort of a man
-from Alf Barney.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Not to the naked eye,&#8221; I responded, laughing.
-&#8220;I couldn&#8217;t tell &#8217;em apart.&#8221;</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_99">[99]</span>&#8220;That&#8217;s because you don&#8217;t know either of
-them very well.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Why&mdash;I don&#8217;t know. I think I know our
-Mr. Barney pretty well. He&#8217;s a smart second
-officer and altogether a good fellow, too.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Smart! Why, he&#8217;s a fool to his brother
-Alfred,&#8221; declared Job. &#8220;They ain&#8217;t in the same
-class&mdash;them boys. No, they ain&#8217;t.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Why, I thought they were considered very
-much alike,&#8221; I murmured.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Alf will show Jim, I reckon, how much better
-he is,&#8221; and Job chuckled. &#8220;Ye see, they useter
-be the best of friends, though brothers&mdash;&mdash;&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;What do you mean by that?&#8221; I cried.
-&#8220;Hadn&#8217;t brothers ought to be the best of
-friends?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Never had a brother, had ye?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;No. For which I&#8217;m awfully sorry.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I had brothers. You needn&#8217;t be sorry,&#8221;
-said Job, in his sneering way. &#8220;And I reckon
-that is the way Alf Barney looks at it. Brothers
-can be in your way, I tell ye. I found it so.
-So does Alf Barney. Them boys is rivals.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Well, so are Captain Si and Captain Joe.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Huh! Them old tarriers!&#8221; snorted Job, very
-disrespectfully. &#8220;They only play at fighting
-each other. These Barney boys mean business.&#8221;</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_100">[100]</span>&#8220;But why?&#8221; I demanded.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Well, it&#8217;s something about their uncle. You
-know, their uncle, old Jothan Barney, is senior
-partner of the firm?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Yes.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;And he&#8217;s put &#8217;em into the business. Not
-that he&#8217;s showed favoritism. No. These Barney
-twins air good seamen.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I&#8217;m glad you will allow that,&#8221; I said, rather
-sharply.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Yes. Jim is good; but Alf is a corker! a
-crackajack!&#8221; chuckled Job. &#8220;They begun to be
-rivals in a serious way previous to the v&#8217;yge
-before last.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Ye see, there ain&#8217;t but one rung at the top
-o&#8217; any ladder. And there can&#8217;t but one man
-stand at the top of a pyramid. When old
-Jothan passes in his checks there will be just one
-chance for a nephew to take his place.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;You mean that the two boys are jealous of
-who will get the old man&#8217;s money?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;And stand in his place in the business,&#8221;
-said Job. &#8220;Jothan isn&#8217;t one for dividing power.
-He&#8217;s always been the cock o&#8217; the walk in the
-firm. He&#8217;ll expect the nephew that takes his
-place to be the boss. Can&#8217;t divide responsibility.
-That is the way he looks at it.&#8221;</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_101">[101]</span>&#8220;And a bad thing for the Barney boys,&#8221; I
-muttered.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Well, he puts it to his nephews two years
-ago,&#8221; continued Job Perkins. &#8220;He tells them
-they&#8217;re running too even. He can&#8217;t tell which
-is the best man. He don&#8217;t believe they are
-just alike, even if they be twins.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;&#8216;You git up and dust, boys,&#8217; he said.
-&#8216;One of ye do something different from the
-other. Ye air jest of a pattern. I can&#8217;t tell
-which is the man and which is his reflection in
-the glass.&#8217;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Ye understand, old Jothan didn&#8217;t know
-which to put down in his will to be boss of his
-money and the firm. The boys have got to
-show him. He gives &#8217;em both the same chance,
-but he expects one to beat the other.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Old Jothan begun before the mast. He
-believes in the boys working out their salvation
-aboard ship. And even so near a thing as these
-two craft racin&#8217;, and one beating the other,
-will tell in the favor of the second mate who&#8217;s
-aboard the winning ship.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I can&#8217;t believe it!&#8221; I said to Job.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;You don&#8217;t hafter&mdash;only watch. Old Jothan
-is getting tired of holding on to the business.
-He wants to be shown who is the best man of the
-two boys. That best one he&#8217;ll take into the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_102">[102]</span>
-House after this voyage&mdash;and you mark my
-word, sonny, that best man is going to be Mr.
-Alf Barney.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>I didn&#8217;t know whether Job had told me the
-truth, or not; but I was sorry to learn of the
-sordid rivalry between the two brothers. It
-was tragic&mdash;no less; and I wondered what
-would come of it in the end?</p>
-
-<p>But my wildest imaginings would have been
-tame indeed beside what really was to be the
-outcome of the misunderstanding between Jim
-and Alf Barney.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_103">[103]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak"><span class="smcap">Chapter XII</span></h2>
-
-
-<p class="ph1"><i>In Which the Captain&#8217;s Dog Goes Overboard</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p>The heavy weather could not last forever;
-we came to a comparatively calmer season of
-several days. But the Gullwing was not sighted
-and I began to be worried. So many things
-might easily happen to her. The officers and
-crew of the Seamew were interested in finding
-the sister ship, too; but their comments upon
-her absence were neither kindly nor cheering.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Is she still ahead, or has she sunk?&#8221; demanded
-Cap&#8217;n Si, after an examination of the
-entire circle of sea through his glass.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I bet we&#8217;ve sailed clean around her,&#8221; said
-the first mate, chuckling. &#8220;She&#8217;s in the discard.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;No,&#8221; said Cap&#8217;n Si. &#8220;It couldn&#8217;t be that.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;She&#8217;s reached land, then,&#8221; grinned the mate
-pointing downward.</p>
-
-<p>I thought that after all, both the crew and
-officers of the Seamew were little like my friends
-aboard the Gullwing. But we had such fitful
-winds for a time and made so little speed, that
-I reckon all hands were badly rasped.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_104">[104]</span>We sighted several craft in these seas&mdash;all
-windjammers; but none of them proved to be
-our sister ship. We were now in the South
-Atlantic, and had clawed well off from the
-threatening rocks of Terra del Fuego. We had
-passed from one great sea to another, and the
-prow of the Seamew was turned northward.
-She was headed for home in earnest.</p>
-
-<p>The men and officers were decent enough to
-me. I had been drafted into the mate&#8217;s watch
-and I was smart at my duties and had learned
-a deal aboard the Gullwing which came into
-good play aboard her sister ship. But I wasn&#8217;t
-happy.</p>
-
-<p>The captain had a big Newfoundland dog
-aboard&mdash;Major. He was the pet of the crew
-and was a good fellow. Every day that it was
-not too rough he went overboard for his bath&mdash;usually
-in a sling made of an old sail, although in
-these waters there was not so much danger of
-sharks as in the more tropical seas.</p>
-
-<p>However, there were other wicked marine
-creatures&mdash;far more blood-thirsty than Mr.
-Shark. And we had occasion to find this fact
-out for ourselves within a few days of my coming
-aboard the Seamew so strangely.</p>
-
-<p>We had a morning when the sea was almost
-calm. The wind scarcely gave the ship headway,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_105">[105]</span>
-and the canvas slatted and hung dead,
-from time to time. We all &#8220;whistled for a
-breeze.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Along about the middle of the morning watch
-a school of porpoises came into view. First we
-saw them in a string to windward, and stories
-of sea-serpents, told by both seamen and landsmen,
-came to my mind. In the distance, following
-one another with an undulating motion
-through the short seas, the porpoises looked like
-one enormously long creature&mdash;a huge serpent
-indeed.</p>
-
-<p>The porpoises struck a school of small fish
-nearby and then there was fun. The big fish
-sported all around the ship, rolling and bouncing
-through the water in much excitement.</p>
-
-<p>The Captain&#8217;s dog likewise grew excited. He
-ran to the open rail and barked and yapped at
-the sea-pigs; and I believe that one of the men
-slyly &#8220;set him on&#8221; at the porpoises.</p>
-
-<p>However, to the surprise of the watch on
-deck (the captain was below), Major suddenly
-leaped the rail and went plump into the water.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Hi, there!&#8221; cried Job Perkins. &#8220;That dog&#8217;ll
-git inter trouble; and then what will Cap&#8217;n Si
-say?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>I fancy the surprise of the porpoises when
-Major got among them was quite as great as the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_106">[106]</span>
-amazement of the men on the deck of the slow
-moving Seamew. The schooner was just slipping
-through the sea, the short waves lapping
-against her hull very gently. Major could
-easily have kept up with us.</p>
-
-<p>The porpoises were sailing around and around
-the ship by this time, and the big dog bounced
-among them, barking and biting&mdash;or trying to
-bite&mdash;and otherwise acting like a mad dog. He
-plunged first for one porpoise, then for another,
-rising as lightly as a dog of cork on the waves,
-and throwing himself about in great abandon.</p>
-
-<p>He so excited the porpoises that they made a
-general charge upon him. The dog beat a retreat
-in a hurry; but the sea-pigs had their
-&#8220;dander up&#8221; now and a score of them followed
-him, jumping, snorting, and tumbling about,
-evidently much delighted at putting the black
-stranger to flight.</p>
-
-<p>Major came towards the ship with a rush&mdash;his
-only refuge. The men cheered him excitedly;
-and the watch below was aroused and rushed
-up to see what was going on. So did Captain
-Somes appear, and the moment he saw the dog
-with the big fish after him, he sang out for the
-sling and scolded us unmercifully for letting
-Major overboard.</p>
-
-<p>I verily believe that the porpoises would have<span class="pagenum" id="Page_107">[107]</span>
-torn the noble fellow to shreds in a very few
-minutes. When Major came over the side, he
-was cut in several places and one of his ears hung
-from a thread or little more. I learned then
-that, although the porpoise is such a playful
-creature, and apparently harmless, it has means
-of defending itself not to be sneered at!</p>
-
-<p>I was leaning on the forward port rail, looking
-idly across the stretch of comparatively quiet
-sea (the porpoises having rushed away to lee&#8217;ard),
-when I saw rising to the surface not many
-furlongs from the ship&#8217;s side, a great brownish
-mass that I took to be seaweed.</p>
-
-<p>After a storm we often met fields of rock weed,
-wrenched from the shallow banks underneath the
-ocean by the terrific waves. This rising mass
-was not much different&mdash;in first appearance&mdash;from
-many weed-fields I had seen.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Alfred Barney was seldom on deck without
-his fowling-piece&mdash;a beautiful, double-barreled
-shotgun&mdash;in weather like this. He was a
-splendid wing shot and seemed to delight in
-bringing a gull flapping down into the sea, although
-he never shot at albatross.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;What you looking at, Webb?&#8221; he demanded
-of me, suddenly, coming around the corner of
-the forward house, gun in hand.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Why, sir,&#8221; said I, just making up my mind<span class="pagenum" id="Page_108">[108]</span>
-that I had made a mistake in my first diagnosis
-of the nature of the brown mass that had now
-risen to the surface, &#8220;why, sir, I believe it is
-something alive.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Something alive?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;That thing off there,&#8221; I replied, pointing to
-the object that had attracted my attention.</p>
-
-<p>He stepped to my side quickly and shaded his
-eyes under the palm of his hand as he gazed at
-the peculiar looking brown patch.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;A whale&#8217;s back?&#8221; I suggested, as he remained
-silent.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;No. It hasn&#8217;t got slope enough,&#8221; replied
-Mr. Alf Barney. &#8220;By George, though! it&#8217;s
-alive.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;That&#8217;s what I thought,&#8221; I said. &#8220;I believed
-it moved&mdash;there!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>A tremor of life seemed to seize the object
-and passed all through it. Whatever it was, its
-length was fifty or sixty feet.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Maybe it&#8217;s dying,&#8221; I said. &#8220;Some great
-beast&mdash;&mdash;&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Not a bat-fish,&#8221; he muttered, half raising his
-rifle.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;No, sir. I don&#8217;t see either head or tail to
-it.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>It moved again&mdash;rather, it quivered. I can
-scarcely express the feeling of horror and dislike<span class="pagenum" id="Page_109">[109]</span>
-for the thing that came over me. I shuddered.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I wish it would go away,&#8221; I muttered.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Barney laughed, shortly. He raised his
-gun again. Suddenly we heard a sharp, mandatory
-voice behind us:</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Don&#8217;t do that, Mr. Barney!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>We both turned. It was the mate, Mr. Hollister.
-He was a dark, stern, silent man, who
-spoke to the men without much bustle, but who
-evidently expected to be obeyed the first time.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;That&#8217;s a giant squid, Mr. Barney,&#8221; said the
-mate. &#8220;He&#8217;s &#8216;bad medicine.&#8217; You don&#8217;t want
-to fool with one of those fellows. I did so once
-to my sorrow.&#8221;</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_110">[110]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak"><span class="smcap">Chapter XIII</span></h2>
-
-
-<p class="ph1"><i>In Which I Learn a Deal About Sea Monsters in
-General and the Giant Squid in Particular</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p>&#8220;A squid of <i>that</i> size?&#8221; cried the young second
-mate, doubtfully, while I gave my closer attention
-to the long, dark brown body that lay
-quivering upon the surface of the sea.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;There&#8217;s bigger,&#8221; said Mate Hollister, grimly.
-&#8220;Ask any old Norwegian hardshell about the
-&#8216;kraken.&#8217; I don&#8217;t mean the octopus; I mean
-the real devil-fish&mdash;the squid.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I know the octopus and the squid are two
-different creatures,&#8221; said Barney.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Yes. And that yonder is a squid&mdash;a devil-fish
-of the largest size. There! you can see his
-fore-arms now&mdash;look!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>I had observed something moving thirty feet
-beyond one end of the bulky brown creature.
-Two snake-like tentacles suddenly whipped out
-of the water. They bore between their ends a
-struggling fish. In a moment tentacles and fish
-disappeared, apparently sucked in toward the
-head of the monster.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_111">[111]</span>&#8220;Good-bye, Johnny Fish!&#8221; said Mr. Hollister,
-grimly. &#8220;The parrot-beaks of that gentleman
-have snapped him up.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>I had seen small squid. This beast lying on
-the sea so near us was between fifty and sixty
-feet long, with an average diameter of something
-like five feet, and a ten-foot breadth of tail.</p>
-
-<p>The squid are the natural food of the sperm
-whale. Often the whale is so greedy for the
-squid that it tackles one of these giants and
-swallows the hard and indigestible beak which,
-causing a disease in the cetacean&#8217;s stomach,
-sometimes brings about the death of the gourmand.
-As parts of squid beaks have been found
-imbedded in masses of ambergris, scientists are
-quite convinced that this gormandizing of the
-sperm whale on squid is the immediate cause of
-that secretion in its stomach which, strange as
-it may seem, is the basis of many of the best
-perfumes. Ambergris is a very valuable &#8220;by-product&#8221;
-of the sperm whale.</p>
-
-<p>The orca&mdash;that tiger of the sea&mdash;is inordinately
-fond of the squid, too, as a diet. This
-devil-fish, with its eight short arms, each
-covered on the underside with innumberable
-&#8220;suckers,&#8221; and its two fishing-arms which have
-suckers only at the extremity, excites no fear
-in the killer-whale.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_112">[112]</span>Concealed at the base of the squid&#8217;s ten arms is
-the terrible beak, shaped like that of a hawk,
-except that the upper jaw shuts into the lower.
-This beak is likewise dark brown in color, almost
-black at the tips, and is supported by
-powerful muscles.</p>
-
-<p>Years ago there was a huge squid captured at
-Catalina, on the southern shore of Trinity Bay,
-Newfoundland. This squid was bought by the
-New York Aquarium and was the largest perfect
-specimen of its kind ever examined by
-scientists. Of course, they had to satisfy themselves
-with a post-mortem examination!</p>
-
-<p>The beak of this immense fish&mdash;which could
-not have been much larger than the one we were
-contemplating from the deck of the Seamew&mdash;was
-as big as a six-gallon keg.</p>
-
-<p>No animal can have a more formidable appearance,
-or a more deadly grasp, than these
-squid. It would seem as though the long, flexible,
-muscular tentacles were a sufficient means
-of defense and offense, without their being armed
-with the terrible suction cups.</p>
-
-<p>These cups have a serrated edge like a handsaw,
-and are used for anchors as well as to secure
-prey. They cling with the greatest tenacity, it
-being easier to tear away an arm from the body
-of the squid, than to force the beast to give up<span class="pagenum" id="Page_113">[113]</span>
-its hold. It has all the desperate nature of a
-bulldog.</p>
-
-<p>The beak, or jaw, is provided with terrible
-teeth, and even the tongue is covered on the
-upper part by a horny bed, bristling in the
-center with a series of recurving teeth, while its
-edge is armed with three other erect teeth,
-which are slender and hooked. A man might
-as well put his hand into a knitting machine and
-expect to take it out unscarred, as to risk a hand
-in the jaws of a squid. Those teeth tear the
-creature&#8217;s food to shreds.</p>
-
-<p>And one other characteristic the squid possesses
-which gives it advantage over both enemy
-and prey. When excited, and at will, it can
-eject a substance like ink&mdash;indeed, it was used
-by the ancients as ink&mdash;by which it clouds the
-sea, and so often escapes an enemy. Its own
-eyes being of a phosphorescent nature, it can see
-well enough through the haze of this cloud of
-ink, therefore its prey cannot escape. Besides,
-its fishing-arms being three times the length of
-its other tentacles, the squid can &#8220;fish a long
-way from headquarters.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>This ink of the squid, or cuttle-fish, when
-dried, is used in water-color painting, and is
-known by the name of &#8220;sepia.&#8221; It is practically
-indestructible.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_114">[114]</span>Now, all this by the way of introducing the
-squid. The Seamew crept by the creature and
-I, for one, was not sorry to see it finally disappear.
-And from what the men told about the
-cuttle-fish I judged that it would have been the
-part of unwisdom for Mr. Barney to have fired
-at the creature.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Lemme tell you,&#8221; said old Job Perkins, leaning
-on the rail beside me. &#8220;Them ain&#8217;t critters
-to fool with. I know. I been there and
-learned.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Did you ever get real close to a big squid,
-Job?&#8221; I asked him.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Big enough and near enough to suit me,&#8221;
-he said, wagging his head and expectorating over
-the rail. &#8220;I went up against a reef-squid once&mdash;in
-the Galapagos, it was&mdash;and that was enough
-for Job. Yes, sir!</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I was in the clipper ship Chelsea that time, I
-was,&#8221; continued the old man, taking another
-&#8220;chaw.&#8221; &#8220;Cap&#8217;n Daggett ordered a boat
-ashore for turtles. He shot &#8217;em for soup and
-fresh meat. Good eatin&#8217;, too. But I took a
-seal-club with me, for I wanted a sea-lion&#8217;s skin
-to make me a pair of moccasins, and I&#8217;d heard
-&#8217;em roaring when we dropped anchor.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I went off by myself and waded around a
-low, rocky point, in water not ha&#8217;f knee deep,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_115">[115]</span>
-but deep jest outside, when I saw Mr. Squid
-moving along atop of the water. He made
-considerable thrashing as he come along, like a
-whirligig waterwheel; his body part looked
-bigger than I am, and his arms two or three
-times as long&mdash;at any rate, them two long arms
-was tremendous.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;It headed into a little bay ahead of me,&#8221;
-pursued Job, &#8220;and when it got into about three
-foot of water it dropped anchor and began to feel
-around with three or four of its arms. The
-upperside of them arms were brown colored like
-the rocks, with wrinkles and stiff bristles all
-along the edge; the underside was white&mdash;sort
-of a nasty, yallerish, dead-looking white&mdash;with
-suckers like saucers in two rows. What I took
-to be the head had something like eyes; but I
-couldn&#8217;t make &#8217;em out plain.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Ye know how it is when ye see a snake, when
-you&#8217;re walking on shore,&#8221; said old Job. &#8220;Ye
-always want to try and kill it. That&#8217;s the way I
-felt about that squid. I didn&#8217;t think of any
-danger when I waded to it, but it seemed to be
-watchin&#8217; me, for it squared round, head-on. I
-hit it a clip with my iron-bound seal-club, when,
-quick as a thought, it took a turn around the
-club with one o&#8217; them short suckers, and held
-on. I pulled my blessedest, but the critter was<span class="pagenum" id="Page_116">[116]</span>
-too much for me. Then&#8217;s when I&#8217;d oughter
-backed out.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;But I was obstinate and I kept tugging at
-the club. Just then it showed its head&mdash;it shot
-out from the knob in front, a brown-and-purple
-spotted thing with the eyes showing. And in a
-second one of its arms was around me. It
-wound around my bare leg and another shot
-around my neck. The suckers took hold like a
-doctor&#8217;s cups.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;It began to heave and haul on me. You kin
-guess I pulled and hollered. I got out my knife
-and hacked at it, but it would have mastered me&mdash;it
-sure would!&mdash;if Cap&#8217;n Daggett hadn&#8217;t
-come running along the shore and fired both
-barrels of his gun into its head. Then it let go
-and slid back into deep water, squirting its
-nasty ink all about.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I ain&#8217;t never fooled with no squid again,&#8221;
-concluded Job Perkins. &#8220;They ain&#8217;t no pets.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>It was later in that day, when I was standing
-my trick on lookout, and the Seamew had got a
-better wind and was forging ahead at a spanking
-pace, that Mr. Hollister and Mr. Barney
-stood near me and I heard the second mate ask
-the older man about the experience <i>he</i> had had
-with a giant squid.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Yes,&#8221; said Mr. Hollister, &#8220;when I was a<span class="pagenum" id="Page_117">[117]</span>
-young fellow I ran against one of those squids,
-and I never want to bother with another one. I
-was mate of a little schooner&mdash;the Pearl, she
-was&mdash;150 tons and a crew of six men forward,
-with the cook. We were bound from the
-Mauritius to Rangoon in ballast, to return with
-paddy, and had put in at Galle for water. Three
-days out we fell becalmed in the bay&mdash;about
-latitude 8 degrees 50 minutes North, longitude
-84 degrees 5 minutes East.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;On the 10th of May about five o&#8217;clock in the
-afternoon&mdash;eight bells, I know, had gone some
-time before&mdash;we sighted a two masted screw
-steamer on our port quarter, about five or six
-miles off. Very soon after, as we lay motionless
-on a sea like glass, a great mass rose slowly to
-the surface about half a mile on our larboard side,
-and remained spread out, as it were, and
-stationary.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Even at that distance I could see that it was
-fully as long as the Pearl, and I sung out to the
-skipper to ask what he thought it was.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;&#8216;Blest if I know,&#8217; says he. &#8216;Barring its size,
-color and shape, it might be a whale. Some
-deep-sea critter, sure enough,&#8217; and he dove below
-and came up with a heavy rifle.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;The crew was discussing it, too, and as the
-skipper was preparing to fire at the thing, Bill<span class="pagenum" id="Page_118">[118]</span>
-Darling, a Newfoundlander, exclaimed, putting
-up his hand:</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;&#8216;Have a care, Skipper. That ere is a squid
-and it&#8217;ll capsize ye if ye hurt him.&#8217;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I&#8217;d heard of squid, and seen squid,&#8221; proceeded
-Mr. Hollister, &#8220;and so had the skipper.
-But we both laughed at old Bill. The skipper
-up with his gun and let her go. He hit the thing,
-and it shook all over; there was a great ripple
-all around him and he began to move.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;&#8216;Out with all your axes and knives!&#8217; shouted
-Bill, &#8216;and cut at any part of him that comes
-aboard.&#8217;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;The old fellow taking the deck in that way
-made the skipper mad, and I was some surprised
-myself. You know how old sailors are&mdash;superstitious,
-as Negroes were in slavery. We
-couldn&#8217;t do anything to move the schooner, of
-course, and the skipper and I didn&#8217;t say a thing
-to the crew. Bill and the two others got axes
-and one other a rusty cutlass. We were all looking
-over the side at the advancing monster; but
-I for one, didn&#8217;t believe it was dangerous.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;We could now see a huge, oblong mass,
-moving by jerks, just under the surface of the
-water, and an enormous train following. The
-oblong body was at least half the size of the Pearl<span class="pagenum" id="Page_119">[119]</span>
-and just as thick. The wake, or trail, might
-have been a hundred feet long.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;In the time I&#8217;ve taken to tell you,&#8221; said Mr.
-Hollister, &#8220;the brute struck us and the ship
-quivered under the thud; I wasn&#8217;t scared a mite
-until then. The skipper gave a yell and plugged
-away with his rifle another time. And then
-monstrous arms like trees seized the vessel and
-she keeled over; in another second the monster
-was aboard, squeezing its great polypus bulk in
-between the two masts.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Bill screamed, &#8216;Slash for your lives!&#8217; But
-all our slashing and yelling didn&#8217;t do a mite of
-good. Holding on by his arms, the monster
-slipped back into the sea again, and dragged
-the vessel down with him on her beam-ends.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;The skipper and I were thrown into the
-water. I caught sight of old Bill and one of the
-others squashed up betwixt the mast and one of
-them arms. It was an awful sight, I tell you.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Of course, the Pearl&#8217;s hatches were open and
-in a few moments she filled and went down.
-Those two went with her. The rest of us escaped
-the brute&#8217;s tentacles and a boat from the
-Strathowen&mdash;the steamer we&#8217;d seen&mdash;picked us
-up a little later.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;That was the finish of the Pearl and two
-brave men,&#8221; added Mr. Hollister, gravely.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_120">[120]</span>
-&#8220;And she isn&#8217;t the only craft that&#8217;s been carried
-down by a giant squid. Most folks I&#8217;ve told it
-to think it&#8217;s a sailor&#8217;s yarn. But the crew and
-the passengers of the Strathowen could swear
-to it&mdash;and did so, too. The story was printed
-in the Indian papers when we reached Madras.
-And you&#8217;ve seen one of the beasts yourself, to-day,
-and know to what an enormous size they
-grow. There are dangerous monsters in the
-sea, Mr. Barney; but I reckon there&#8217;s nothing
-worse than a healthy, full-grown devil-fish.&#8221;</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_121">[121]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak"><span class="smcap">Chapter XIV</span></h2>
-
-
-<p class="ph1"><i>In Which a Signal Retards the Race</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p>It was at six bells in the morning watch of the
-next day that the lookout in the top sang out
-the wailing cry:</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;On deck!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Crow&#8217;s nest, ahoy!&#8221; responded Mr. Hollister,
-who had the deck.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Sail-oh!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Where away?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Two points off the weather bow. Four-sticker!
-It&#8217;s that blessed Gullwing, by Jiminy
-Christmas!&#8221; responded the sharp-eyed seaman
-aloft.</p>
-
-<p>There was as much excitement aboard the
-Seamew now as though this was the first time
-her sister ship had been spied in the offing. We
-ran up the shrouds to see her better, and the
-officers were all on deck with their glasses.</p>
-
-<p>She came snorting up to us on the starboard
-tack, all her bright canvas bellying, and so trim
-and taut that it was a pleasure to gaze upon her.
-I felt a thrill of delight as I watched the Gullwing.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_122">[122]</span>
-Aboard of her was my chum, Thankful
-Polk, and my other friends, and I wished with
-all my heart that I might rejoin them.</p>
-
-<p>But I knew very well that under the present
-circumstances that would be impossible. Had
-the two schooners been becalmed the day before,
-side by side, I might have got Cap&#8217;n Si to
-put me aboard the Gullwing.</p>
-
-<p>But one thing I did beg the captain of the
-Seamew to do, and, after some little demur, he
-agreed to it. He ordered Mr. Barney to bring
-out the signal flags, kept in the chest amidships,
-and instructed him to inform Captain Bowditch
-that the Seamew had picked up, alive, the lost
-member of his crew.</p>
-
-<p>This signaling was not done until the Gullwing
-was so near that both ships were about to tack.
-As soon as the line of flags was run up on the
-Seamew, they hustled about on the Gullwing
-and replied. Nor did Captain Bowditch shift
-his helm at once. The sister ships continued to
-approach each other.</p>
-
-<p>The Seamew had plainly overtaken the Gullwing,
-and now, when she sheered off, she would
-begin to creep ahead of the craft in which I was
-the more interested. With the wind as it was,
-and nothing untoward occurring, the Seamew<span class="pagenum" id="Page_123">[123]</span>
-was bound to gain something over her rival in
-each leg she made.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;What&#8217;s he sayin&#8217;?&#8221; bawled Cap&#8217;n Si to Mr.
-Barney.</p>
-
-<p>I had already learned something about the
-signal code, and when the second mate&#8217;s back
-was turned I got a squint at the codebook.
-Captain Bowditch was asking if the Seamew
-would heave to and send me aboard!</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Cap&#8217;n Joe is sure cracked!&#8221; cackled the commander
-of the Seamew. &#8220;Tell him I wouldn&#8217;t
-do it for a hull barrel of greening apples.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>I reckon Mr. Barney put the refusal more
-briefly. But the Gullwing continued to hang
-in the wind while another line of flags was run
-up to her fore. The book told me that the
-signal read: &#8220;I&#8217;ll send boat aboard.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;No he won&#8217;t, by jinks!&#8221; crowed Cap&#8217;n Si.
-&#8220;Nor he wouldn&#8217;t wanter do it if he warn&#8217;t so
-blamed short-handed. Stow your flags, Mr.
-Barney. Stand by. Ready! haul sheet!&#8221; and
-he went ahead and gave swift orders to put the
-Seamew about on the other tack.</p>
-
-<p>But I was glad that those aboard the Gullwing
-knew that I was alive. I could imagine Thank&#8217;s
-relief, and how surprised and&mdash;I hoped&mdash;glad,
-the others would be to know that I had not
-found my grave in the ocean. I even thought<span class="pagenum" id="Page_124">[124]</span>
-kindly of Bob Promise, the bully, and believed
-that he was likewise thinking kindly of me at
-that moment.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;And to serve Cap&#8217;n Si out for not being willing
-to meet Cap&#8217;n Joe half way, and let them
-take me aboard,&#8221; I muttered to myself, &#8220;I hope
-the Gullwing beats the Seamew all to flinders!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>The Seamew, however, gained slowly upon her
-sister ship. On every tack that day she made a
-better showing. Sometimes the Gullwing was
-below the horizon; but whenever we sighted her
-she was dropping back a bit. The wind remained
-steady and from a favorable quarter
-and by and by the night dropped down and
-divided the two ships more effectually than the
-sea itself.</p>
-
-<p>As the light faded upon sea and sky we sailed
-under a vast, black-velvet canopy embroidered
-upon which were the countless stars and planets.
-Constellations that I knew nothing about glowed
-from the depths of the firmament; and brighter
-than all was the Southern Cross. The moon
-had dipped below the horizon and therefore the
-Cross and the stars were the more brilliant. I
-paced the deck alone and thought of my mother,
-and wondered what she was doing just then, and
-if Chester Downes was still trying to circumvent
-me, and Mr. Hounsditch, and gain control of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_125">[125]</span>
-the fortune, possession of which he so much
-begrudged my mother and myself.</p>
-
-<p>And a thought came to me from out the stillness
-and immensity of that night&mdash;a thought
-that forever after seemed to haunt me; was there
-not some curse upon my grandfather&#8217;s huge
-property, which had been willed my mother and
-I under such wicked conditions? For that
-Grandfather Darringford&#8217;s will had been inspired
-by hatred of Dr. Webb, my father, one could not
-doubt.</p>
-
-<p>Had my father not been drowned as he was
-off White Rock, that will of grandfather&#8217;s would
-have been the source of heartburnings in the
-family. Human nature is human nature; the
-time would have come when the fact that Dr.
-Webb was a stumbling-block to his son&#8217;s advancement,
-or his wife&#8217;s ease, would have been
-advanced. That is, if my father had remained
-all these years a poor man. And what else
-could he have been with his practice in Bolderhead?</p>
-
-<p>Men get stunted in small towns&mdash;especially
-professional men. Dr. Webb could never have
-made much more than a miserably poor living
-for mother and I had he lived; and all that
-time the thought of the great Darringford Estate
-would have been the skeleton in our closet!</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_126">[126]</span>It was better as it was, I suppose. It had
-been a dream that my father was still alive. I
-believe I would have gladly given up my share
-of my grandfather&#8217;s money to have found that
-the mysterious man aboard the frozen ship was
-my father! I had been strangely drawn toward
-that man.</p>
-
-<p>Besides, I felt now as though I were old enough
-and big enough to make my own way in the
-world, and to keep my mother in comfort, if not
-in luxury, as well.</p>
-
-<p>Dawn drew near and the stars began to fade.
-Soon the deck would be a-bustle with our watch
-washing down. We had probably crossed and
-recrossed the way of the Gullwing during the
-night, but she had not been hailed from the
-lookout.</p>
-
-<p>As the light of day advanced the wind fell.
-We hardly made steerage-way in the pearl-colored
-light of dawn. The coming day is
-heralded ashore by hundreds of feathered trumpeters;
-but here on the open sea it advances with
-silence.</p>
-
-<p>Far, far out on the sea, where the gently
-swelling water seemed buttoned to the rim of the
-sky, a sudden flush appeared. The hue lay
-upon both sky and sea&mdash;indeed, it was hard to
-distinguish for a bit the one element from the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_127">[127]</span>
-other. But I knew the sun was about to poke
-his head up just there!</p>
-
-<p>And as the glow grew, a ghostly figure drew
-across the pink patch. I watched it eagerly.
-The sun, mist-shrouded and sleepy, was thrust
-out of the sea; and across the red face of him
-sailed a four-stick ship&mdash;the Gullwing! It did
-not need the man in the crow&#8217;s nest to hail the
-officer of the deck and announce the fact. I
-could identify our sister ship from where I
-stood.</p>
-
-<p>Long red rays like pointing fingers played
-across the sea. The Gullwing and the Seamew
-were several miles apart. The early rays of the
-sun touched an object on the sea&mdash;at first merely
-a black spot&mdash;lying about equi-distant of the
-two ships.</p>
-
-<p>When I first saw this black thing I sprang
-into the shrouds. Mr. Hollister hailed me:</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;What do you see, Webb?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Something adrift&mdash;yonder, sir!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Lookout, ahoy!&#8221; bawled the mate.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Aye, aye, sir! I sees it.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;What d&#8217;ye make it out to be?&#8221; demanded
-the mate.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;It&#8217;s the black hulk of an open boat,&#8221; I cried,
-as the seaman above hesitated. I expect the
-rising sun half blinded him. &#8220;There&#8217;s a stump<span class="pagenum" id="Page_128">[128]</span>
-of a mast and she seems decked over forward&mdash;no!
-it&#8217;s an awning.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;A ship&#8217;s boat?&#8221; cried the mate, eagerly.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Aye, aye, sir!&#8221; came down the voice of the
-man in the top. &#8220;That&#8217;s what she be. And
-wrecked. Not a sign of life aboard her.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;How is it, Webb?&#8221; Mr. Hollister repeated.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I see nothing moving,&#8221; I admitted, slowly.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Hollister sent down for his glass, and then
-joined me in the shrouds. The deck was all
-a-bustle by now. Cap&#8217;n Si came up, rubbing
-his eyes and yawning.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;What&#8217;s the matter with all you lubbers?&#8221;
-was his pleasant demand. &#8220;What&#8217;s that&mdash;the
-Gullwing? Ain&#8217;t you never seen her before?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Drop your eyes a bit, Captain,&#8221; advised
-Mr. Hollister, swinging down after a look
-through his glass.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Huh!&#8221; exclaimed the skipper. &#8220;A boat.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Yes, sir.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Empty?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;It looks so,&#8221; replied Mr. Hollister, and
-passed him the glass.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Ain&#8217;t wuth picking up,&#8221; decided Cap&#8217;n Si,
-after a long look at the drifting boat.</p>
-
-<p>He closed the glass. Mr. Hollister waved me
-down and turned to order the watch to work,
-when the man in the tops hailed again. He was<span class="pagenum" id="Page_129">[129]</span>
-in a better position to see into the drifting boat
-than anybody else.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I see something moving in that boat, sir!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;What do you see?&#8221; bawled Cap&#8217;n Si.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;It&#8217;s something fluttering&mdash;a flag, or a rag.
-There it is!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>There were light airs stirring. Suddenly
-something upon the broken mast moved. A
-flaw of wind fluttered something fastened there.
-Was it a signal of distress? Was some poor
-creature adrift in the half wrecked boat?</p>
-
-<p>I wondered what Cap&#8217;n Si would do. To
-ignore a flag of distress&mdash;to pass by the opportunity
-of rescuing a fellow-creature from
-death&mdash;would be an awful thing. Yet there
-might be nobody in the boat. I could see the
-old man doubted.</p>
-
-<p>And then the lookout hailed again:</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;The Gullwing&#8217;s dropping a boat, sir!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;That&#8217;s enough!&#8221; roared Cap&#8217;n Si, all in a
-bluster at once. &#8220;I won&#8217;t let Cap&#8217;n Joe do
-more&#8217;n me. Mr. Barney!&#8221; The second mate
-had followed him on deck. &#8220;Call away a boat&#8217;s
-crew.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Aye, aye, sir!&#8221; was the second mate&#8217;s smart
-response.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Beat the Gullwing&#8217;s boat to that barge.
-Understand me? You git there first. I ain&#8217;t<span class="pagenum" id="Page_130">[130]</span>
-goin&#8217; to let Joe Bowditch crow over me in Baltimore.
-Mebbe the boat&#8217;s wuth savin&#8217; after all.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Before he had ceased speaking Mr. Barney
-had shouted down the fo&#8217;castle hatchway and
-his watch tumbled up. I had slid down the
-stays to the deck and was right beside the boat
-Mr. Barney had elected to launch. I wanted
-to go in that boat, but I belonged to the mate&#8217;s
-watch and knew I would not be selected.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_131">[131]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak"><span class="smcap">Chapter XV</span></h2>
-
-
-<p class="ph1"><i>In Which We Have a Good Race In Earnest</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p>And I had an idea that if I asked the captain
-to go in the boat, or suggested it to Mr. Barney,
-I&#8217;d get an immediate refusal. I had a decided
-belief that Captain Somes didn&#8217;t wish me to
-get aboard the Gullwing again. Not that he
-needed my services particularly&mdash;although my
-work was costing him nothing but my grub and
-the cast-off clothes I had been given; but
-Captain Si feared that Captain Joe needed me,
-and my remaining with the Seamew was crippling
-his rival. Which, by the way, was likely
-to be the facts in the case.</p>
-
-<p>So, with this scheme in my mind, I expect I
-was even more cautious than was necessary. I
-might have been unnoticed had I jumped right
-into the boat as it went overboard.</p>
-
-<p>But when I heard Mr. Barney call off the
-men&#8217;s names, I noted that Job Perkins was
-among the chosen. I had sized up Job for what
-he was. I grabbed him as he passed me on the
-run and shot into his ear:</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_132">[132]</span>&#8220;Listen! ten dollars when we reach Baltimore
-if you&#8217;ll let me take your place in the boat.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Huh?&#8221; said Job, wonderstruck for a moment.
-But it was only for a moment. The
-old fellow had all his wits about him and in
-working order.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;It&#8217;s a bargain, boy,&#8221; he whispered, and the
-next moment he fell sprawling over a coil of
-rope and scrambled up again right before Mr.
-Barney.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Hullo! what&#8217;s the matter with you, old
-man?&#8221; demanded the second officer.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Ow-ouch!&#8221; groaned Job, rubbing his arm.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Hurt you?&#8221; snapped Mr. Barney.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;By gravey! I <i>did</i> wrench my arm,&#8221; groaned
-Job, his face writhing with an expression of
-pain.</p>
-
-<p>I stepped in at once. &#8220;I&#8217;ll take his place,
-sir,&#8221; I said.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;All right!&#8221; cried the officer, without a glance,
-and I slid down the falls and seized the bow oar.</p>
-
-<p>In another moment the officer followed me,
-getting into the stern, and we cast off.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;You git that boat for me, Mr. Barney!&#8221;
-bawled Cap&#8217;n Si, over our heads. &#8220;Don&#8217;t you
-let them fellers from the Gullwing beat ye.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;We&#8217;ll do our best,&#8221; responded Mr. Barney,
-waving his hand. Then to us he said: &#8220;Give<span class="pagenum" id="Page_133">[133]</span>
-way, men! See what you can do. Bend the
-ash!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Before we had left the deck of the Seamew we
-knew that the Gullwing&#8217;s boat was off ahead of
-us. It looked as though the drifting boat was
-about as far from one vessel as she was from the
-other. The air being so light, we would have
-lost time trying to beat down to the spot. The
-race was between the six-oared boats, and I do
-not believe any college regatta was ever pulled
-amid more intense excitement.</p>
-
-<p>At first, however, as we were so low in the
-water, we could not see our rival. Nor could we
-scarcely observe the object of our race.</p>
-
-<p>But over these gentle waves we could pull a
-mighty stroke, and I found that the men with
-me at the oars were practiced hands. The
-strokeman set a pace that made us bend our
-backs in good earnest. This was a race!</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Barney was using a steering oar, and using
-it well. He stood up to the work, and therefore
-he could see much farther than we at the oars.
-By glancing now and then over my left shoulder,
-however, I could see the black hulk of the drifting
-boat rising and falling upon the gentle
-waves.</p>
-
-<p>And at first I saw nothing about the boat to
-express life saving the fluttering rag. It was a<span class="pagenum" id="Page_134">[134]</span>
-flag. After some minutes of hard pulling it
-was revealed to us that it was a British flag, set
-union down.</p>
-
-<p>As I pulled I saw that Mr. Barney was looking
-across at some other object than the mysterious
-black craft. His eyes were squinted up as he
-gazed into the rising sun, and the expression of
-his face was mighty grim.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;He sees the Gullwing&#8217;s boat,&#8221; I thought.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Pull, you fellows!&#8221; he suddenly barked at
-us. &#8220;Why don&#8217;t you pull?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>And we <i>were</i> pulling. I could stand the pace
-for a bit longer, I thought; but the stroke was
-certainly bending his back and driving his oar
-with a vigor that left little more to be expected
-from mortal man.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Pull!&#8221; yelled our mate. &#8220;Pull, or those
-lubbers will beat you to it.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>There was no feathering of oars, or any fancy
-work. This was just the hard, deep pull of the
-deep-sea oarsman. We breathed heavily; the
-sweat poured from our limbs; we neither spoke
-nor looked back over our shoulders now. We
-became veritable pieces of mechanism, set to do
-this certain stroke, and to do it until we broke
-down completely!</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Keep it up! Break your backs!&#8221; yelled the
-second mate.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_135">[135]</span>I had an idea that there was an added incentive
-for Mr. Barney&#8217;s excitement. His twin
-brother more than likely commanded the boat
-from the Gullwing. But we at the oars could
-not see her yet.</p>
-
-<p>Nearer and nearer we came to the drifting
-boat. Our craft sprang through the sea at the
-end of every stroke. Had one of the oars broken
-I believe we would have been capsized.</p>
-
-<p>Once more I glanced around. Not a sign of
-life in that floating mystery with its signal
-floating from the broken mast. But there <i>was</i>
-a bit of canvas spread forward of that mast, like
-an awning.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Barney saw me look back and he swore
-at me good and plenty.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;You want us to lose this race, you sawney!&#8221;
-he exclaimed.</p>
-
-<p>I was convinced that, for his part, he was
-more anxious to beat the Gullwing&#8217;s crew&mdash;and
-incidentally his brother&mdash;than to save any life
-there might be remaining on the wreck.</p>
-
-<p>But perhaps I misjudged Mr. Alfred Barney.
-We were all excited. Even I, who had no
-reason for wishing to see the Seamew&#8217;s boat
-win, pulled my oar with every last ounce of
-strength I possessed. Mr. Barney had accused
-me without warrant of trying to throw the race.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_136">[136]</span>The two racing boats were not head-on to each
-other, but were approaching the wreck at an
-angle that now brought each in sight of the
-other. When the Gullwing&#8217;s boat flashed into
-the range of my eyes I saw half a dozen of the
-men I knew. There was Thankful Polk, heaven
-bless him, and Mr. Jim Barney at the steering
-oar. The sight of them made me feel good all
-over.</p>
-
-<p>But I could not see the wreck now without
-twisting my head around. And if I did that I
-knew I should bring the wrath of our second
-mate upon me. The Gullwings cheered. For a
-moment I did not know what for. Could they
-be winning?</p>
-
-<p>And then Thank&#8217;s jolly voice reached me
-across the stretch of sea:</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Hurray, Clint! Go it, old boy! You&#8217;re a
-sight for sore eyes!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>But I had no breath with which to answer.
-And I reckon if he had been pulling his oar as
-I was, he would not have been so boisterous.</p>
-
-<p>The strain of the last few minutes of the race
-was terrific. My breath came in great sobs, and
-I heard the other men with me groan as they
-strained at the heavy oars. We were about all in.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Pull, you tarriers!&#8221; barked Mr. Alf Barney
-again.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_137">[137]</span>&#8220;Keep it up, boys!&#8221; yelled Mr. Jim Barney
-in the other boat.</p>
-
-<p>I saw scowling looks exchanged between the
-twin brothers. It must be true, as Job Perkins
-had said, the two Barney boys were deadly
-enemies!</p>
-
-<p>Then suddenly our cox shouted: &#8220;In oars!
-Way all!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>I felt the nose of the boat bump something
-behind me. I dropped my oar and turned to
-seize the broken gunwale of the drifting hulk we
-had pulled so hard to reach. We of the Seamew
-had won the race.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_138">[138]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak"><span class="smcap">Chapter XVI</span></h2>
-
-
-<p class="ph1"><i>In Which I Return to the Gullwing&mdash;and With
-My Arms Full</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p>I hadn&#8217;t breath enough left at first to answer
-Thankful Polk&#8217;s hail. And when my eyes fell
-upon the contents of the drifting boat that we
-had pulled so far to reach, what I saw was not
-calculated to aid me to easy breathing. Lying
-upon his back, face upwards, in the glare of the
-morning sun, lay a man, bareheaded and barefooted,
-dead.</p>
-
-<p>And such an awful death as he must have
-died! His face was quite black, although he
-was a white man by nature, it was as though
-the blood had been congested in his face. His
-tongue had protruded slightly from between his
-firm, white teeth. His legs were drawn up as
-though in a convulsion and the corpse had stiffened
-that way. His limbs had not been composed
-by any kindly hand after the spirit had
-left its body.</p>
-
-<p>He was a sailor. There was tattooing on his
-chest and arms. He had a short, bushy beard.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_139">[139]</span>
-I believed at first glance that he was a British
-seaman. And almost at this first moment of
-glancing into the boat I made another discovery.
-I learned how the man had died.</p>
-
-<p>His tongue was not black; and although he
-was much emaciated, neither thirst nor hunger
-had hounded the sailor to his dreadful end.</p>
-
-<p>He wore a gully slung by a lanyard around his
-neck. That knife was twisted tightly in the
-cord, and the cord itself was imbedded in the
-flesh of the dead man&#8217;s throat. Actually a
-tournequet had been made of the knife and cord,
-and the sailor had been strangled. He was a
-horrid sight, as he lay with his feet to the empty
-stern and his touseled head thrown back over a
-seat.</p>
-
-<p>Perhaps many of the details of this awful
-scene were a matter of later observation; but
-it seems to me now as though everything about
-the dead man was photographed upon my brain
-at the first glance.</p>
-
-<p>And then my gaze roved beyond him. There
-was a piece of sailcloth laid across the bow of
-the open boat beyond the stump of the mast. It
-was dark under that awning. But right at the
-entrance lay something white and gold.</p>
-
-<p>Without waiting for any order from Mr.
-Barney, I stood up and leaped into the half<span class="pagenum" id="Page_140">[140]</span>
-wrecked boat. I heard none of the other men
-speak a word. All my attention was given to the
-object which my dazzled eyes now rested upon.</p>
-
-<p>A young girl&mdash;the prettiest, most appealing
-child I had ever seen&mdash;lay under the awning.
-Her head was toward me. Her face was as
-white as milk, and the blue veins showed plainly
-at her temples and were traced along her throat.
-Her cheeks were without an iota of color.</p>
-
-<p>She was all white&mdash;her face, her thin, ruffled
-dress&mdash;the bare arm from which the sleeve had
-been pushed back to her elbow. All white,
-save the great mass of her hair. That was gold&mdash;pure
-gold. Such a beautiful child I had never
-imagined before. She was twelve or thirteen
-years old.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;What&#8217;s that you got there, Webb?&#8221; I heard
-Mr. Alf Barney shout.</p>
-
-<p>I had dropped on my knees beside the unconscious
-girl. I saw that she was only delicate and
-exhausted. There was a breaker of water lashed
-to the gunwale right beside her, and a cup with
-water in it. I saw no food; but I knew well
-enough that the girl was not dying of thirst.
-No more than the sailor had died of thirst!</p>
-
-<p>I gathered the girl up in my arms. She was a
-light weight. I thought she sighed and her
-eyelids fluttered.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_141">[141]</span>And then suddenly sounded a raucous bellow,
-in a strange tongue, from within the decked-over
-portion of the boat. Something moved. I
-leaped back and almost trod upon the dead man.</p>
-
-<p>Out from under the awning crept a tall, lean,
-lithe brown man, dressed in torn sailor togs, but
-with a dirty turban around his head. He was a
-wild-eyed, yelling fiend. In a moment there
-flashed out of his dress, from some secret place,
-a long, glittering blade. With this raised above
-his head he bounded in his bare feet the length
-of the boat after me.</p>
-
-<p>At that moment the boat from the Gullwing
-scraped alongside the wreck. As I whirled to
-escape this murderer, this boat was nearest to
-me. Thankful Polk, his red face transfixed
-with horror, shouted to me:</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Here, Sharp! Quick! This way!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Their boat was really nearest me. I leaped
-into it. Thank shoved off with his oar and the
-boat and the wreck were separated by a growing
-streak of sea.</p>
-
-<p>The men in both boats all talked at once; and
-the two Mr. Barneys shouted; but above all
-the uproar I could hear the frenzied shrieks of
-the brown man in the turban.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Come back, here, Webb!&#8221; cried the second<span class="pagenum" id="Page_142">[142]</span>
-officer in the Seamew&#8217;s boat. &#8220;We&#8217;ll take that
-child with us.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Sit down, Clint!&#8221; commanded Mr. Jim
-Barney, quietly. &#8220;You&#8217;ll have us swamped.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>I obeyed him quickly. Thank smote me a
-hearty blow between the shoulders.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Sharp! you&#8217;re a daisy! I knowed they
-couldn&#8217;t never drown you,&#8221; he declared.</p>
-
-<p>But I couldn&#8217;t reply to him. I still held the
-girl in my arms. There seemed to be no good
-place there in the stern to lay her down. And
-she was so frail, and soft, and pretty! I had
-never seen such a delicate creature before.</p>
-
-<p>We were still moving from the wreck and the
-Seamew&#8217;s boat, the men backing water. There
-was a splash and a louder yell from the Seamew&#8217;s
-men. I glanced over my shoulder. I could see
-the turbanned head of the wild man and his thin,
-bare arms beating the water. He was swimming
-desperately after our boat.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;That monkey&#8217;ll be drowned,&#8221; Thank cried.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;We kin get away from him easy,&#8221; said another
-of the rowers.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;He&#8217;ll be drowned,&#8221; I said to Mr. Barney.
-&#8220;We&#8217;ll have to take him in.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I reckon that&#8217;s so, Webb,&#8221; said the second
-mate. &#8220;The Seamew is welcome to the old
-tub&mdash;and the dead man.&#8221;</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_143">[143]</span>The brown man came to the side of our boat,
-panting and moaning. He was near spent.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I believe he belongs to this girl and he thinks
-we&#8217;re running off with her,&#8221; said Mr. Barney.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;He&#8217;s crazy as he can be,&#8221; said Thank.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Help him in. See that he doesn&#8217;t have that
-knife. If he doesn&#8217;t behave, we can lash his
-wrists together,&#8221; said Mr. Barney.</p>
-
-<p>The foreign looking man was hauled in. He
-lay panting on the bottom, between Mr. Barney
-and I. We were being hailed from the other
-boat.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Let that Webb come back with us, you fellows!&#8221;
-cried Mr. Alf Barney. &#8220;Cap&#8217;n Si will be
-furious.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;He belongs to the Gullwing,&#8221; said our Mr.
-Barney, promptly. &#8220;You can&#8217;t have him.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;We&#8217;ll see about that&mdash;&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;See about it, then,&#8221; said the officer, shortly.
-Then to his own crew he said: &#8220;Give way,
-men! Altogether, now.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>We swept away on a graceful curve and
-headed for the Gullwing. Mr. Barney nodded
-to me with a smile.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;You certainly had a close call for your life,
-Clint,&#8221; he said. &#8220;Luck was with you when
-you went overboard from the Gullwing, after
-all. Everybody gave you up for lost&mdash;save<span class="pagenum" id="Page_144">[144]</span>
-Thank there. He swore that if you went to the
-bottom you could walk ashore, somehow.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>At that moment the brown man drew a longer
-breath and struggled to his knees. Mr. Barney
-reached forward to seize him; but I saw that
-the foreigner&#8217;s eyes glowed no longer with the
-wild light that had made him look so savage.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Sahib,&#8221; he said softly, &#8220;is Her Innocence
-safe? Is the Missee unharmed? Is it well with
-her?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>I looked down at the child&#8217;s face. She was
-breathing quietly, but her eyes were still closed.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;She is asleep. She does not seem to be
-harmed,&#8221; I said.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Sahib! I was overcome. I had watched so
-long. Two long weeks have we been in that
-boat. Water we had, but little food. That
-food I had brought myself for Missee. One
-man become touched of the finger of the gods and
-leaped overboard. The other desired the fragments
-of food which only remained for Her
-Innocence. I felt myself fast losing the thread
-of life. Then&mdash;the other man died.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>I knew what he meant. I understood how
-that man had been strangled by the lanyard
-around his neck that the food might be saved
-for the girl. I guess this strange man was
-pretty nearly a savage; but I believed then&mdash;and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_145">[145]</span>
-I believe now&mdash;that he had done right.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I&mdash;Dao Singh&mdash;then fell asleep, Sahib. I
-believed it was to be my last sleep. But the
-Missee had her food and the water.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I see,&#8221; I said, for he spoke only to me, even
-ignoring Mr. Barney. &#8220;Now you will both be
-saved. Our ship is at hand.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;It is well, Sahib,&#8221; he sighed. &#8220;Dao Singh&mdash;is
-the Sahib&#8217;s&mdash;servant&mdash;&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>He fell back into the bottom of the boat and
-his eyes closed. I feared he had died then and
-there; but Mr. Barney bent over him, opened
-his shirt, felt of his heart, and then nodded to
-me with encouragement.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;He&#8217;s asleep,&#8221; he said. &#8220;Just done up&mdash;plucky
-brown devil. A Hindoo, I take it.
-These folks were from a British ship; but that
-boat had no name on her.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Half an hour later we pulled under the Gullwing&#8217;s
-rail. All hands were there to eagerly
-welcome us. We caught the falls and they
-hauled us up to the davits, heavy as the boatload
-was.</p>
-
-<p>As we swung inboard I leaped down to the
-deck, still bearing the unconscious girl in my
-arms.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_146">[146]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak"><span class="smcap">Chapter XVII</span></h2>
-
-
-<p class="ph1"><i>In Which We Learn the Particulars of the Wreck
-of the Galland</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p>Captain Joe Bowditch smiled down broadly at
-me from the poop as I leaped to the deck; but
-when he saw the burden in my arms his countenance
-changed queerly.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;What in the name o&#8217; goodness you got
-there?&#8221; he barked.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;A little girl, Captain Bowditch,&#8221; I replied.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;A little&mdash;well! what d&#8217;ye think o&#8217; that?&#8221;
-he gasped, waddling down the ladder. &#8220;Ye
-didn&#8217;t git that aboard the Seamew? Nor out o&#8217;
-the ocean when ye went overboard, neither?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;No, sir,&#8221; said Mr. Barney, who had followed
-me. &#8220;She is what we found in that drifting
-boat&mdash;part of what we found, at least.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;A gal! Moses ter Moses, and all hands
-around!&#8221; groaned the captain. &#8220;Whatever will
-we do with a gal aboard the Gullwing?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I don&#8217;t see how we could have left her there,
-Captain,&#8221; laughed Mr. Barney.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Now, don&#8217;t ye cackle!&#8221; snapped the old man.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_147">[147]</span>
-&#8220;Why didn&#8217;t you leave her for Cap&#8217;n Si? He&#8217;s
-a man that&#8217;s more used to female children than
-I be. Why, Cap&#8217;n Si&#8217;s sister married a man
-whose brother got spliced to a widder woman
-that had twin gal babies. He&#8217;s more fitten to
-take such a responsibility than what I be.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>He looked as though he thought he had proved
-his case, too. But I was too much worried over
-the condition of the pretty creature in my arms
-to pay much attention to his growling.</p>
-
-<p>And when the Hindoo was brought inboard,
-Captain Joe went off into another fit. &#8220;Holy
-smoke!&#8221; he yelled. &#8220;Another useless critter to
-feed. Didn&#8217;t you leave nothin&#8217; in that boat for
-the Seamew?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;We left a dead man,&#8221; chuckled one of the
-men.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Well&mdash;we could have buried him easy,&#8221;
-grunted the old man. &#8220;Take that nigger below
-and find out what seems to be the matter with
-him.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>But his bark was a whole lot worse than his
-bite. He hurried away to open the spare cabin
-for the girl, and I followed him into the afterhouse,
-still bearing her in my arms.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Bates, who had the deck, came to look
-down upon her pretty, white face as I started
-below.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_148">[148]</span>&#8220;Bless her!&#8221; he murmured. &#8220;Have a care
-with her, Clint. Glad to see you again, boy.
-Ah! that pretty one ought to bring us luck, sure
-enough.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Come right this way, boy, and lay her in the
-bed,&#8221; ordered Captain Bowditch. &#8220;My! she
-looks bad&mdash;but pretty! Sh! is she asleep?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>And then the trembling lids, with their long
-golden lashes, opened slowly. With her complexion
-and hair, I had expected to look into
-blue eyes. But I was astonished to find that
-the little creature&#8217;s orbs were a beautiful, deep,
-deep brown, with golden sparks in their depths.
-My face was so close to hers at the moment her
-lids parted that I could see the reflection of my
-own countenance in the pupils.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;My soul!&#8221; murmured Captain Joe, looking
-over my shoulder, &#8220;she&#8217;s jest the prettiest thing
-I ever see.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Her wan face changed slowly. A faint color
-was breathed over it. She gazed steadily into
-my countenance, and it was evident that I did
-not frighten her. She put up one hand and
-touched my cheek. I tell you, the touch thrilled
-me!</p>
-
-<p>Then her eyes closed again, she sank deeper
-into the pillow, and was again asleep.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Here, boy!&#8221; croaked the master of the Gullwing,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_149">[149]</span>
-trying to speak softly. &#8220;You run and
-tell the doctor to kill a chicken and make some
-broth&mdash;strong broth, now. Don&#8217;t want no
-&#8216;phantom soup&#8217;&mdash;suthin&#8217; that tastes like a
-chicken did more than wade through a gallon of
-water on stilts. If he don&#8217;t make it good I&#8217;ll
-be in his wool!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>I ran to do his bidding. I knew very well
-that the little girl would have the very best of
-everything there was upon the big schooner.</p>
-
-<p>In the dog-watch I held a regular reception.
-The men were eager to hear the story of my adventure
-overboard, and old Tom Thornton declared
-I might live to be &#8220;a second Methuserlum&#8221;
-and never experience a closer call than
-that. Old Stronson shook his head.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;De poy iss fey,&#8221; he muttered, shaking his
-head.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;He&#8217;s sure a lucky youngster,&#8221; declared Bob
-Promise. &#8220;No wonder he got the best of me
-when we had our set-to.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Thank and I had much to talk over. I know
-my chum had suffered in spirit when it seemed
-that I was drowned. He never would admit
-to the others that he had given up hope of seeing
-me again. Now he clung close around me and
-did not seem to want to let me out of his sight&mdash;not<span class="pagenum" id="Page_150">[150]</span>
-even long enough for me to go down to take
-a look at Dao Singh.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Let that Jasper be, Sharp,&#8221; Thank drawled.
-&#8220;You can&#8217;t kill a nigger easy&mdash;sleep won&#8217;t hurt
-him. If he was pretty near two weeks on watch
-in that boat, no wonder he&#8217;s all in.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;He is a faithful creature,&#8221; I said. &#8220;And he
-must love his mistress.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;That Jasper&#8217;s taken a fancy to you, too,&#8221;
-Thank said. &#8220;You&#8217;re &#8216;it&#8217; with him.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>I did not realize at the time how very right
-Thank was, and what it meant to be canyonized
-by Dao Singh.</p>
-
-<p>The report came forward that the little girl
-had taken some of the broth the cook had made,
-was seemingly satisfied with her surroundings,
-and had gone to sleep again. Mr. Barney told
-me that Cap&#8217;n Bowditch was peeking in at her
-every hour or so, and that it was plain the old
-man was prepared to get down on the deck
-and let his little visitor walk on him&mdash;if she so
-desired.</p>
-
-<p>But in the morning watch they called me and
-I found that the girl wanted to go up on deck,
-but had asked to be lifted by the boy who had
-taken her from the wrecked boat. She remembered
-me, then! And I had not really supposed
-she had seen me until after I had lain her<span class="pagenum" id="Page_151">[151]</span>
-down in the berth and she had opened her eyes.</p>
-
-<p>She had had some breakfast. There was a
-little flush in her face. She looked much
-brighter, and when she saw me she smiled delightfully.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I know your face!&#8221; she said, and although her
-voice was weak, it was as sweet as a tinkling
-silver bell. &#8220;I was sure I could not be mistaken.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Mistaken?&#8221; I asked, puzzled.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Yes. You were the boy I saw before&mdash;oh,
-long, long before I came here.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>That puzzled me, and I suppose my face must
-have shown my surprise. She laughed&mdash;a pretty,
-resonant chime. I fell for that voice of hers!</p>
-
-<p>And then what she said about seeing me so
-long before got me going, too.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Say, you never saw me before I got you out
-of that boat,&#8221; I declared.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Oh, yes, I did,&#8221; she returned, confidently.
-&#8220;I haven&#8217;t been aboard this big ship long, have
-I?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Only since yesterday,&#8221; I admitted.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;That is what the nice captain told me,&#8221; she
-returned, as though satisfied.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Then you&#8217;ve seen me just once before.
-When I brought you below yesterday.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;But you took me out of the boat?&#8221;</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_152">[152]</span>&#8220;Yes.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;And held me all the time we were getting
-here?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Yes, ma&#8217;am!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I knew it,&#8221; she breathed, smiling up into my
-face again. &#8220;I knew it couldn&#8217;t be all just a
-dream.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>The captain had fixed a chair himself, with
-blankets and the like, in the shade of the afterhouse.
-There I laid her down and then, having
-no further orders, would have gone forward to
-my own place. But she clung to my hand.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;You sit down here on the deck beside me,
-tell me your name, and all about you,&#8221; she said.
-&#8220;For although I saw you so long ago, I never
-learned who you were.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>I looked up at Mr. Gates and the Captain and
-slyly tapped my forehead. I believed she was
-lightheaded. The old man nodded and said,
-gruffly enough, for he was deeply moved:</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;You stay with her, Clint. Do jest what she
-wants ye to.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Clint?&#8221; she repeated, questioningly. &#8220;Is
-that your name?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Clinton Webb,&#8221; I replied.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Clinton is pretty. You are English?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I should say not!&#8221; I exclaimed. &#8220;American.&#8221;</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_153">[153]</span>&#8220;Oh, yes! I am an English girl; but I have
-lived in British India most all my life.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;That&#8217;s it, Miss,&#8221; I said, knowing that the
-captain and mate were dying to hear her story.
-&#8220;You tell us all about it. How did you come in
-that boat? And what vessel was it that was
-wrecked?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;We sailed in the Galland, a big steamship,
-from Calcutta,&#8221; said the girl softly. &#8220;I was
-with friends. They were taking me home&mdash;&#8216;home&#8217;
-means England to all British India
-people who are white.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Then you were going to relatives?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I do not know. I am not sure. My father
-had some people&mdash;<i>once</i>. But they treated him
-unkindly, I believe. He had not heard from
-them for years. My father was Captain Erskin
-Duane. He died very, very suddenly. My
-mother had been a long time dead,&#8221; and the
-tears now began to fill her eyes and creep down
-her pale cheeks.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Friends who were about to go to England
-took me on the Galland with them. These
-were Mr. Suffix, and Mr. and Mrs. Traine, and
-Cecelia Traverstone.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Were they saved?&#8221; asked Mr. Gates, quietly.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I do not know. I think not. I think the
-steamer&#8217;s boilers blew up and smashed most of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_154">[154]</span>
-the boats and liferafts, so that few were saved,&#8221;
-said the girl, simply.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;You poor child!&#8221; breathed Captain Bowditch,
-blowing his nose right afterward like a
-fog siren.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I am Phillis Duane,&#8221; she said, after a moment.
-&#8220;I traveled with my <i>ayer</i> and Dao
-Singh, who would not leave me when father
-died. He had always served the captain. We
-lived up country from Calcutta. I do not think
-that my father was very well acquainted with
-the people I sailed with, after all. I was alone,
-and they were just kind to me.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;And you don&#8217;t know what you were going to
-do when you reached England&mdash;whom you
-would meet?&#8221; queried Mr. Gates, gravely.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;No. It was all in the hands of my friends,&#8221;
-she said, shaking her head. &#8220;And I am quite
-sure they never got away from the Galland. I
-would not, had it not been for Dao Singh.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;That nigger, eh?&#8221; grunted the captain.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;He is a Hindoo. He is a very intelligent
-man in his own language and among his own
-people. I have heard my father say so. I fear
-he sacrificed his caste by attending on the
-captain&mdash;and on me.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;But he saved you from the wreck?&#8221; I urged,
-keeping her to the story of the wreck.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_155">[155]</span>&#8220;Yes. When the boilers blew up (the steamship
-had been afire all night) Dao Singh ran
-into the cabin and hurried my <i>ayer</i> and me out
-on the deck. Some men were lowering a boat.
-It was damaged some.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Singh tried to put the <i>ayer</i> and me in it.
-But I believe she must have fallen overboard,
-or been pushed overboard. There was much
-confusion. I was scared and cried. When I
-understood a little better about matters, we
-were in the boat, drifting without oars, and the
-Galland, all a mass of flames, seemed to be going
-down, stern-foremost, under the sea.&#8221;</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_156">[156]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak"><span class="smcap">Chapter XVIII</span></h2>
-
-
-<p class="ph1"><i>In Which I Become Better Acquainted With
-Phillis Duane</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p>There was little more to be learned, it seemed,
-about the actual tragedy of the burned steamship.
-How the fire had been started she could
-not say. She had been asleep. Her nurse, or
-<i>ayer</i> awoke her at the height of the stampede of
-passengers for the deck. Whether the officers
-and bulk of the crew had been killed by the
-explosion, or had abandoned the ship and her
-human freight, she did not know.</p>
-
-<p>The Galland had been some months on the
-voyage, having circumnavigated the world, when
-Phillis Duane and her friends boarded her at
-Calcutta. She had touched at Chinese ports,
-and again at Tahiti. She was a British tramp
-steamship and Phillis seemed to think that her
-home port was Edinburgh. It might be that
-the lost girl&#8217;s friends were Scotch, and that the
-friends she traveled with were likewise Scotch,
-and that is why they had selected the ill-fated
-Galland to get home on.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_157">[157]</span>&#8220;Do you suppose that nigger knows?&#8221; demanded
-Captain Bowditch, of Mr. Gates, in a
-whisper.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Doubtful if you get anything out of him,&#8221;
-returned the mate.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Understands English, doesn&#8217;t he?&#8221; growled
-the skipper.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;And speaks it. But these Hindoo servants
-don&#8217;t really know anything about the English
-sahibs they serve. The Britisher governs India
-in a boiled shirt and evening clothes. He is
-about as human to the natives as one of their
-own cast-iron gods. That&#8217;s how Johnny Bull
-has been able to boss the several million of
-blood-thirsty inhabitants of his colonies. No.
-The nigger wouldn&#8217;t be likely to know anything.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;But why did he follow the girl to wait on her,
-then, Mr. Gates?&#8221; I asked.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Because he&#8217;s a nigger&mdash;an inferior tribe.
-That&#8217;s the nature of &#8217;em.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>I did not believe it. I had never read that
-the people of Hindoostan were particularly inferior
-to the whites. And Dao Singh looked to
-me as though he knew a whole lot more than the
-ordinary European. I was mistaken if he was
-not the best educated person aboard the Gullwing
-at that moment!</p>
-
-<p>But it might be that the Hindoo knew nothing<span class="pagenum" id="Page_158">[158]</span>
-of the cause of the wreck and of what had become
-of her other passengers and the crew.
-Unless some other boats had been picked up from
-the lost Galland, her case was likely to be another
-of those unexplained tragedies of the deep
-which fill the columns of our newspapers for a
-few issues and then are forgotten&mdash;so easily
-forgotten!</p>
-
-<p>The officers and I had held the brief conversation
-noted above when we had withdrawn out of
-earshot of the little girl. The cook had brought,
-her a beaten egg to drink as a &#8220;pick-me-up&#8221;
-between breakfast and dinner. When she had
-finished it she looked around for me again.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Go on, boy,&#8221; said the captain. &#8220;Keep her
-amused. Poor little thing.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;And encourage her to talk with you, Clint,&#8221;
-advised Mr. Gates. &#8220;Put what she says down
-in your log. If you do that, you may gradually
-get together a connected story of what and who
-she is. Such information will be valuable in
-aiding her to find her friends.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>I thought well of that idea, and promised to
-do so; though I wondered how the mate knew I
-kept a log. I had taken notes of my adventures
-ever since I had been blown out to sea on my
-little sloop, the Wavecrest; but at this time I
-did not know what an aid to memory a log&mdash;or<span class="pagenum" id="Page_159">[159]</span>
-diary&mdash;would be. By the way, a seaman never
-calls it &#8220;logbook;&#8221; the daybook of a ship at
-sea is merely a &#8220;log.&#8221; One of the most popular
-magazines published has a correspondence department
-called &#8220;The Logbook,&#8221; and that
-makes the sailor smile!</p>
-
-<p>I had no objection to being attentive to our
-little passenger. I judged her to be a mighty
-plucky little girl. Of course, her father had
-been dead long enough for the first of her grief
-to have been assuaged before she had sailed
-from India. And the friends she had sailed
-with had won her heart; therefore she had not
-loved them enough to miss them much now.</p>
-
-<p>She had endured privations in the drifting
-boat remarkably well. She told me of the man
-that had gone crazy and leaped overboard. She
-did not seem to know that the men aboard the
-boat with her had had no food. I began to
-have a remarkably high opinion of Dao Singh.
-Yet I knew very well that he had strangled the
-man I had found dead in the boat and had been
-unable to throw the heavy body overboard.</p>
-
-<p>There&#8217;s a vast difference between the negro
-race and the Hindoo, I thought, remembering
-Mr. Gates&#8217; words, &#8220;This Dao Singh is a remarkable
-man, or <i>I</i> am much mistaken.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Barney came along and spoke to the little<span class="pagenum" id="Page_160">[160]</span>
-one, and she seemed to like him&mdash;as I had&mdash;at
-first sight. Afterward the young second mate
-talked a little in private with me.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Mr. Robbins says she takes to you and is
-willing to talk with you, Webb.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Yes, sir.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;And you&#8217;re trying to draw out from her her
-history?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I am, sir.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;It&#8217;s a good idea. There may be some difficulty
-in getting trace of her friends.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Well, she sha&#8217;n&#8217;t suffer, if her friends don&#8217;t
-turn up,&#8221; I said, with emphasis. &#8220;My mother is
-rich and she will be glad to take Phillis herself,
-I have no doubt.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;That&#8217;s a good thing, too,&#8221; said Mr. Barney,
-heartily. &#8220;But you understand, my lad, that
-there may be friends expecting the girl in the
-Old Country, that she knows nothing about.
-We shall have to report the case to the British
-consul at Baltimore, and he will look up her
-folks&mdash;if she has any. In case there should be
-none, somebody might have to step in to save
-the child from being sent to an institution&mdash;in
-England, I presume. They would scarcely send
-her back to India.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Not much, sir!&#8221; I exclaimed. &#8220;They will<span class="pagenum" id="Page_161">[161]</span>
-have to show pretty good grounds for taking
-her from mother&mdash;&mdash;&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Why, you don&#8217;t know whether your mother
-will take her or not,&#8221; laughed Mr. Barney.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Yes she will,&#8221; I assured him. &#8220;She&#8217;d love
-to have a girl like Phillis.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>And I had no fear on that score. Mother
-couldn&#8217;t help but fall in love with such a dear
-little thing as Phillis Duane. I was glad to see
-that Phillis seemed fond of me, too. I had
-never had a sister, and it struck me just then
-that a sister was what I had missed all my life!</p>
-
-<p>We were getting on fine together and she was
-chattering to me just as though she had known
-me for years, when I spied a figure coming
-waveringly down the deck from the forward
-house.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;It&#8217;s poor Dao Singh!&#8221; exclaimed Phillis.
-And then she called to him in her sweet voice;
-but what she said none of us could understand
-as it was in his own tongue.</p>
-
-<p>He glided rather than walked along the deck.
-Somehow he had obtained clean garments; and
-he had washed his turban. Altogether he looked
-very neat and trim. But he was very weak and
-cadaverous. That Hindoo had come pretty
-near starving to death, and no mistake.</p>
-
-<p>When he had spoken to the girl in reply, bowing<span class="pagenum" id="Page_162">[162]</span>
-low before her, he turned quickly to me. I
-was not only astonished, but I felt mighty foolish
-when he dropped gracefully on his knees and
-touched the deck lightly with his forehead right
-at my feet.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Dao Singh is the servant of Webb Sahib,&#8221;
-he said, softly.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;For the love of Mike, get up!&#8221; I gasped, and
-I heard Thankful Polk giggling behind me, while
-Mr. Barney laughed outright. &#8220;You don&#8217;t
-want to kneel to <i>me</i>.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Singh arose and stood, with dignity, before
-me.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Webb Sahib has but to command,&#8221; he said,
-quietly. &#8220;He is the friend and protector of
-Her Innocence,&#8221; indicating Phillis with a
-scarcely perceptible gesture. &#8220;His word is law
-to Dao Singh.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;All right, if that is so,&#8221; I said, glad that he
-had spoken too low for anybody else to hear.
-&#8220;If my word&#8217;s law, just you treat me with a
-little less deference. I&#8217;m only a man before
-the mast on this ship, and it won&#8217;t do to be
-kowtowing to me and treating me as you do the
-Memsahib. That&#8217;s all right for <i>her</i>, Dao Singh;
-but I&#8217;m not used to it.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;It is as the Sahib pleases,&#8221; he replied,
-gravely. &#8220;He has but to command.&#8221;</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_163">[163]</span>I began to wonder if a Hindoo, who was so
-enthusiastically my friend, might not prove to
-be something of a nuisance in the end!</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_164">[164]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak"><span class="smcap">Chapter XIX</span></h2>
-
-
-<p class="ph1"><i>In Which I Learn Something More About the
-Barney Twins</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p>The captain allowed Singh to wait upon his
-&#8220;Missee&#8221; to his heart&#8217;s content, and I heard
-the two mates laughing over the fact that the
-Hindoo insisted upon acting as steward and
-waiting upon the Captain Sahib at table. The
-Old Man wasn&#8217;t used to having a man standing
-behind his chair at meals and it near took his
-appetite away at first. But Phillis being in the
-cabin and soon taking her meals at the first
-table, pleased the officers immensely, I could see.</p>
-
-<p>Forward, Singh was forever trying to do little
-things for me, and learning that I thought a good
-deal of Thankful Polk, the Hindoo included my
-chum in his voluntary services. He looked over
-our clothes and mended them, and insisted upon
-doing our washing.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;That Jasper is just as handy as any house-broke
-nigger I ever saw,&#8221; declared Thank.
-&#8220;My folks owned slaves before the war; but I<span class="pagenum" id="Page_165">[165]</span>
-don&#8217;t know but being waited on by one is going
-to be too rich for my blood.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Thank saw no difference between a Hindoo
-and a Negro; anything off color was a &#8220;Jasper&#8221;
-to him. But it tickled him when Singh called
-him &#8220;Polk Sahib.&#8221; With the other hands he
-was never familiar; but nobody save Bob
-Promise treated him unkindly. Bob was a
-bully, and that mean streak in him was bound
-to show on the surface every once in awhile.</p>
-
-<p>Meantime the old Gullwing was snoring away
-up the coast of South America. Not that the
-land was in sight, for we were miles and miles off
-shore; but the course she followed was parallel
-to the coast. The Seamew was not sighted for
-days at a stretch, and we did not know whether
-she was ahead of us or astern. I had an idea,
-however, that during the favorable weather she
-was walking away from us at a pretty lively gait.</p>
-
-<p>Since I had returned from my sojourn aboard
-the Seamew I thought that Mr. Barney treated
-me differently. That is, when we were off duty
-and chance threw us together. Before my accident
-I had put on the gloves with him on several
-occasions, and he had been kind enough to say
-that I was as good a sparring partner as he had
-ever had. We took up this exercise again, as
-the weather remained so favorable.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_166">[166]</span>He was curious about the attitude of the
-Seamew&#8217;s company toward us, and whether
-they were as eager to win the race to Baltimore
-as were the men aboard the Gullwing.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;More so,&#8221; I told him. &#8220;They mean to beat
-us if they can&mdash;from Cap&#8217;n Somes all down the
-line.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>He threw off the gloves and said, with a side
-glance at me:</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;My brother, too?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Yes, <i>sir</i>.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Just as eager as the others?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Just as eager, sir.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>He was silent a moment, as I got into my shirt,
-and then he shot at me:</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;What did you think of my brother, Alf
-Webb?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>I was rather taken aback for a moment. Then
-I saw that he expected a straight answer and I
-did not like to say that I did not like Mr. Alf
-as well as I did him. So I stammered:</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I&mdash;I thought there was something troubling
-Mr. Alfred&#8217;s mind.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Aye?&#8221; returned Mr. Barney, cocking his
-eye. &#8220;There&#8217;s something troubling both our
-minds, I reckon.&#8221; And then, after a moment&#8217;s
-silence, he asked: &#8220;Will the Seamew beat us,
-Webb?&#8221;</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_167">[167]</span>&#8220;I hope not!&#8221; I cried. &#8220;But the spirit
-among the crew of the Seamew is different from
-ours. Cap&#8217;n Somes would take any advantage
-he could to beat us; so would Mr. Hollister
-and&mdash;and&mdash;&mdash;&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;And my brother?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I&mdash;I am afraid so. That is the way it impressed
-me,&#8221; I admitted.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Alf didn&#8217;t use to be like that,&#8221; said Mr.
-Barney, gravely. &#8220;But he and I have been at
-outs for some time. It&#8217;s a bad, bad affair,&#8221; he
-added, more to himself than to me. &#8220;And it&#8217;s
-Uncle Jothan&#8217;s fault. Confound that old man,
-anyway!&#8221; he completed, with a good deal of
-emphasis.</p>
-
-<p>Then it was just as Job Perkins had told me!
-The rivalry between the Barney twins was
-fostered by their rich uncle. I had no comment
-to make&mdash;it wasn&#8217;t my place. But Mr. Barney
-seemed to wish to talk to somebody, and perhaps
-because I was so near his own age (he could not
-have been twenty-three yet) and came from
-people who were more like his own class, he
-warmed toward me for the moment. Perhaps,
-too, I am a sympathetic listener.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Alf and I,&#8221; said Mr. Barney, thoughtfully,
-&#8220;have always been more than brothers. We&#8217;ve
-been <i>friends</i>. There&#8217;s a difference. We understand<span class="pagenum" id="Page_168">[168]</span>
-each other fully&mdash;or always have until
-now. I never had any other chum, nor did he.
-We have been just as close to each other all our
-lives as the day we were born.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I guess we had to be,&#8221; he added, thoughtfully.
-&#8220;There wasn&#8217;t anybody else for us to
-get close to. Our mother died soon after we
-were born. Father was lost in that old leaky
-bucket belonging to the firm, the Timothy K.&mdash;named
-after T. K. Knight, who used to be head
-of Barney, Blakesley &amp; Knight before Uncle
-Jothan worked up in the firm.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;And that&#8217;s what makes the old man so crazy
-now. He wants a Barney to take his place so
-that another Knight won&#8217;t boss things. He&#8217;s
-nutty on it&mdash;that&#8217;s what he is!</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Uncle Jothan has had the care of us since
-we were small, you see. It&#8217;s nothing to his
-credit, however. Father left some property&mdash;sufficient
-to give Alf and me our education and
-set us out into the world with a little something
-to rattle in our pants&#8217; pockets besides a bunch of
-keys!</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Old Uncle Jothan tried to set us boys at
-each other long ago. He tried his best to set
-one off against the other&mdash;to make Alf sore on
-me, or me sore on Alf. We didn&#8217;t see what he
-was getting at, at first.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_169">[169]</span>&#8220;But he didn&#8217;t succeed very well. He made
-his favor, and his money, and his influence an
-object for us to struggle for. As it happened,
-we just wouldn&#8217;t struggle. We would not be
-rivals. What one had, t&#8217;other had. And that
-satisfied us&mdash;until last year,&#8221; and Mr. Barney
-shook his head dolefully.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;When we got our tickets the old man was
-crazy to find out if one of us passed better than
-another. We were about equal, I reckon.
-What one knows about seamanship, the other
-knows. In navigation I&#8217;m sure we stood equal.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;That didn&#8217;t satisfy Uncle Jothan. The
-last day we saw Baltimore he had us to breakfast
-with him. He was more ornery that morning
-than ever before.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;&#8216;You two boys make me sick!&#8217; he said to us.
-&#8216;I believe you try your blamedest to keep even
-in everything.&#8217;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;&#8216;And what if we do?&#8217; I asked him. &#8216;Ain&#8217;t
-that as it should be? We&#8217;re twins.&#8217;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;&#8216;You&#8217;re a pair of twin fools,&#8217; says he, with
-his usual politeness. &#8216;One of you don&#8217;t know
-which side of his slice of bread the butter&#8217;s on.&#8217;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I looked at mine. &#8216;The top side,&#8217; I says,
-&#8216;so far,&#8217; and Alf laughed.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;&#8216;And you&#8217;ll find it butter side down, if
-you don&#8217;t have a care,&#8217; snarled Uncle Jothan.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_170">[170]</span>
-&#8216;I got about tired of waiting for one of you to
-show some sense. I tell you there&#8217;s only room
-for one of you in the firm, and that one is going
-to handle my money. The other is going to be
-a poor man all his life.&#8217;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;&#8216;Which one&#8217;s going to be poor, and which
-one rich?&#8217; Alf asked him.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;&#8216;You might as well tell us which will be
-rich, Uncle,&#8217; I said, laughing. &#8216;For if it&#8217;s Alf,
-then I can begin to borrow from him right now.&#8217;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;&#8216;That&#8217;s right,&#8217; says Brother Alf. &#8216;What&#8217;s
-mine is yours.&#8217;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;That really made the old man mad, I expect.
-He pretty near gnashed his teeth.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;&#8216;I believe I&#8217;ve got a pair of totally condemned
-fools for nephews!&#8217; he yelled, only he
-put it even stronger.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Oh, he was mad! I saw that we&#8217;d gone too
-far with him.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;&#8216;Never mind, Uncle,&#8217; I said, soothingly.
-&#8216;We&#8217;ll both do our best for you&mdash;&mdash;&#8217;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;&#8216;And your &#8220;best&#8221; will be just exactly
-alike,&#8217; he cried. &#8216;When you get your mate&#8217;s
-tickets it will be the same, and in the end I&#8217;ll
-have a couple of masters of windjammers as
-near alike as old Somes and Bowditch. What
-one can do the other can do. Ye stood just the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_171">[171]</span>
-same in your books at school, and you stand
-just the same in your rating at sea.&#8217;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I expect the old man was pretty well heated
-up. But we just laughed as though it was a
-joke.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;&#8216;I tell you what,&#8217; says he, pushing back his
-chair. &#8216;You sha&#8217;n&#8217;t fool me no more. One of
-you is going to take his place in the firm at the
-end of this v&#8217;yge you are beginning. One of
-you will win and the other will lose. And I&#8217;ll
-never let a penny of my money get into the
-hands of the fellow that loses.&#8217;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Oh, he was quite in earnest, we could see.
-Alf looked at me and shook his head. It was
-past laughing at.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;&#8216;The Gullwing and the Seamew,&#8217; says uncle,
-&#8216;are putting to sea on the same day. They will
-practically make the same voyage. Now listen
-to me! Whichever of you boys steps ashore at
-Baltimore at the end of the voyage, that boy will
-be my heir, and the other sha&#8217;n&#8217;t have a cent.
-Now, that&#8217;s final. One of you has got to win,
-whether you want to, or not. I&#8217;ll settle it
-myself.&#8217;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;And with that he walked off and left us, too
-mad to even bid us good-bye,&#8221; said Mr. Barney.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_172">[172]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak"><span class="smcap">Chapter XX</span></h2>
-
-
-<p class="ph1"><i>In Which Phillis Tells Me of Her Dream</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p>I thought Mr. Barney had finished his story,
-he was so long silent. I saw, however, that he
-was still thinking of his brother, and I was not
-sure whether he was expecting a word of sympathy,
-or not. I reckoned he had been talking
-more to relieve his mind than for any other purpose.
-And finally he went on with it:</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Alf and I talked it over as we walked down
-to the docks. I told him I was sick of Uncle
-Jothan&#8217;s nagging. I wished he&#8217;d pick the one
-he wanted and close the discussion. I believed
-the price we&#8217;d have to pay for his money was
-too great, anyway.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;&#8216;But money&#8217;s a good thing,&#8217; says Alf. &#8216;And
-Uncle Jothan has got a good deal of it.&#8217;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;&#8216;I believe too much money spoils folks,
-Alf,&#8217; says I.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;&#8216;We could stand some spoiling,&#8217; he returns,
-laughing.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;&#8216;Look at uncle himself,&#8217; says I. &#8216;He&#8217;s
-spoiled.&#8217;</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_173">[173]</span>&#8220;&#8216;I&#8217;m not afraid of being spoiled by it,&#8217; says
-Alf.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;&#8216;I believe it would hurt you as quick as anybody,&#8217;
-I told him. And that riled him, though I
-had no thought that it would.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;&#8216;Speak for yourself, Jim,&#8217; says he. &#8216;Money&#8217;s
-worth going after.&#8217;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;&#8216;We&#8217;ve had everything equal so far, Alf,&#8217;
-says I. &#8216;I&#8217;m not hungry for his money.&#8217;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;&#8216;And I suppose you think I am?&#8217; and then
-I saw he <i>was</i> miffed.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;&#8216;The one that tries to get the best of the
-other for the sake of Uncle Jothan&#8217;s money, will
-show he&#8217;s hungry,&#8217; I said.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;&#8216;Then call it what you like, Jim!&#8217; he cries.
-&#8216;I&#8217;m going after it.&#8217;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;&#8216;How?&#8217; says I.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;&#8216;I&#8217;m going to beat you back to Baltimore,&#8217;
-says he.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;&#8216;I&#8217;ll be hard to beat,&#8217; I told him.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;&#8216;Wait and see!&#8217; cried Alf, and with that he
-flung off from me and went his way to the
-Seamew alone.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I had to do an errand. When I got aboard
-the Gullwing the two schooners were just about
-to pull out. It was then old Cap&#8217;n Si made his
-bet with Cap&#8217;n Joe. I believe Alf put him up
-to it. When I saw Alf in Buenos Ayres I told<span class="pagenum" id="Page_174">[174]</span>
-him so, and he didn&#8217;t deny it,&#8221; said Mr. Barney,
-sorrowfully.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;When we met in the other ports we had
-words. I&#8217;m blamed sorry now, but it&#8217;s too late
-to patch it up. I&#8217;ll tell you honest, Webb, I
-don&#8217;t care who gets Uncle Jothan&#8217;s money and
-the job with the firm; but I&#8217;m going to not let
-Alf beat me to Baltimore if I can help it.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>He went aft then without another word; but
-I did a good deal of thinking about the friction
-between the two Barneys. Privately I liked
-Mr. Jim Barney the better of the two; but it
-was a wicked shame that the head of Barney,
-Blakesley &amp; Knight should have set the twins
-by their ears in this way. Money was at the
-root of the trouble. Mr. Jothan Barney seemed
-about to devote his wealth to as bad a cause as
-my grandfather had tried to devote <i>his</i> property.</p>
-
-<p>The Gullwing struck a streak of headwinds
-soon after this and we wallowed along without
-making much headway. That made us all feel
-pretty sure. It was a chance that the Seamew
-might have forged so far ahead of us that she
-had escaped these contrary winds entirely.</p>
-
-<p>Captain Bowditch was on deck almost all the
-time. His better seamanship began to be displayed
-now. He took advantage of every flaw
-in the wind. He had us making sail, and reefing<span class="pagenum" id="Page_175">[175]</span>
-down, most of the time, and Bob Promise
-grumbled that we topmen had better stay up
-there in the rigging all the time, and have our
-meals brought to us by the cook.</p>
-
-<p>We saw nothing of the Seamew, and that
-added to our anxiety, too. Days passed and we
-crossed the line, under the heat of a tropical
-sun that fairly stewed the pitch out of the deck
-planks. Dao Singh seemed the only person
-aboard that accepted the heat with good temper.</p>
-
-<p>We rigged an awning for our passenger, and
-Phillis lived under it both day and night. She
-was getting plump and hearty, however; surely
-the voyage was doing her no harm. And she was
-the sweetest tempered, jolliest little thing one
-could imagine. It cheered a fellow up and
-made him ashamed to be grouchy, just to be
-near her.</p>
-
-<p>She liked Thankful Polk, and he amused her
-by the hour. The officers were pretty easy on
-Thank and I as long as we were with her. To
-me she clung as though I really was her brother&mdash;and
-I was proud that she so favored me.</p>
-
-<p>Phillis told me much of her life in India&mdash;as
-far back as she could remember it. She had
-come out from England when she was very
-small. On her last birthday she had been
-twelve. But little that she could tell me would<span class="pagenum" id="Page_176">[176]</span>
-help in finding her relatives&mdash;if she had any.</p>
-
-<p>Her father, Captain Erskin Duane, had not
-been in active service. Not as far as she knew,
-at least. He had been an invalid for months;
-but had died very suddenly. There seemed to
-have been few army friends, and the people she
-had sailed with from Calcutta she had hardly
-ever seen before the captain&#8217;s death.</p>
-
-<p>I had tried pumping Dao Singh about the
-private history of the little girl; but either he
-knew nothing about the captain&#8217;s affairs, or he
-would not tell me. He was as simple, apparently,
-as a child about his own expectations.
-He had insisted upon accompanying the little
-Memsahib in her voyage &#8220;because she needed
-him.&#8221; <i>Why</i> he thought she needed him he
-could not, or would not, explain.</p>
-
-<p>For my part I told Phillis everything about
-myself, and recounted, from time to time, all
-the adventures through which I had been since
-leaving Bolderhead. I told her much about my
-mother, too, and about Darringford House, and
-our summer home on Bolderhead Neck.</p>
-
-<p>I assured her that I should take her at once
-to my mother when we landed and that I knew
-my mother would be delighted to give her a
-home with us. This seemed to please the little
-girl greatly.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_177">[177]</span>&#8220;Then we shall really be brother and sister,
-sha&#8217;n&#8217;t we?&#8221; she cried.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Of course,&#8221; I said.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;That will be splendid! For, do you know,
-Clinton, I think you are the very nicest brother
-I could have picked out. You are just as nice
-as I dreamed you would be.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;There!&#8221; said I. &#8220;You have said that before.
-How do you mean, that you <i>dreamed</i> about me?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;So I did. Only it was a dream that came
-true.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;You mean that you dreamed of me when you
-were aboard that boat?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Oh, no! it was long before that. It was
-soon after we left Calcutta that I saw you,&#8221;
-she said, confidently.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Why, Philly!&#8221; I exclaimed. &#8220;That&#8217;s impossible,
-you know.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;But I <i>did</i> dream about you,&#8221; she returned,
-seriously. &#8220;I knew that I was in a little boat.
-I thought I was all alone on the great ocean.
-And I was frightened, and sick&mdash;just as I <i>was</i>
-frightened and sick when the time came. But
-you came to me, and told me you would save
-me, and you held me in your arms just as you
-<i>did</i> hold me afterward all the way to this ship.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>She was so positive that she had dreamed it
-all before, that I saw it was no use to gainsay it.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_178">[178]</span>
-And then, why should I contradict her? Perhaps
-she had had some secret and wonderful assurance
-that she would be saved from the wreck.
-I did not understand the clairvoyant part of it,
-or whatever it might be; so I did not touch upon
-the subject again.</p>
-
-<p>It was after that that the great gale struck us
-and the staunch Gullwing was battered continually
-for a week. We ran almost under bare
-poles for a time, and fortunately the gale favored
-us. But we lost our mizzen topmast completely
-and some of our other rigging was
-wrecked.</p>
-
-<p>Phillis had to remain below during this storm,
-and she was sick again. She cried so for me
-that the captain&mdash;kind old man that he was&mdash;let
-me go down to her whenever I could be
-spared from the deck. The child seemed to
-feel that she was perfectly safe if I was with
-her.</p>
-
-<p>Her constant trust in me made a strong impression
-upon my mind. Nor was it an unpleasant
-impression. Nobody had ever leaned
-before on me as this child did&mdash;not even my
-mother. It made me feel more manly and put
-me on my very best behavior.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_179">[179]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak"><span class="smcap">Chapter XXI</span></h2>
-
-
-<p class="ph1"><i>In Which the Sister Ships Once More Race
-Neck to Neck</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p>That gale hit the Gullwing harder than any
-blow she had been through (so Mr. Barney said)
-since she had left Baltimore. We could not do
-much toward making repairs until the gale had
-blown out; we only cleared away the wreckage
-aloft, reefed everything snug, and let her drive.</p>
-
-<p>Captain Bowditch worried like an old hen
-with a mess of ducklings. I don&#8217;t know when
-the old man slept. He was on deck every moment
-of his own watch, and I could hear him
-often roaring orders during our watch below.</p>
-
-<p>This was the time when the fact that the
-Gullwing was short-handed made the crew groan.
-It was up and down at all hours for us. If
-there was a lull in the gale we were yanked out
-and sent aloft to risk an inch more canvas.
-Cap&#8217;n Joe coaxed her along every chance he
-saw. The thought of getting ahead of the Seamew
-obsessed the Old Man&#8217;s mind while he <i>was</i>
-awake, that was sure!</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_180">[180]</span>We discussed our chances forward with much
-eagerness, too. The Seamew had left us behind
-during the fair weather; we could make up our
-minds to that. But now we had a better chance.
-The Gullwing was better worked, short of hands
-as she was, than the Seamew.</p>
-
-<p>I remembered vividly how Cap&#8217;n Si Somes
-hopped about, and bawled orders, and seemed to
-get in his own way when a squall came up, or
-the weather was unfavorable. He was a more
-nervous man that our skipper; and, I believed,
-he was nowhere near so good a seaman. At
-least, I had got that idea in my head, and comparing
-the actions of the two skippers in a squall,
-I guessed any unprejudiced person would have
-accepted my view as correct.</p>
-
-<p>We came out of this blow at last, fair weather
-returned, and Phillis had her awning re-rigged,
-and was able to come on deck again, although
-the Atlantic billows were tumbling heavily.</p>
-
-<p>All hands were busy on the new rigging. The
-captain had got up a spare spar and Old Tom
-Thornton and Stronson, went to work on that.
-The captain was determined to get up a new
-mizzen topmast and bend on new sails. Every
-square inch of canvas spread to the favoring
-breeze would aid us in the race home.</p>
-
-<p>We had gotten now into the greatest ocean<span class="pagenum" id="Page_181">[181]</span>
-current in the world&mdash;the Gulf Stream. Ocean
-currents are mysterious phenomena. The source
-of energy required to set and keep the vast
-masses of water in motion has been productive of
-endless discussion.</p>
-
-<p>Temperature, barometric pressure, attractive
-force of the moon, have all been advanced as
-bringing about ocean currents. Seamen believe
-that it is the wind that brings about certain
-oceanic movements. But the winds do not explain
-the reason entirely&mdash;not even in any single
-case. As to the direct action of the wind on the
-surface of the sea alone, it has been shown that
-with a wind blowing at twenty-five miles an
-hour the surface water would have a movement
-of not more than fifteen miles in the twenty-four
-hours! The Gulf Stream is the greatest of the
-Atlantic currents, if not the greatest current on
-the wet portion of the globe. It is really a
-wonderful river&mdash;a river flowing through an
-ocean. Its temperature is different from the
-surrounding waters, it is of a different color, and
-the edge of it can be noted almost exactly wherever
-a ship crosses into or out of the Gulf Stream.</p>
-
-<p>This warm current starts between the coast of
-Cuba and the Florida reefs, and certainly with
-this mighty current the wind has absolutely
-nothing to do. The force of the current is at<span class="pagenum" id="Page_182">[182]</span>
-its maximum strength when it emerges from the
-Bemimi Straits, between the Bahama Bank on
-the east and the coast of Florida on the West.
-Between Fowey Rocks and Gun Gay Light the
-average depth of the Gulf Stream is 239 fathoms,
-and it runs at a speed of fifty miles in the
-twenty-four hours. Occasionally, under particular
-circumstances, it will speed up to a hundred
-miles in the twenty-four hours. Little
-wonder that homeward bound windjammers are
-glad to strike the Gulf Stream. After we
-crossed into the clear azure of that current there
-was a steady tug on the Gullwing&#8217;s prow.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;The women-folks are pullin&#8217; her home with
-their apron strings,&#8221; chuckled Captain Bowditch.</p>
-
-<p>I rigged fishing tackle for Phillis and she
-caught some of the smaller fish of the Gulf
-Stream&mdash;fish which cannot be caught in the
-waters even a short distance outside of the line
-of the current. They were brilliant trunk-fish,
-and angel-fish, and the like; not edible, but
-interesting to look at.</p>
-
-<p>Shark were plentiful, too, and followed the
-ship like dogs, to fight for the scraps the cook
-flung overboard. Thank got a big hook and
-about a pound of fat pork (he could wheedle<span class="pagenum" id="Page_183">[183]</span>
-anything out of the black cook) bent on a strong
-line, and we trolled for shark.</p>
-
-<p>We caught one about eight foot long; he was
-an ugly beast, and fought like a tiger when we
-got him onto the deck. He would snap at a
-broomstick and bite it through as neatly as we
-could have cut it with an axe. A sailor hates a
-shark just as the ordinary man ashore dislikes a
-snake.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I tell you what we&#8217;ll do with him,&#8221; said Bob
-Promise, chuckling. &#8220;I seen it done on the old
-Beatrix two years ago. We &#8216;belled the cat&#8217; with
-an old he shark, and it&#8217;s an all right trick to play
-on the dirty critters.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;How d&#8217;ye do it?&#8221; asked Tom Thornton.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Lemme have that broken broomstick,&#8221; said
-Bob, grabbing it. &#8220;Now watch&mdash;when he snaps
-at me.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>The huge fish, lying on its side, with its wicked
-eye watchful of us all, opened wide his jaws when
-Bob Promise approached. The bully was a
-reckless fellow, and as the shark snapped open
-his jaws he thrust his hand and arm into the
-cavity and thrust the stick upright, far back in
-the beast&#8217;s throat.</p>
-
-<p>Thank actually screamed aloud, and I felt
-sick&mdash;I thought sure the foolish fellow&#8217;s arm
-would be snapped off between the closing jaws.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_184">[184]</span>But the shark couldn&#8217;t close his jaws! That
-was the trick of it. The stick was thrust upright,
-sticking into the roof of the great mouth
-and into the root of the tongue. The fish was
-&#8220;belled&#8221; indeed.</p>
-
-<p>There it writhed upon the deck, thrashing its
-strong tail about, its wicked eyes rolling, and
-evidently in awful agony.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Now pitch him overboard,&#8221; laughed Bob
-Promise. &#8220;He&#8217;ll live some time that way&mdash;mebbe
-till he starves to death or until some of
-the smaller fish pitch upon him and eat his liver
-out. Ugh! the ugly beast!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Somebody took a turn of the rope around the
-fish&#8217;s tail and in a moment the shark was swung
-up by the falls we had rigged. But while he
-hung in the air and was about to be swung over
-the rail, Phillis ran up to us.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Don&#8217;t!&#8221; she cried. &#8220;Don&#8217;t do it! I saw you!
-How could you be so dreadfully mean&mdash;Oh!
-Clint! how could <i>you</i> do such a cruel thing?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>I had been thinking all the time that it was a
-blamed mean piece of business; but I hadn&#8217;t
-had the pluck to say so!</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;You stand away, Missee,&#8221; laughed Bob.
-&#8220;He&#8217;s all right. Overboard he goes&mdash;plop into
-the sea&mdash;and it will be one murderin&#8217; old shark
-fixed jest right.&#8221;</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_185">[185]</span>&#8220;You shall not do it!&#8221; she cried, and she was
-so earnest and excited that she stamped her little
-foot upon the deck. &#8220;It is wicked and cruel.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Why, it ain&#8217;t nothin&#8217; but an old shark,
-Missee,&#8221; growled Tom Thornton. &#8220;He ain&#8217;t
-fit for nothing better.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;He&#8217;s God&#8217;s creature. God made him,&#8221; declared
-the child. &#8220;You&#8217;ve no right to maltreat
-him. It&#8217;s wicked. I won&#8217;t have it.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>She was so excited I was afraid she would get
-sick. I put in <i>my</i> oar:</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;That&#8217;s all right, Philly. None of us stopped
-to think of that side of it. Lower away here,
-boys, and we&#8217;ll knock that prop out of his
-mouth again.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;No you won&#8217;t!&#8221; exclaimed Bob Promise.</p>
-
-<p>I stopped and looked at him. &#8220;Why, sure,
-Bob, you don&#8217;t mind. If the little girl doesn&#8217;t
-want us to do it&mdash;&mdash;&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Stow that,&#8221; said Bob, in his very ugliest
-tone. &#8220;That shark ain&#8217;t hers. I put that stick
-there. I want to see the man that&#8217;ll pull it
-out,&#8221; and he swelled up like a turkey-cock and
-acted as though he thought he was the biggest
-man who ever stepped on the Gullwing&#8217;s deck.</p>
-
-<p>But if he had been twice as big I reckon I
-should have stepped up to him! To have anybody
-speak before Phillis as he did was not to be<span class="pagenum" id="Page_186">[186]</span>
-endured. Thankful Polk flamed up, too, until
-you could have touched off a match on his face.
-Old Tom Thornton reached an arm across and
-put me back as lightly as though I had been a
-feather, and seized the rope above Bob&#8217;s hand.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Drop it, you landcrab!&#8221; he growled. Old
-Tom seldom got angry; when he did we knew
-enough to stand from under!</p>
-
-<p>And then appeared Dao Singh. How he had
-heard the racket I do not know. Light as a
-panther, and with an eye wickeder than the
-shark&#8217;s own, he slid along the deck and stood
-right at the other elbow of the bully.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Let the rope go, as Webb Sahib say,&#8221; he
-hissed into Bob&#8217;s ear.</p>
-
-<p>The bully was as amazed as he could well be
-and keep on his pins. He stepped back and
-glared from Thank and me to Old Tom, and then
-around at Singh.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Holy mackerel!&#8221; he murmured. &#8220;Do the
-hull of ye&#8217;s want the blamed fish? Then, take
-him!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>The watch burst out laughing. Mr. Barney
-had himself come forward, and now he spoke.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Get a harpoon, Webb, and kill the beast at
-once. That will settle the controversy. I&#8217;m
-not sure that the little one isn&#8217;t right. We&#8217;re
-all too big to torture even such a beast as a shark.&#8221;</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_187">[187]</span>That was the kind of influence Phillis Duane
-had over all of us. The captain had her on the
-bridge with him and showed her everything he
-did when he took the sun&#8217;s altitude, and all
-that. Mr. Gates talked with her by the hour.
-Mr. Barney was forever finding something new
-with which she could amuse herself. And the
-black cook and Dao Singh almost came to blows
-over who should wait upon her the most.</p>
-
-<p>Then came the day when, off Hatteras, we
-sighted another four-masted ship. She crept
-out of a fogbank to leeward of us and it was
-some time before we saw her clearly enough to be
-sure. That she was tacking northward was the
-main fact at first which urged us to believe it
-was our sister ship.</p>
-
-<p>But in an hour it came clearer, and we could
-be sure. It was the Seamew, standing in very
-prettily, and it was plain she had sighted us,
-too. We tacked and her course brought her
-across our stern. We ran so near the captains
-could hail each other. Old Cap&#8217;n Si waved his
-glass and shouted:</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;We&#8217;re about to bid you a fond farewell, Joe!
-Next tack will put us ahead of you. That
-apple&#8217;s mine, by jolly!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Seems to me if I had such a great craft as
-the Seamew, I&#8217;d have got farther ahead than you<span class="pagenum" id="Page_188">[188]</span>
-be now,&#8221; returned our skipper, with scorn. &#8220;I
-reckon the race ain&#8217;t over yet.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;It&#8217;s pretty near over. We got good weather
-comin&#8217;. The Seamew can walk away with you
-in a fair wind.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;All right. Brag&#8217;s a good dog, but Holdfast&#8217;s
-a better one,&#8221; said Cap&#8217;n Joe. &#8220;Wait till we
-sight the Capes o&#8217; Virginia.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>She was too far away from us then for Cap&#8217;n
-Si to shout again. The rest of us had grinned
-or scowled at the men aboard the Seamew, as
-our natures dictated. I had noticed that the
-boat found adrift with Singh and Phillis in it,
-had been hoisted aboard the Seamew and was
-lashed amidships.</p>
-
-<p>Away we went on our tack, came about, and
-again neared our rival. The Seamew was not
-pulling away from us much; the wind was heavy.
-The Gullwing crept up on her and, finally, when
-the Seamew tacked again, we did the same and
-she had no chance to cross our bows, even had
-she been able to.</p>
-
-<p>So we sailed, neck and neck, not half a mile
-from each other, both ships plunging through the
-swells with a line of white foam under their
-quarters, and well heeled over to the wind.
-Whichever won the race&mdash;whether the Gullwing
-or the Seamew&mdash;it would be a good fight.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_189">[189]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak"><span class="smcap">Chapter XXII</span></h2>
-
-
-<p class="ph1"><i>In Which the Capes of Virginia Are In Sight</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p>We had a stiff wind blowing&mdash;half a gale, indeed&mdash;and
-when we raised other sailing ships,
-their canvas was clewed down and some of them
-were running under little more than stormsails.
-But neither the captain of the Seamew nor of the
-Gullwing had any intention of losing a breath of
-such a favorable breeze.</p>
-
-<p>Our ship heeled over until her rail was under
-water; and she was laden so heavily that this
-sort of sailing was perilous. Suppose some of
-the cargo should shift? Where would we be?
-Well, just about there, I guess!</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Some day the old man will carry the sticks out
-of her completely,&#8221; growled Mr. Gates to Mr.
-Barney.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Well, let him!&#8221; exclaimed the second mate.
-&#8220;We&#8217;ve got to win this time.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;What for?&#8221; I heard the other ask, curiously.
-&#8220;Just so Cap&#8217;n Joe will win his greening apple?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Barney cursed the captain and his apple.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;You want us to win anyway, eh?&#8221; pursued<span class="pagenum" id="Page_190">[190]</span>
-Mr. Gates, in his slow, thoughtful way. &#8220;No
-matter what happens to the Gullwing?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;She&#8217;s insured; so&#8217;s her freight,&#8221; snapped Mr.
-Barney.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;It doesn&#8217;t matter if both good ships should
-founder and be lost?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I don&#8217;t give a hang!&#8221; exclaimed the younger
-man, bitterly, &#8220;as long as the Gullwing goes
-down fifty fathoms nearer Baltimore than the
-Seamew.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;And how about the crews?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Who&#8217;s thinking of men&mdash;or ships&mdash;just
-now?&#8221; demanded Mr. Barney. &#8220;Aren&#8217;t both
-captains risking lives and property for a silly
-competition? I&#8217;m no worse than they are.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;And so, the rivalry of Cap&#8217;n Joe and Cap&#8217;n
-Si will excuse your own mad determination to
-get to port first?&#8221; suggested Mr. Gates, quietly.
-&#8220;I don&#8217;t believe you&#8217;ll feel that way, young
-man, twelve months from now. And how about
-the little girl?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Pshaw! there&#8217;s no danger,&#8221; said Mr. Barney,
-lightly.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I hope there will be no danger&mdash;no more than
-there is now, at least,&#8221; said the mate, significantly.
-Then he saw me on lookout and said,
-irritably: &#8220;Come away! This is no place to
-talk.&#8221;</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_191">[191]</span>I wondered what the mate thought Mr.
-Barney would do for the sake of helping the
-Gullwing to win the race; but I heard nothing
-more of their conversation. This occurred in
-the evening when we could just see the ghostly
-sails of the Seamew as she stood on for us. Mr.
-Barney soon after took the wheel himself, it
-being the captain&#8217;s watch. From that point on
-to the end the second mate was more frequently
-at the wheel than at any previous time during
-the cruise.</p>
-
-<p>Day and night the two huge schooners ran
-almost even. Our skipper was seldom off the
-deck. I don&#8217;t know when he found time to
-sleep. He never lost a chance to make the most
-of a puff of wind. The men worked for him
-eagerly and well; but they stood double watches.</p>
-
-<p>Some of the small sails Cap&#8217;n Joe even had us
-dip overboard so that, well wetted, they would
-better hold the wind. It was four bells in the
-morning watch when the Seamew crossed our
-bow. She had been trying for it for twenty-four
-hours, or more. And when she cut us off and
-we had to take her white water, a groan of derision
-was raised by her crew.</p>
-
-<p>We were sore&mdash;every man Jack of us. Cap&#8217;n
-Joe and Cap&#8217;n Si had it hot and heavy from their
-respective stations.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_192">[192]</span>&#8220;Better give us a line aboard so&#8217;t we can tow
-ye in, Joe!&#8221; bawled Cap&#8217;n Si.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;You air mighty willin&#8217; to give a helpin&#8217;
-hand jest now, Si,&#8221; returned our skipper, with
-scorn. &#8220;But it warn&#8217;t allus so.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>I saw Mr. Alf Barney at the Seamew&#8217;s wheel.
-He handled the ship splendidly. When the
-Seamew came about on the other tack, her helmsman
-met the waves just right and swung her
-over so that the sails scarcely shook at all. She
-reared up on one tack, turned as it were on her
-heel, and swept away on the other tack at a
-speed that sent the spray flying high above her
-rail. It was a pretty sight.</p>
-
-<p>Our Mr. Barney stood right beside me as I
-manipulated the Gullwing&#8217;s helm. He watched
-the handling of our rival with lowering brow.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Gimme that wheel!&#8221; he snapped, pushing
-me away and seizing the spokes. The Gullwing
-was right in the eye of the wind. Cap&#8217;n Bowditch
-was shouting his orders. If the Seamew
-had rounded prettily, the Gullwing went her one
-better. We wasted less time hanging in the
-wind than the Seamew.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;That&#8217;s the way to do it!&#8221; bawled our skipper,
-dancing on the quarter. &#8220;By jinks, Mr. Barney,
-you handled that wheel well. Keep her so!
-Steady.&#8221;</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_193">[193]</span>The second mate let me take the wheel again
-after a minute or two; and his face had remained
-unsmiling all the time. He had merely been
-determined to show them all that he could handle
-the big ship&#8217;s helm as well in every particular as
-did his brother.</p>
-
-<p>Our course was west-northwest now to the
-Capes of Virginia. The fresh gale was out of
-the same quarter. Therefore we had to beat to
-windward all the remainder of the race, and although
-the Seamew had gotten a little the start
-of us, the Gullwing had a slight advantage.
-She handled better to windward than her sister
-ship.</p>
-
-<p>The Seamew stood off on one tack, we on the
-other. She disappeared beyond the sea line,
-but standing in some hours later we found her
-again&mdash;and finding her were pleased more than
-a little in seeing that we had made something
-up on her. Our skipper&#8217;s shrewdness was telling.</p>
-
-<p>I knew how it was with Cap&#8217;n Si; when things
-broke wrong for him he paddled about the deck,
-cursing the hands and the wind and various other
-things, altogether irrational. Whereas our skipper
-never lost a trick, kept his head, and never
-gave an order he was sorry for&mdash;and that last is
-saying a good deal.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_194">[194]</span>We filled away once more and stood back to
-her. We were making distance fast. Had we
-held on this time we should have crossed her
-wake almost under her stern. The man aloft
-suddenly sang out:</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Land, ho!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>I heard the cry repeated in the Seamew&#8217;s tops.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Cape Henry, sir!&#8221; shouted our man to the
-skipper.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Aye, aye,&#8221; said Cap&#8217;n Joe, eagerly. &#8220;And
-when we tack back again we&#8217;re going to cross
-ahead of the Seamew&#8217;s bow&mdash;and the race will be
-over.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>He said it with enormous satisfaction. He believed
-it, too.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Why will the race be over, Clint?&#8221; asked
-Phillis, who stood beside me at the moment. &#8220;I
-looked at the chart. We&#8217;re a long way yet from
-Baltimore. We are not in sight of the opening
-into Chesapeake Bay.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;There are tugs waiting up there in the roads
-for us,&#8221; I told her. &#8220;You&#8217;ll soon see their
-smoke. <i>They</i> will race out for us, as we race in
-for the port. We shall go up to Baltimore under
-steam.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>And my statement was scarcely made ere we
-saw in the far distance the pillars of smoke from
-the stacks of the ocean-going tugs. The land<span class="pagenum" id="Page_195">[195]</span>
-that had been merely a hazy line, grew more
-clearly defined, although we were not approaching
-it directly. Soon I could point out to my
-little friend the other cape guarding the mouth of
-the Chesapeake&mdash;Cape Charles.</p>
-
-<p>The tugs steamed out to meet us under forced
-draught. More quickly to get in tow of the tug
-nearest us, which was coming already hooked
-up, Cap&#8217;n Bowditch put the Gullwing about
-earlier than he had originally intended. As we
-tacked, so did the Seamew.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;She&#8217;s afraid to give us an inch,&#8221; laughed Mr.
-Barney, taking his place beside the wheel again,
-and looking up at Mr. Gates.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;It&#8217;s nip and tuck,&#8221; returned the first mate.
-Then to the skipper he said: &#8220;Shall I make
-ready to take the tug&#8217;s hawser, sir?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Right-oh!&#8221; declared Captain Bowditch.
-&#8220;And be lively with it. We&#8217;re too close to fool
-away a moment. I hope we get the fastest tug.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;She&#8217;s the Sea Horse, Cap&#8217;n!&#8221; bawled down
-the man aloft.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Smart tug, she is,&#8221; agreed the skipper.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;And I believe that&#8217;s the Comet makin&#8217; to
-meet the Seamew.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Both Norfolk Tug Company&#8217;s craft&mdash;and
-good ones. I wouldn&#8217;t give a dollar bonus either
-way on &#8217;em, would you, Mr. Gates?&#8221;</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_196">[196]</span>&#8220;They&#8217;re just as near alike as the Seamew and
-the Gullwing are alike,&#8221; agreed the mate, and
-went forward.</p>
-
-<p>We were standing in now directly for the
-channel. The Seamew was headed likewise.
-We were bound to pass close to our sister ship&mdash;so
-close that, as the moments slipped past, I
-began to feel some disturbance of mind.</p>
-
-<p>Heaven knows the ocean was broad enough;
-but the two skippers were obstinate and eager.
-One would not be likely to want to give way
-to the other. And moment after moment the
-two great ships, their canvas filled and the
-white water split in great waves from their
-prows, rushed closer and closer together.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_197">[197]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak"><span class="smcap">Chapter XXIII</span></h2>
-
-
-<p class="ph1"><i>In Which We Face Death by the Breadth of a Hair</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p>I had walked forward, anxious over the
-situation of the sister ships. Tom Thornton
-was right by my side, for Mr. Barney had taken
-the wheel himself.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;In case of doubt,&#8221; I asked Tom, &#8220;who gives
-way&mdash;the Seamew or the Gullwing?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Why, the Seamew, of course,&#8221; growled
-Tom.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Are you sure?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I be,&#8221; he said, emphatically. &#8220;No gittin&#8217;
-around it. It has to be her gives way&mdash;not us.
-Both of us are close-hauled, that&#8217;s a fact; but
-we on this tack has the right of way. The
-Seamew&#8217;s got to come about and give us the
-road.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;She don&#8217;t look like she would,&#8221; I said,
-gravely.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Of course she will!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Then she&#8217;ll miss meeting the other tug this
-time. It will give us a big advantage.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Don&#8217;t ye suppose our skipper knows that?&#8221;<span class="pagenum" id="Page_198">[198]</span>
-returned Tom, with a wide grin. &#8220;That&#8217;s
-what he aimed to do. Oh, Cap&#8217;n Joe is a
-cleaner, now I tell ye!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>It did look to me as though the two great
-ships were rushing together. If they had been
-two old-time frigates, aiming to come to a clinch
-and the crews ordered to &#8220;board with cutlass,&#8221;
-the appearance of the two could have been no
-more threatening.</p>
-
-<p>The Seamew&#8217;s men were grouped along her
-rail and swinging in her lower shrouds, watching
-us; and every person aboard the Gullwing,
-including the cook, was on deck. I heard
-Captain Bowditch growling to himself:</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;What does that lobster mean? Ain&#8217;t he
-goin&#8217; to give us no seaway?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Barney had taken the wheel of the Gullwing.
-I saw that his brother was already
-glued to the spokes of the Seamew&#8217;s wheel.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;&#8217;Ware what ye do there, Mr. Barney,&#8221;
-sang out Captain Bowditch.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Aye, aye, sir.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Keep her steady.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Aye, aye, sir.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>I caught old Tom by the sleeve of his jumper
-again.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Cap&#8217;n Si don&#8217;t mean to give way!&#8221; I
-gasped.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_199">[199]</span>&#8220;Wal,&#8221; said the old seaman, reflectively,
-&#8220;it&#8217;ll be up to him if he doesn&#8217;t.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;But&mdash;&mdash;&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;It ain&#8217;t our place to give that blamed Seamew
-the whole ocean.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;But if the Seamew <i>won&#8217;t</i> give way?&#8221; I
-repeated, vainly.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;What! Not give way! That&#8217;d be foolish,&#8221;
-growled old Tom. &#8220;A man can go bullying
-his way ashore, pushin&#8217; folks inter the gutter
-and all that, if he&#8217;s big enough&mdash;like Bob yonder.
-But a captain can&#8217;t do that at sea. He&#8217;d
-only git what&#8217;s due him. He&#8217;ll <i>have</i> to give
-way.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Yet no order was given from the Seamew&#8217;s
-quarter; nor did our skipper say a word. I
-could not believe that Captain Bowditch, even
-with the sea-law on his side, would risk his
-beautiful ship and the lives of her crew. Yet if
-the Seamew continued to run in on us much
-longer we would have to fall off, or collide with
-her.</p>
-
-<p>Little Phillis was sitting calmly under her
-awning, busied with some pieces of sewing&mdash;for
-she was a housewifely little thing. It
-struck me that an awful death was threatening
-the innocent child, and I moved toward her.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_200">[200]</span>
-Thankful Polk was working his way along the
-deck in the same direction, too.</p>
-
-<p>Captain Bowditch glanced at the child under
-the awning. If he had had any desperate
-intention of keeping on, whether or no, so as
-to pick up his tug ahead of the Seamew, I believe
-the presence of Phillis Duane restrained
-him. His hard old face changed.</p>
-
-<p>The Seamew was holding on. She was going
-to force us. The old man jumped to the
-rail and motioned with his arm for the helmsman
-of the Seamew to keep off. But Mr. Alf Barney&#8217;s
-gaze rested only on the face of his brother
-at <i>our</i> wheel; and Captain Somes never gave
-an order.</p>
-
-<p>Captain Bowditch turned and yelled:</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Keep off! keep off, I say! D&#8217;ye wanter
-wreck us?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>He started for the wheel. I do not know
-whether our Mr. Barney obeyed the order&mdash;or
-tried to obey it. The two great ships, their
-canvas bellied with the strong gale, seemed to
-sweep together as though they were magnetized!</p>
-
-<p>It may have been explained by the fact that
-we were so near each other that one took the
-wind out of the other&#8217;s sails. At least, the two
-huge ships were no longer under control.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I&#8217;m hanged if she ain&#8217;t got away from<span class="pagenum" id="Page_201">[201]</span>
-him!&#8221; I heard Tom Thornton yell; but which
-ship he meant I did not know.</p>
-
-<p>The Gullwing took a shoot. The Seamew
-took a shoot. Then the two ships clinched!</p>
-
-<p>Talk about a smash! It was the most awful
-collision one could imagine. Two express trains
-on the same track, coming head-on, could have
-made no greater explosion of sound. And it
-did seem as though no other kind of a collision
-could have resulted in so much wreckage.</p>
-
-<p>I grabbed up Phillis just before the ships
-came together, and dashed for the companionway.
-But as I gained its shelter I saw the
-spars raining from aloft on both vessels, with
-the canvas and cordage in a perfect jumble.</p>
-
-<p>It fairly shook the spars out of the Seamew.
-I believed, at the last moment, that the Gullwing
-had sheered off. At least, she had taken
-the blow on more of a slant. The wire stays
-upon our sister ship had been torn away and
-her foremast came down and hung over the
-rail a complete wreck.</p>
-
-<p>Her other masts wavered. I could see that
-she was shaking like a wounded thing; I believe
-she was settling even then. She had
-opened a great hole in her hull forward. I
-could see the ragged, splintered ends of the
-planks.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_202">[202]</span>Our own damage and peril I could not gauge
-until I had set Phillis down and rushed back to
-the deck. The old Gullwing was hobbling
-away from her sister ship. Captain Bowditch
-was bawling orders from the bridge; but I
-heard nothing but screams of rage and fear
-from the Seamew. <i>And Captain Si Somes was
-no longer in sight.</i></p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Axes, men!&#8221; roared our skipper. &#8220;Get
-aloft there! Cut away wreckage! Clew up
-everything that ain&#8217;t torn away. Look alive,
-up there, Mr. Gates.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Aye, aye, sir!&#8221; responded the mate from
-forward.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Keep her steady, Mr. Barney!&#8221; commanded
-the captain.</p>
-
-<p>I heard no response. I glanced aft as I
-worked my way up the backstays. Mr. Jim
-Barney still stood at our wheel. He hung to
-the spokes and held the ship steady. But a
-whiter face and a more miserable face I had
-never seen upon mortal man.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_203">[203]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak"><span class="smcap">Chapter XXIV</span></h2>
-
-
-<p class="ph1"><i>In Which the Tragedy of the Racing Ship Is
-Completed</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p>League upon league of the sea&mdash;across and
-again across two oceans&mdash;the sister ships had
-raced, to fall afoul of each other here almost
-within sight of port!</p>
-
-<p>While we aboard the Gullwing were cutting
-adrift the wreckage for dear life, another mast&mdash;the
-mizzen&mdash;fell across the Seamew. She was
-down dreadfully by the head. We could hear
-the roar of the water pouring into the hole
-stove in her hull.</p>
-
-<p>I knew Mr. Hollister&#8217;s voice, and he was
-shouting orders to the crew. But nobody
-heard Cap&#8217;n Si speaking; nor was he in sight.
-I knew as well then as I did afterward that,
-at the moment of the collision, the master of
-the Seamew went overboard, sank, and never
-came up again!</p>
-
-<p>Down came the aftermast of the Seamew;
-the mainmast was swaying. I reckon the crew<span class="pagenum" id="Page_204">[204]</span>
-responded to Mr. Hollister&#8217;s orders not at all.
-I heard the wail of:</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Boats! boats! take to the boats!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>But when they took another look at the
-wabbling masts, they waited to launch no
-boat. With a few words but much action the
-crew went over her rail, now almost even with
-the sea, and one after the other began to claw
-out for the Gullwing which lay to not two
-cable&#8217;s lengths away from the sinking ship.</p>
-
-<p>But Mr. Alfred Barney held to the spokes
-of her wheel; he made no offer to leave the
-Seamew, although Mate Hollister, like the men,
-was already in the sea.</p>
-
-<p>As I hacked at the steel cordage and broken
-spars I heard Captain Bowditch shouting directions
-to the men below, and to the men in
-the water. Ropes and life-buoys were flung to
-the seamen from the sinking ship. In this comparatively
-quiet sea there was little likelihood of
-any of them being drowned.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Hollister waited to see his hands drawn
-over the rail of the Gullwing before he came
-inboard himself. But while this was going on
-Captain Bowditch discovered the missing second
-mate still on the wreck.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Come away from that!&#8221; he shouted to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_205">[205]</span>
-Alfred Barney. &#8220;Come on! Jump in! We&#8217;ll
-haul you out.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>The young man made no reply, nor did he
-move from the wheel.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Come away, you fool!&#8221; roared Captain
-Bowditch.</p>
-
-<p>But Alfred Barney, like Jim Barney, seemed
-frozen to the spokes of the wheel. The thought
-in my confused mind was: <i>Had the two brothers
-deliberately wrecked the sister ships?</i></p>
-
-<p>The Gullwing had recovered from the shock
-of the collision. She was not going to sink&mdash;at
-least, not right away. All her crew were
-inboard now, and Mr. Hollister followed. Nobody
-spoke of poor Cap&#8217;n Si. We all knew
-that he was missing. But there was a great
-to-do about Alfred Barney.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;What does that etarnal fool want to stay
-over there for?&#8221; yelled Captain Joe to Mr.
-Hollister. &#8220;Is he a dummy?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;He iss <i>fey</i>,&#8221; whispered old Stronson in my
-ear.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Looks like it was his fault the ships came
-together,&#8221; said Bob Promise.</p>
-
-<p>We had descended to the deck again now.
-Our upper works were in an awful tangle; but
-we could do no more at present. The tug was<span class="pagenum" id="Page_206">[206]</span>
-steaming in near to us now and it did not matter
-if we did drift.</p>
-
-<p>All our eyes were fastened upon the Seamew.
-She was going down steadily, head-on. Already
-her bows were being lapped by the waves
-clear to the butt of the jib-boom.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Hollister sent another wailing cry across
-to the second mate at the Seamew&#8217;s wheel;
-but the figure did not move, nor did Alf Barney
-make any reply.</p>
-
-<p>Suddenly our Mr. Barney left the helm. He
-just motioned to me, and I grabbed the spokes.
-He sprang to the rail and held out both his
-arms to his brother.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Come! Alf, Alf! Come!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Then it was that Alfred Barney turned his
-head and looked across at us. His face, white
-as his brother&#8217;s had been, broke into a frosty
-smile. He raised one hand and waved it to
-his twin. And then&mdash;&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>There was a roar of sound, a rush of wind,
-a yell in chorus from all hands aboard the Gullwing,
-and the mainmast of the Seamew came
-rushing down, astern! The great spar had
-been shaken loose and it fell with all its weight
-along the deck of the laboring schooner. The
-topmast broke off and sprang into the air, along
-with a tangle of steel cable and shredded sails.</p>
-
-<p>And when that topmast struck the deck
-again it wrecked the Seamew&#8217;s wheel and
-pinioned Mr. Alfred Barney beneath its wreckage!</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_207">[207]</span>A general shout of horror arose from the Gullwing;
-but above it rang the clarion tone of
-Jim Barney&#8217;s voice:</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Boat! Boat! Launch the quarterboat!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Our men sprang to their stations; the young
-second mate gave his orders quick and sharp.
-Captain Bowditch did not gainsay him. Mr.
-Jim Barney had it all his own way.</p>
-
-<p>His crew&mdash;the same that had manned the boat
-when she had picked up the castaways&mdash;quickly
-took their places in the craft. She was lowered
-with a plop into the sea.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Give way, men!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>They bent to the oars like giants. The boat
-shot across the sea to the fast sinking Seamew.
-I held the spokes of the Gullwing&#8217;s wheel idly
-and watched. Indeed, the tug coming up to
-hook us attracted no attention from anybody
-aboard our ship at that moment.</p>
-
-<p>The Seamew was wallowing deep in the
-water now. Her head was under and her stern
-was kicking up. She was about to dive like a
-duck to the bottom.</p>
-
-<p>Suddenly the air-pressure below blew off
-her forward hatch. Instantly the waves broke
-across the deck and the water poured into the
-open hatchway.</p>
-
-<p>Swiftly and more swiftly she sank. When
-our boat came to the hulk, she presented a steep
-side for one to mount from the small boat.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Alf! Alf!&#8221; we heard our second mate yell.
-We could not hear that there was an answer<span class="pagenum" id="Page_208">[208]</span>
-from the man under the wreckage of the topmast.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Hold her in close, boys!&#8221; commanded Mr.
-Jim Barney. &#8220;Give me that boathook!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;You&#8217;ll be drowned, sir!&#8221; I heard Thankful
-Polk cry.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;She&#8217;s going down&mdash;she&#8217;ll suck us all under,&#8221;
-declared Bob Promise.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Stand by, as I tell you!&#8221; commanded the
-second mate again.</p>
-
-<p>In a moment he had fastened the boathook
-somehow, and went up hand over hand. He
-seized the rail of the sinking ship. The small
-boat backed away. I believe Bob Promise
-thrust her off with his oar.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Look out there!&#8221; bawled Captain Bowditch,
-from our poop. &#8220;You&#8217;re taking your
-life in your hand, lad!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Jim Barney merely waved his hand,
-notifying the master of the Gullwing that his
-warning had been heard. But he crawled
-right up to the stern over that wreckage. He
-did not look back once.</p>
-
-<p>And down settled the Seamew, lower and
-lower. She was under seas as far back as the
-stump of the mainmast. The water boiled
-around her. There was good reason for our
-men in the quarterboat to back off. Once
-caught in the suck of the sinking ship, our men
-and their craft would go under, too!</p>
-
-<p>I saw Mr. Jim Barney spring over a pile of
-debris. He stooped, tore away some of the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_209">[209]</span>
-wrecked stuff, and then stood up with his
-brother&#8217;s body clasped in his arms.</p>
-
-<p>For an instant I saw the white face of the
-unconscious man. There was a streak of crimson
-on his forehead. Jim Barney looked down
-into the countenance of his brother and the
-men in our quarterboat uttered in chorus a long-drawn
-cry. The Seamew was going down.</p>
-
-<p>Slowly, the eddying water seething about her
-wounded hull, the ship settled.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Jump!&#8221; shouted Cap&#8217;n Bowditch, leaning
-over the rail, his own face pallid and his eyes
-aglare.</p>
-
-<p>But that would not have saved them. Mr.
-Barney could not have leaped far enough with
-his burden to have overcome the suck of the
-maelstrom forming about the wreck. And it
-was right for the men in the small boat to sheer
-off.</p>
-
-<p>The wreck slid under the surface. Almost
-the last thing we saw was Mr. Barney, holding
-his burden in his arms, his own face still bent
-above the unconscious countenance of his
-brother.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_210">[210]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak"><span class="smcap">Chapter XXV</span></h2>
-
-
-<p class="ph1"><i>In Which a Very Serious Question Is Discussed</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p>The boat from the Gullwing was so near the
-maelstrom caused by the sinking of the ship
-that her bow was sucked under and she shipped
-a lot of water. We saw the boys bailing energetically.</p>
-
-<p>Then Thank stood up and cast off his outer
-clothing and his shoes. Bob Promise, who
-pulled the bow oar, followed suit. They each
-took the precaution to lash the end of a line to
-one wrist before going overboard. Where the
-Seamew had sunk was a circle of tossing waves,
-and broken bits of wreckage were popping up
-from below in a most dangerous fashion.</p>
-
-<p>The suspense aboard the Gullwing and in
-the boat was great indeed as the two young
-fellows went down. If the Barneys had been
-entangled in any wreckage on the lost vessel,
-Thank and Bob would never be able to reach
-them, for the sea at that spot is very deep, and
-the hulk of the schooner would finally rest upon
-the bottom.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Gates had run back to the stern and stood
-beside me, gazing off across the tumbling sea.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;God help the boy!&#8221; he muttered, and I
-knew he referred to our Mr. Barney. &#8220;I<span class="pagenum" id="Page_211">[211]</span>
-doubt now he&#8217;d rather be under the seas than
-above after this day&#8217;s work.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Do you believe it was Mr. Barney&#8217;s fault?&#8221;
-I whispered.</p>
-
-<p>He started and looked around at me. I
-repeated my question.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Was it Jim Barney&#8217;s fault?&#8221; he returned.
-&#8220;What do you think?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I don&#8217;t believe it. He sheered off&mdash;&mdash;&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Too late,&#8221; muttered Mr. Gates.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Just as soon as the captain ordered him
-to,&#8221; I declared eagerly. &#8220;When Captain Bowditch
-ordered him to &#8216;Keep off&#8217; he swung her
-over. I saw him.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;It was too late then, I tell you,&#8221; declared
-the first mate of the Gullwing.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;But how about Mr. Alf Barney?&#8221; I cried.
-&#8220;He held on to the course all the time till she
-hit us.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Gates said nothing.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;If it was anybody&#8217;s fault it was Mr. Alf
-Barney&#8217;s,&#8221; I repeated, stubbornly.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;No. It cannot be laid to his fault in any
-case,&#8221; said the mate, sternly.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Why not, sir?&#8221; I asked.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Because his captain gave no order. Captain
-Si had the deck. He was in command.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Then Captain Bowditch is at fault, too,&#8221;
-I declared. &#8220;He did not speak quick enough.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;He gave the order quick enough,&#8221; returned
-Mr. Gates, gloomily, &#8220;but Jim Barney hesitated.
-That&#8217;s where the fault lies. Jim Barney<span class="pagenum" id="Page_212">[212]</span>
-hated to give the Seamew right of way,
-and he held us onto the course after he was
-ordered to keep off. That&#8217;s where the fault
-lies, my boy&mdash;that&#8217;s where it lies.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>At another time I do not suppose the mate
-would have discussed the point with me, I
-being merely a foremast hand. But we were
-all stirred up and for the moment quarterdeck
-etiquette was forgotten.</p>
-
-<p>But in a moment there was a cheer raised in
-our little boat, dancing out there on the swells.
-Thank&#8217;s head appeared, and one hand grasped
-the gunwale of the boat. He dragged into view
-the two Barney&#8217;s, locked in an embrace that
-could not be broken.</p>
-
-<p>Bob Promise came to his help instantly.
-Together they held the twins up. Both the
-Barneys were unconscious. Mr. Jim must have
-had a frightful fight down there under the sea
-to hold to his brother and get out of the strong
-suck of the settling wreck.</p>
-
-<p>The brothers were hauled into the small boat,
-and then Thank and Bob followed. As quickly
-as possible she was rowed back to the Gullwing.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile the big tug Sea Horse had
-steamed up to us and rounded to under our
-bows. The hawser was passed and Mr. Gates
-took charge of the rigging of the bridle. Our
-skipper himself went to the rail to meet the incoming
-boat.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Good boys,&#8221; he said, warmly. &#8220;It&#8217;s a
-pity poor old Si warn&#8217;t found, too.&#8221;</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_213">[213]</span>I wondered if that was so. It seemed to me
-that Captain Silas Somes was the man mainly
-to blame for the tragedy. I could not believe
-that the onus of it would be heaped upon our
-second mate.</p>
-
-<p>The boat was hoisted in. Both the Barneys
-remained unconscious; but Mr. Hollister and
-the captain declared they would be all right
-soon. Mr. Alf Barney had not been seriously
-injured by the falling of the mast. They were
-taken below and Mr. Hollister took charge
-of them, with one of his own hands to help in
-bringing the brothers back to their senses.</p>
-
-<p>The Gullwing quickly felt the tug of the
-hawser binding her to the Sea Horse and with
-her sails clewed up she wallowed on through
-the choppy seas into the broad mouth of the
-Chesapeake.</p>
-
-<p>No need of aiding the steam-tug by hoisting
-sail. The race was over. The Seamew had
-run her course and the Gullwing was the winner.
-But a sorry winning of the race it proved to be.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Gates kept both watches at work for a
-time making the loose spars secure. The steel
-stays that had been broken had to be reset, or
-we might have one of our masts coming down
-as the Seamew&#8217;s had.</p>
-
-<p>The work was done before the second dog-watch
-and then we had a chance to sit down and
-fraternize with the men from the Seamew.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;What gave the old Seamew her ticket,&#8221;
-said Job Perkins, &#8220;was our changing a live<span class="pagenum" id="Page_214">[214]</span>
-man for a dead one. When Clint, here, went
-over the side and a man that had been garroted
-came back inboard, I knowed we was
-in for trouble. And that ten dollars you&#8217;re
-to pay me at Baltimore,&#8221; he whispered in my
-ear, &#8220;ain&#8217;t going to pay me for the dunnage I
-lost.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;How d&#8217;ye s&#8217;pose that feller got strangled
-with his lanyard?&#8221; demanded another of the
-Seamew&#8217;s men.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Ask that nigger they&#8217;ve got aboard the Gullwing
-here,&#8221; growled another. &#8220;He knows.
-And he&#8217;ll hafter tell it to the consul.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>But I made up my mind that, if it were possible,
-Dao Singh should not be obliged to go
-before any court, or any consul, to explain that
-matter. The fact was, there wasn&#8217;t anything
-he could explain. Under a dreadful provocation
-he had killed the sailor. But I doubted
-if his excuse for committing the act would be
-accepted by the law.</p>
-
-<p>The men were mainly interested, however,
-in the circumstances surrounding the collision
-of the sister ships and the sinking of the Seamew.
-The great question was: Who was at
-fault? But we conducted the discussion in
-very low tones, that the officer on deck might not
-overhear us.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Talk as ye please,&#8221; grunted Job Perkins.
-&#8220;If two other men&mdash;men that warn&#8217;t Barneys&mdash;had
-been at the helm of the two ships,
-there wouldn&#8217;t never been no trouble.&#8221;</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_215">[215]</span>&#8220;Well,&#8221; declared I, &#8220;<i>our</i> Mr. Barney sheered
-off.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Not soon enough,&#8221; said Tom Thornton,
-shaking his head.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Just as soon as the order was given!&#8221; I
-cried. &#8220;And it wasn&#8217;t our place to give way,
-at that.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Oh,&#8221; said Job, &#8220;we&#8217;ll all grant the old man&mdash;Cap&#8217;n
-Si&mdash;was the main one to blame.
-Leastways, he&#8217;s the one dead, and the dead
-man is always blamed. But Mr. Alf Barney
-never got no word to change his helm&mdash;and
-yours did.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;The ships come together; they was bound
-to do so, sooner or later,&#8221; said old Stronson,
-shaking his head. &#8220;It iss not de men iss to
-blame&mdash;no! You remember the Chieftain and
-de Antelope? Dey was sister ships, too. Dey
-could not be anchored within a cable&#8217;s length
-of each odder, or dey come togedder.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;By jings! the old man&#8217;s right,&#8221; declared
-Tom Thornton. &#8220;I sailed on the Antelope
-once. There seemed to be magnets drawin&#8217;
-them two ships together. Gettin&#8217; under way at
-Savannah we bumped the Chieftain and tore
-away her fore chains and made a mess of our
-own bows.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I heered if the two craft was anchored full
-and plenty apart, and in no tideway, they&#8217;d
-rub sides within twenty-four hours,&#8221; said
-another man.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;And das iss de trut&#8217;,&#8221; declared Stronson.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_216">[216]</span>
-&#8220;Dey wass sister ships&mdash;like das Seamew and
-Gullwing. Nopoty can keep dem apart when
-dey gets jest so near to each odder.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;That&#8217;s so! I bet that was what did it more
-than the Barney boys,&#8221; agreed Job Perkins.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Sich things happen, as we knows,&#8221; said
-Tom Thornton.</p>
-
-<p>And I declare, all the old fellows went off on
-this tangent and accepted this idea as the true
-explanation for the sinking of the Seamew.
-They talked it over and became more and more
-positive that it was so. The superstition that
-the sister ships had a natural attraction for
-each other took a firm hold upon their minds.
-I could see plainly that if the firm had any of
-these old barnacles into court, they would
-swear to this ridiculous idea. At least, it might
-throw a bit of weight against the idea that the
-Barney boys had deliberately wrecked the two
-ships.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Jest the same,&#8221; observed old Tom, slowly,
-&#8220;study on it as we may, there&#8217;s one place where
-it&#8217;ll be decided for sure, as far as the legal end
-of it goes. The insurance court will have the
-last say.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Wrong you be, Tom,&#8221; declared Job, &#8220;wrong
-you be. The final settlement of the hull matter
-will be in the offices of Barney, Blakesley &amp;
-Knight. Never mind what the court says, nor
-how the insurance is adjusted; them two boys
-will hafter go before the firm.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;By mighty! that&#8217;s so,&#8221; agreed Tom.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_217">[217]</span>&#8220;And the way it&#8217;s turned out,&#8221; pursued Job,
-&#8220;it looks like Mr. Jim Barney would have the
-best of it.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;How so?&#8221; we asked.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Don&#8217;t you see that he&#8217;s bound ter be first
-ashore at Baltimore?&#8221; and the Seamew&#8217;s oldest
-hand chuckled. &#8220;He&#8217;s come through on his
-ship and will stand first in the old man&#8217;s estimation&mdash;no
-matter how he done it. Ye know
-Jothan Barney.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;By crackey! will Mr. Jim beat Mr. Alfred,
-then, and be boss of the firm?&#8221; Thankful Polk
-demanded.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;That&#8217;ll be the end of the story, son,&#8221; said
-Job, turning his cud in his cheek. &#8220;Old Jothan
-sent &#8217;em out, one ter beat the other. By
-jinks! one <i>has</i> beat the other. No matter how
-he&#8217;s done it. It&#8217;s done, and so old Jothan will
-agree, I reckon.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;But won&#8217;t the firm punish Mr. Jim?&#8221; I
-asked.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I wanter see the firm do anything that old
-Jothan don&#8217;t want it to do,&#8221; scoffed Job.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;And that&#8217;s so, too,&#8221; agreed old Tom.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Then, believing that Mr. Jim Barney deliberately
-wrecked the Seamew so as to beat
-his brother into Baltimore, you fellows think
-his uncle will receive him with open arms?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;That&#8217;ll be about it,&#8221; said Job. &#8220;Jothan
-Barney is that way. He wanted one of his
-nephews to show what they call &#8216;initiative&#8217;
-and all that. Jim Barney&#8217;s showed it&mdash;&mdash;&#8221;</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_218">[218]</span>&#8220;And risked drowning a whole ship&#8217;s crew&mdash;two
-ships&#8217; crews, in fact!&mdash;including his
-brother?&#8221; I cried. &#8220;You believe he did that
-just to get ahead and win his uncle&#8217;s approval?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;That&#8217;s it,&#8221; said Job.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Then if he hated his brother so,&#8221; I demanded,
-raising my voice in my earnestness,
-&#8220;why did he risk his own life to save him?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>The men were silent for a moment. Then
-Mr. Gates&#8217; voice came booming forward from
-the quarter:</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;You men stow your jaw-tackle. You&#8217;re
-gassin&#8217; too much.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>That ended the discussion. But I was by
-no means convinced that the seamen understood
-the two Barneys. I had an entirely different
-idea of how the matter would fall out in the
-end.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_219">[219]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak"><span class="smcap">Chapter XXVI</span></h2>
-
-
-<p class="ph1"><i>In Which Is Told How the Barney Boys Go Ashore</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p>Of course, the sinking of the Seamew would
-be reported by the tug Comet, that had gone
-out to meet her, and the news would be telegraphed
-to Baltimore long before we reached
-the port. The owners would know all about
-the trouble, and I reckon Captain Joe Bowditch
-had pretty serious thoughts that night as
-we were towed up the bay.</p>
-
-<p>It was a lovely evening and Phillis came out
-on deck and begged me to sit with her. She
-had not been so greatly frightened when the
-two ships collided, because I had been right
-with her and the trouble was over so quickly.
-I hated to think of what might have happened,
-however, if it had been the fate of the Gullwing
-to sink instead of her sister ship.</p>
-
-<p>Since they have been carried below, unconscious,
-none of we foremast hands had seen
-the two Barney boys. We only knew that they
-had both recovered and were none the worse
-for their ducking.</p>
-
-<p>It was now the captain&#8217;s watch, however,
-and Mr. Jim Barney came up and paced the
-larboard side of the deck, aft. It was not long
-before I caught sight of a similar figure pacing<span class="pagenum" id="Page_220">[220]</span>
-the starboard side of the house, and knew that
-Mr. Alf Barney had come up, too.</p>
-
-<p>Philly and I had been whispering together
-under her awning and suddenly she put her
-finger on my lips to enjoin secrecy, and tripped
-away to Mr. Jim Barney&#8217;s side.</p>
-
-<p>She tucked her hand in his, I could see, and
-walked beside him. I am not sure whether
-she said anything to him, or not; but I know he
-did not send her away from him, although he was
-on duty.</p>
-
-<p>Then, after a bit, I saw Philly go to the other
-side of the deck and join Mr. Alf Barney. She
-must have got acquainted with him below deck,
-for he welcomed her warmly. They talked
-earnestly for a few moments, and then the little
-girl ran back to me.</p>
-
-<p>I had been gazing idly off over the rail, watching
-the lights ashore, and thinking of my home-coming.
-In this land-locked bay I could be
-pretty safe in believing that I would soon be
-with my mother.</p>
-
-<p>Of course, through the machinations of my
-cousin I had been kept from coming directly
-home when I was at Punta Arenas. But Paul
-Downes would not be in Baltimore when we
-landed, to trouble me in the least. Once I got
-ashore with Phillis and Thank, I was determined
-to hike for Darringford House in short order.</p>
-
-<p>I had enough money to pay two railroad fares
-home&mdash;the little girl&#8217;s and my own. Thank and
-I were to receive no wages for our work aboard<span class="pagenum" id="Page_221">[221]</span>
-the Gullwing. But I would leave Thank enough
-money to keep him until I could telegraph him
-more from Darringford.</p>
-
-<p>He proposed to go home himself for a time&mdash;back
-to Georgia. He had a half sister there
-that he wanted to see. Then he was to join
-me for the balance of the summer on the Massachusetts
-coast. We had already planned
-great fun at Bolderhead, despite the fact that
-my bonnie sloop, the Wavecrest, was far,
-far away&mdash;at Buenos Ayres.</p>
-
-<p>The matter of Dao Singh was not so easily
-adjusted. I knew very well that Captain
-Bowditch would insist upon reporting the case
-of Phillis to the proper authorities at Baltimore.
-That would include the examination
-of the Hindoo on the details of the wreck of the
-Galland. And just as sure as they got the
-man into court I knew he would convict himself.</p>
-
-<p>I was not willing to see the examination
-dragged on for weeks, perhaps months. And
-the end was not sure, either. I did not want
-Dao Singh punished; and I knew that it would
-trouble Philly greatly if the man was not at
-her beck and call most of the time.</p>
-
-<p>However, if Dao Singh, as a pertinent witness
-in the case, was not to be found, I believed
-I could get any fair-minded court to place
-Phillis in the care of my mother until the
-matter was concluded. That was the scheme
-I had in mind.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_222">[222]</span>Therefore, when we landed I proposed that
-Dao Singh should disappear. I had already
-sounded him. I had no money to spare, but
-he seemed to have worn a belt about his waist
-under his clothing, in which he told me he
-carried valuables. Money I supposed.</p>
-
-<p>Nor was he ignorant of the port to which we
-were bound. He had studied the geography
-of the world and he had corresponded in some
-way with members of his own race located
-in Baltimore.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;To them will I go, Webb Sahib, directly
-the ship docks. If there is hue and cry, they
-will not find me. When your augustness and
-the Memsahib en train for your home, I shall
-en train likewise. I shall not be far from you.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;But you will not know when we go,&#8221; I
-cried.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Let not the Sahib fear for that. Dao
-Singh will have means of knowing. Your
-movements, Webb Sahib, will be learned, although
-I be afar. Fear not.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>And this is all he would tell me. Rather a
-rare bird, was Singh. He treated me always
-with immense deference, waited on me when
-I would let him, hand and foot, yet always
-retained an air of being upon a mental or
-spiritual plane immensely removed from my
-own. And I&#8217;m not at all sure that he was
-not possessed of intelligence far above the
-order of the European or American.</p>
-
-<p>But I have got away from my text. Philly<span class="pagenum" id="Page_223">[223]</span>
-and I were sitting watching the lights on shore.
-As we were under towage, the watch on deck
-had little to do. Therefore the captain did
-not mind being aft with the little lass.</p>
-
-<p>Suddenly I saw the two Barney boys cross
-the deck and stand together under the break
-of the quarter. It was dark there and I could
-not see how they looked at each other, nor
-could I hear what they said. But they stood
-there for some minutes and, when they separated,
-and Mr. Jim went back to his duty, I
-hoped that they had not parted in anger.</p>
-
-<p>It seemed a dreadful thing if either, or both,
-of the twins should be accused of losing one
-ship and all but wrecking the other. As young
-merchant officers, just starting out in life, the
-affair would about ruin them. And if old
-Jothan Barney stuck to his word and took
-Jim Barney into the firm, and gave him all his
-money, what would become of Mr. Alfred?</p>
-
-<p>At midnight I turned in; Philly had sought
-her cabin long before. She wished to be up
-bright and early to see the Gullwing docked.
-But I could not sleep for mulling over the case
-of the Barney boys in my mind.</p>
-
-<p>My watch was called at eight bells to wash
-down and make the deck as tidy as possible
-for the docking, although we were not yet
-far north of the mouth of the York river. The
-best we could do, however, our beautiful Gullwing
-looked like a drunken old harridan that
-had been out all night!</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_224">[224]</span>The day was beautiful. As the shores and
-islands were more clearly revealed, Philly&#8217;s
-delight knew no bounds.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Oh, the land! the beautiful land!&#8221; she
-sighed. &#8220;I want to jump for joy.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Have you got enough of the sea for all
-time?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I do not think I am afraid of the sea&mdash;not
-as afraid as I was once,&#8221; she replied. &#8220;But
-think how good it will be to step ashore! I
-really don&#8217;t feel, Clint, as though I would care
-to sail again right away.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>And despite the sorry story we had to tell
-of the Seamew, there was a briskness in everybody&#8217;s
-movements that told of shore leave,
-and most of the men&#8217;s faces were agrin. Those
-forward were making up parties for certain
-pleasures and entertainments which had been
-denied them for so many months.</p>
-
-<p>Old Stronson was going immediately to the
-Bethel, there to pay Captain Sowle the dollar
-he had owed the good superintendent for five
-years and more.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I do that chob at vonce,&#8221; said the old man,
-&#8220;pefore somet&#8217;ings happen to me. Meppe
-Captain Sowle vill take my moneys for me
-and find me a goot berth aboard some gentleman&#8217;s
-yacht. Das berth I like, I t&#8217;ank.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>I knew he wanted to get away from the drink
-and I hoped with all my heart that the old
-man would be able to do so.</p>
-
-<p>Tom Thornton had a married sister in Baltimore,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_225">[225]</span>
-over to whom the bulk of his paycheck
-was always paid by Barney, Blakesley &amp; Knight.
-He would be put up by her, and cared for, and
-kept straight as long as possible; then the old
-man would go to sea again&mdash;in the Gullwing
-if possible.</p>
-
-<p>As for Bob Promise and some other of the
-younger men, they were all for &#8220;the sporting
-life.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I&#8217;m goin&#8217; to tog meself up in decent clothes,&#8221;
-said Bob. &#8220;No slops or sheeny hand-me-downs
-for me. You watch my smoke, boy,
-when I get ashore. I ain&#8217;t sure that I won&#8217;t
-go up to some swell hotel and stay for a week.
-I reckon my bunch of coin will stand for it.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Never a word about salting some of the money
-away for some worthy object. Jack Tar of the
-merchant marine has only two states of existence&mdash;slavery
-aboard ship and license ashore.
-There seems to be no happy medium for him.</p>
-
-<p>The Sea Horse towed us into our berth.
-The hawsers went ashore and we were warped
-in beside the dock amid a deal of clatter and
-confusion.</p>
-
-<p>There was a crowd to receive us. Some of
-these people were newspaper men. The story
-of the wreck of the Seamew had appeared in
-the Baltimore morning papers and reporters
-for the afternoon sheets were here for the particulars
-at first hand. Nobody was allowed
-aboard, however, although the quarantine officers<span class="pagenum" id="Page_226">[226]</span>
-had given us a clean bill of health down
-the bay.</p>
-
-<p>I saw standing upon the dock a tall, withered
-old man, with a very sharp face and white hair
-and mustache. He looked like a hawk, and
-was dressed all in shabby black. Without
-asking, I knew this to be old Jothan Barney,
-the head of the firm that owned the Gullwing.</p>
-
-<p>I did not see either of his nephews greet him
-from the ship. Mr. Jim had plenty to do while
-the ship docked, and Mr. Alf was not far from
-his brother at any time. Indeed, I was not
-the only person who noticed that the Barney
-boys stuck together.</p>
-
-<p>A section of the rail had been removed amidships.
-A narrow gangway was run out from
-the dock, the ropes were caught by two of the
-seamen, and the plank made fast.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;First ashore!&#8221; sang out the old man and
-looked from our Mr. Barney to his brother.</p>
-
-<p>We all fell back for a moment. It was evident
-that the Barneys would go ashore even
-before Cap&#8217;n Joe. They approached the plank
-and both smiled.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;All right, Alf?&#8221; I heard Mr. Jim say.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I&#8217;m with you, Jim,&#8221; was the reply.</p>
-
-<p>And with their arms locked, the twin brothers
-walked ashore together and went straight to
-stand before old Jothan Barney!</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_227">[227]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak"><span class="smcap">Chapter XXVII</span></h2>
-
-
-<p class="ph1"><i>In Which I Receive a Telegram That Troubles Me</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p>For a moment there was a dead silence among
-the crews of the sister ships. Then Captain
-Bowditch himself took off his hat and started
-the cheering.</p>
-
-<p>And how he did yell! If both vessels had come
-home safely we could not have given tongue
-more joyfully. For in that moment every
-man of us knew that whatever friction there
-had been betwixt Jim and Alf Barney, they
-were once more brothers and friends!</p>
-
-<p>Of course, the crowd ashore thought we were
-just glad to get home again&mdash;that we were
-expressing our satisfaction upon getting to
-Baltimore, safe and sound. But the Barneys
-knew what it meant and both of them waved
-their hands in response to our hearty hurrah.</p>
-
-<p>As the newspaper reporters crowded aboard
-to interview Captain Bowditch I saw that the
-three Barneys walked away. The old man did
-not even speak to the skipper of the Gullwing.
-I reckoned any comment upon the skipper&#8217;s
-actions by the members of the firm of Barney,
-Blakesley &amp; Knight would be postponed until
-some later time.</p>
-
-<p>The newspaper fellows were eager for a story;<span class="pagenum" id="Page_228">[228]</span>
-but Mr. Gates and Mr. Hollister &#8220;shooed&#8221;
-them away from the foremast hands. The men
-would not be discharged until the next day,
-when they would be taken to the offices of the
-firm for a settlement of their accounts, and to
-receive their discharges. Until that time they
-must remain aboard and continue under the
-discipline of the officers.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;If you writer chaps,&#8221; said Mr. Gates, with
-a grin, &#8220;want to get these old hardshells to
-spinning yarns, you&#8217;ll have to wait till they
-lay their course for Front Street. You&#8217;ll have
-to be contented with facts from Captain Bowditch
-just now.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>So the stories of the Seamew&#8217;s tragedy were
-not very ornate in the afternoon papers after
-all; and public interest in the affair was soon
-quenched.</p>
-
-<p>When my watch was piped to dinner the
-doctor gave me the tip to wait on deck and in
-a few minutes Mr. Gates beckoned me to the
-afterhouse.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Quarterdeck etiquette is busted all to flinders,
-Clint,&#8221; he said, in an unusually jolly tone,
-for he was naturally a grave man. But the fact
-that we were in the home port after so many
-months was bound to thaw the iciest manner.
-&#8220;You&#8217;re to dine with the old man and Miss
-Philly.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>It was a shame the way I looked! My second
-suit of slops from the chest were pretty well
-worn out and my head was a regular mop. I<span class="pagenum" id="Page_229">[229]</span>
-had reckoned on seeing a barber about the first
-thing I did when I went ashore; and I hoped
-to squeeze out money enough for a cheap suit,
-too, in which I might make a more presentable
-appearance going home.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Never mind your clothing, Clinton,&#8221; said
-Captain Bowditch, when I made some remark
-of this kind. &#8220;We&#8217;ll excuse your looks.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;And I&#8217;m not much better off than you,&#8221;
-laughed Philly. &#8220;I have to go to bed when
-Singh washes this dress.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;By the way, where <i>is</i> Singh?&#8221; demanded
-the captain. &#8220;After dinner I want we should
-all go up to the British consul&mdash;and I want
-Singh to go to.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>But Dao Singh was not to be found. I said
-nothing about my talk with the Hindoo. I
-knew that nobody had seen him after we got
-into our berth. He might, even, have gone
-ashore ahead of the Barneys. However, gone
-he was and the captain was quite put out.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;That&#8217;s the trouble with these natives,&#8221;
-he growled. &#8220;Can&#8217;t trust &#8217;em. I&#8217;d ought
-to put him in irons&mdash;&mdash;&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;What for, Captain? What has poor Singh
-done?&#8221; asked Philly.</p>
-
-<p>And then the captain took a tumble to himself.
-The little girl knew nothing about the
-man murdered in the boat from the wreck of
-the Galland.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Well, it&#8217;s a serious thing&mdash;for me&mdash;to have<span class="pagenum" id="Page_230">[230]</span>
-let him get away without his going before the
-authorities,&#8221; Captain Bowditch growled.</p>
-
-<p>That was not exactly true however. Nobody
-would blame him because the Hindoo had departed.
-But the old man said he would take
-us both up town right after dinner. I begged
-for a little time to make myself presentable
-and was given an hour&#8217;s leave ashore. I found
-a barber and got my hair trimmed properly and
-then went to a second hand shop and got an
-outfit of coat, pants and shoes, with a new hat
-for six dollars. Nothing very fashionable, you
-may be sure; but I reckoned the butler would
-let me into the house with &#8217;em on&mdash;by the side
-door, at least!</p>
-
-<p>So the captain and Philly and I walked over
-to the British consulate and saw a young man
-with eyeglasses and something of a lisp, dressed
-in clothes that could not possibly be made so
-badly anywhere else but in London. He was
-a nice young man, though; and he insisted upon
-making tea for Philly when he heard that she
-had been two weeks in an open boat, as
-though she might still need a &#8220;pick-me-up&#8221;
-because of that adventure.</p>
-
-<p>It seemed that he had already heard of the
-loss of the Galland. Her burned hull had been
-sighted by two steamships and reported before
-the Gullwing arrived in port. But none of
-the crew or passengers of the ill-fated ship,
-until Phillis Duane came, had been reported<span class="pagenum" id="Page_231">[231]</span>
-as saved. The Galland had been posted as a
-complete loss, with crew and passengers.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;What puzzles me,&#8221; said the English official,
-&#8220;is the distance the Galland and the boat you
-found drifted apart. Her bulk was reported
-as sighted only a day or two after your Gullwing
-picked up the little girl and the Hindoo.&#8221;
-The captain had already explained about Dao
-Singh. &#8220;Yet,&#8221; continued the consul, &#8220;the Galland
-had drifted far up the coast in the steamship
-route&mdash;she&#8217;s a dangerous derelict, and
-has been so reported to the Hydrographic office
-at Washington, and to Lloyds in London.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Whereas, Captain, the latitude and longitude
-you give is far, far to the south. South
-of the Straits, in fact.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Three hunder&#8217; mile sou&#8217;east of the Capes
-of the Virgin, sure enough,&#8221; admitted Captain
-Bowditch.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Yes. The Galland had come through the
-Straits and must have met with her accident
-not far outside. It seems strange that only
-one boat got away from her&mdash;and that one
-improperly manned.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;As near as we can find out, sir,&#8221; said the
-skipper, &#8220;she had but two seamen in her beside
-the Hindoo and the little girl here.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>He had taken the captain and I into his private
-office while he examined us regarding the
-particulars of the affair. I told him frankly
-about the dead man in the boat.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I must find this Dao Singh,&#8221; he said. &#8220;Until<span class="pagenum" id="Page_232">[232]</span>
-I get him I cannot call the case closed, of
-course. And then, there&#8217;s the little girl.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Captain Bowditch spoke up for me, then.
-He had had a good report of me from Captain
-Hiram Rogers of the Scarboro, and he believed
-what I had told him about my folks. He
-would go bail for my appearance, and the production
-of Philly safe and sound, whenever we
-should be wanted.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;A very good arrangement,&#8221; agreed the
-consul, seemingly mightily relieved regarding
-the girl. He was a bachelor himself. &#8220;Meanwhile
-I will do my best to locate her people.
-Of course, she must have been consigned to
-somebody in England, even if she does not
-know who. It seems to me as though the name
-of Captain Erskin Duane is not unfamiliar to
-me.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>So we got away from there after a while.
-When I had gone ashore to get my fancy rigout
-I had sent a telegram to Ham Mayberry.
-I did that so as not to startle my mother, believing
-that Ham would know how to break the
-news of my arrival to her better than anybody
-else. Ham had been with us so many years
-that he was like one of the family.</p>
-
-<p>And having telegraphed him I was mighty
-anxious for a reply that all was well.</p>
-
-<p>Captain Bowditch left us to report at the
-offices of the ship owners and Philly and I went
-back to the Gullwing where Ham was to send
-his message. It had arrived while we were at<span class="pagenum" id="Page_233">[233]</span>
-the consul&#8217;s and Mr. Gates handed the envelope
-to me the moment I came aboard.</p>
-
-<p>With some perturbation, I broke the seal, and
-to say the least I was amazed when I read
-Hamilton Mayberry&#8217;s telegram:</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I will meet every train. Speak to nobody
-until you see me.&mdash;H. M.&#8221;</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_234">[234]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak"><span class="smcap">Chapter XXVIII</span></h2>
-
-
-<p class="ph1"><i>In Which My Homecoming Proves To Be a Strange
-One Indeed</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p>Naturally I thought that Ham&#8217;s telegram
-spelled trouble; but I kept my thoughts to
-myself. I did not feel like discussing the
-matter even with Thankful Polk.</p>
-
-<p>We had begun to break out the Gullwing&#8217;s
-cargo and worked until dark. The next day
-the roustabouts would come aboard and relieve
-us of that. All hands (save Thank and I)
-would go up to the office to be paid off.</p>
-
-<p>We in the forecastle heard nothing about
-the Barneys that day, nor did Mr. Jim return
-to the ship. We spent the evening skylarking
-on the forward deck. A man had come aboard
-with an accordion and the men danced, and
-sang, and had a general rough-and-tumble
-jollification. But I only looked on. Tomorrow
-would close such scenes for me&mdash;perhaps forever.</p>
-
-<p>In the morning a lawyer and his clerk came
-aboard to take testimony regarding the loss
-of the Seamew. Just as I had supposed, the
-men who talked most were the old fellows who
-believed that the two ships had come together
-because of some supernatural attraction. The
-real incidents of the collision were buried under<span class="pagenum" id="Page_235">[235]</span>
-a heap of rubbish, testimony that would help
-the courts and the insurance people mighty
-little in getting at the facts of the case.</p>
-
-<p>I was thankful that the lawyer did not put
-many questions to me. I stuck to my belief
-that Mr. Jim Barney had obeyed Captain
-Bowditch&#8217;s order to change the course of the
-Gullwing as soon as the order was given.</p>
-
-<p>When the examination was over there was
-a deal of bustle in preparation of all hands
-going ashore. I paid Job Perkins the ten
-dollars I had promised him and lent Thank all
-I could spare after saving out enough for the
-tickets for Philly and myself to Darringford.</p>
-
-<p>I suppose I might have borrowed a little
-money from Captain Bowditch; but Thank
-could get along until I could telegraph him a
-hundred from home. He had agreed to accept
-that much from me, and promised to join me
-at my mother&#8217;s summer home later.</p>
-
-<p>Then we bade the men good-bye, and shook
-hands with the skipper and Mr. Gates and Mr.
-Hollister. Thank went with Philly and me to
-the railroad station. There I hoped to find
-Dao Singh&mdash;and Philly was anxious about him,
-too. But the Hindoo did not appear.</p>
-
-<p>We could not wait for him; nor did I know
-how to find him in Baltimore. But I told
-Thank to keep a watch out for him, and if he
-saw Singh to let me know at once by telegraph.</p>
-
-<p>We took the fast express for Boston and only
-had to transfer at one point. From that point<span class="pagenum" id="Page_236">[236]</span>
-I had engaged seats in the chair car and berths
-for both Philly and myself. There was but
-one day coach attached to the train when we
-changed, and we were scarcely aboard when a
-tall, turbanned figure appeared at the window
-beside my seat.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Oh, Dao Singh!&#8221; cried Philly, and then
-rattled away to him in his own tongue.</p>
-
-<p>He made me a low obeisance. &#8220;I have come,
-Sahib, as I promised,&#8221; he said, softly. &#8220;I
-take train here with you and the Memsahib.
-I ride forward in the other coach;&#8221; and bowing
-he left us.</p>
-
-<p>I saw that he had a complete new outfit&mdash;a
-costume of his own country. He was a
-strange looking object as he stalked away to
-take his place in the day car.</p>
-
-<p>I sent Ham another wire to say what hour
-we would arrive at Darringford station. I
-was sincerely worried about my mother. Perhaps
-she was ill. Perhaps&mdash;I dared not ruminate
-farther on that subject.</p>
-
-<p>Phillis was greatly interested in the country
-through which the train flew. We looked
-pretty shabby&mdash;both of us&mdash;to be riding in a
-first-class coach, and the other passengers were
-curious about us. But we made no acquaintances
-on the way.</p>
-
-<p>We arrived safely in Boston in the morning,
-and crossed the city to the other station. We
-had not long to wait for a local train that
-stopped at Darringford. It was not long after<span class="pagenum" id="Page_237">[237]</span>
-nine o&#8217;clock when the train stopped and we
-disembarked.</p>
-
-<p>I saw Ham instantly; but he did not have
-our carriage. There was nobody else to welcome
-me&mdash;there was nobody about the station, indeed,
-who recognized me. I had changed a good
-deal during the twenty-two months I had been
-away.</p>
-
-<p>But old Ham knew me. He rushed at me
-and wrung my hands and sputtered something
-at first that I could not understand. At last
-he said:</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;And ye couldn&#8217;t have timed it better,
-Master Clint. You&#8217;re just in the nick of time.
-The court sits in ha&#8217;f an hour.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Then he caught sight of Phillis and Dao
-Singh right behind me.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;What&#8217;s all this?&#8221; he muttered.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I&#8217;ll tell you later,&#8221; I said. &#8220;It&#8217;s too long
-a story to give you now. Besides, you&#8217;ve got
-to tell me things first. Isn&#8217;t the carriage here?
-Can&#8217;t we all go right to Darringford House?
-Haven&#8217;t you told mother?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>He shook his head slowly.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Can&#8217;t take you home, jest yet, Master
-Clint,&#8221; he said.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;But mother! is&mdash;&mdash;?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;She ain&#8217;t sick, and she ain&#8217;t well. Only
-poorly. Nothing to be worried about. And
-now that you&#8217;re here I reckon things will be
-straightened out all right.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Chester Downes!&#8221; I ejaculated.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_238">[238]</span>&#8220;Yes. He&#8217;s cutting up didoes,&#8221; grunted
-Ham.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;But where is Lawyer Hounsditch?&#8221; I cried.</p>
-
-<p>And then Ham <i>did</i> amaze me&mdash;and startle
-me, too.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Old Mr. Hounsditch died a month ago,
-Clint,&#8221; he said. &#8220;It was sudden. He was
-an old man, you know, and there is nobody to
-take his place.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;My guardian is dead, then!&#8221; I exclaimed.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;He was co-trustee with your mother, Clint.
-That&#8217;s where the trouble lies. Chester Downes
-is riggin&#8217; to get appointed in his place. It
-comes up before the Judge of Probate this
-morning. You ain&#8217;t but jest in time.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p><i>That</i> woke me up, now I tell you! All my
-wits were working in a minute. Ham needed
-to make little more talk about it for me to
-fully understand what was threatening.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;And mother didn&#8217;t object?&#8221; I asked.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;You know what a holt Downes has over
-her,&#8221; Ham said gravely. &#8220;She <i>did</i> want him
-to wait until you came home. We got your
-letter from Valpariso and we knew the Gullwing
-was about due in Baltimore. But Chester
-Downes&mdash;you know him!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Let us take my little friend and Dao Singh
-to the hotel,&#8221; I said. &#8220;They can wait for us
-there. I must have a lawyer, Ham.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I got you one,&#8221; said the old man, quickly.
-&#8220;We&#8217;d have gone before the court if you hadn&#8217;t
-come in time and tried to get a stay.&#8221;</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_239">[239]</span>&#8220;Who is he?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Colonel Playfair.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>I knew him by reputation. A better man
-didn&#8217;t live in Darringford, nor a better lawyer&mdash;now
-that Mr. Hounsditch was dead. And it
-seemed to me that I remembered something
-about Colonel Playfair and my grandfather
-having once been close friends.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Have you got any money, Ham?&#8221; I asked
-him. &#8220;For I haven&#8217;t a cent.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Plenty,&#8221; he replied.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Get a carriage, then, and drive us to the
-hotel first; then to Colonel Playfair&#8217;s office.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Aye, aye, sir!&#8221; returned Ham and in a few
-moments we were off in a station hack, Ham
-on the seat with the driver.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. and Mrs. Bramble kept the Darringford
-Hotel, and I left Philly in the good lady&#8217;s care.
-Dao Singh remained with her, of course. Then
-Ham and I raced to the office of the lawyer.</p>
-
-<p>It was already half past nine. There was no
-time to lose if the matter of an appointment of
-a new trustee for the Darringford estate was
-the first item on the docket.</p>
-
-<p>I knew Colonel Playfair by sight&mdash;a soldierly,
-white haired veteran with one arm. His shabby
-offices were in a brick building near the courthouse.
-I don&#8217;t suppose he would have known
-me in my present guise had not Ham Mayberry
-vouched for my identity.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;A close call, young man,&#8221; he said. &#8220;I
-understand you object to this Chester Downes<span class="pagenum" id="Page_240">[240]</span>
-being appointed in the place of Mr. Hounsditch?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I more than object,&#8221; I cried. &#8220;I won&#8217;t
-have it!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Hoighty-toighty!&#8221; he said. &#8220;That&#8217;s not
-the way to go into court. You have a choice,
-of course; but don&#8217;t speak that way to Judge
-Fetter.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;No, sir,&#8221; I said, restraining myself.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;And you must have somebody else in mind
-to suggest for the appointment.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;You are familiar with the situation, Colonel?&#8221;
-I asked. &#8220;You knew my grandfather,
-and you know how he made his will?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Humph! I know all about it,&#8221; he returned,
-grimly.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;You are the man to take Lawyer Hounsditch&#8217;s
-place. The co-trustee should be a
-lawyer, anyway.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Well, well, I don&#8217;t know about this,&#8221; he
-said, slowly. &#8220;You really should have another
-attorney, then, to appear before Judge Fetter.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Jest git it put over, Colonel,&#8221; said Ham,
-eagerly. &#8220;Then we kin settle about the trimmings
-afterward.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>The colonel laughed and took up his hat.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;All right,&#8221; he said. &#8220;We&#8217;ll go across to
-the judge&#8217;s chambers and see what we can do,&#8221;
-and he led the way out of his office.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_241">[241]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak"><span class="smcap">Chapter XXIX</span></h2>
-
-
-<p class="ph1"><i>In Which Mr. Chester Downes and I Again
-&#8220;Lock Horns&#8221;</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p>This had not been the home-coming I had
-looked forward to. I had not desired to take
-up the old fight with my uncle, Mr. Chester
-Downes. But it seemed as though circumstances
-were forever opposing us in some wrangle
-or other!</p>
-
-<p>We three, with the old Colonel leading, went
-quietly into the room where Judge Fetter held
-his court. Nobody noticed us and Colonel
-Playfair motioned Ham and I to seats well
-back in the room. There were maybe a score
-of people on the benches. The lawyers and
-those individuals who were pertinently interested
-in the matters to be arranged, were allowed
-inside the rail before the Judge&#8217;s desk. Colonel
-Playfair went up there and the justice
-nodded to him. Nobody knew whom he represented,
-or in what matter he was interested.</p>
-
-<p>I saw Mr. Chester Downes at once; but my
-uncle did not see me. He sat with his back to
-me, in fact, and beside him was a slim and sleek
-looking man with a green bag before him on
-the table.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_242">[242]</span>&#8220;That&#8217;s Jim Maxwell,&#8221; whispered Ham.
-&#8220;And he&#8217;s the kind of a lawyer that Chester
-Downes would cotton to, all right. I ain&#8217;t
-got no manner o&#8217; use for Jim Maxwell. He&#8217;s
-one o&#8217; them landsharks, he is.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>The proceedings droned along for a time.
-Two matters of probate were settled before our
-case came up. Then his clerk handed Judge
-Fetter some papers, he put on his nose glasses,
-glanced at them, and said:</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;In the matter of the appointment of Mr.
-Chester Downed as co-trustee with Mrs. Mary
-Webb, Widow&mdash;the Darrington Estate. There
-is a minor child, I believe? You speak in this
-matter, Mr. Maxwell?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I have the honor to do so,&#8221; said the sleek
-man.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;There is no objection to the appointment,
-I understand?&#8221; pursued the Judge. &#8220;The
-widow is satisfied?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Very much so,&#8221; declared the lawyer.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;She is not here present?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Ill health, your honor,&#8221; said Maxwell,
-briskly! &#8220;But Mr. Downes, who is her brother-in-law,
-has been her man of business for years.
-Mr. Hounsditch, lately deceased, although appointed
-under the will, was merely a figure-head
-in the affairs of the estate.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;And this minor child&mdash;how old is he?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Seventeen.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Ah. He has no choice, then? He does not
-object to his uncle as a trustee?&#8221;</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_243">[243]</span>&#8220;The boy has run away from home, your
-honor. He is a little wild&mdash;&mdash;&#8221; began Mr.
-Maxwell.</p>
-
-<p>I was so enraged that I could not keep my
-seat; but Ham pulled me back. &#8220;Take it
-easy, Clint,&#8221; he whispered.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;In that case,&#8221; the judge mooned along,
-rustling the papers, &#8220;there being no objection,
-and Mr. Chester Downes&#8217; bond being entirely
-satisfactory&mdash;&mdash;&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Colonel Playfair arose. The Judge looked
-at him in surprise.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I beg pardon, Brother Playfair,&#8221; he said,
-politely. &#8220;You surely do not appear in this
-matter?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Yes, your honor, I do,&#8221; said the Colonel.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;You represent anybody interested?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I most certainly do,&#8221; said the Colonel. &#8220;I
-represent the minor child, Clinton Webb.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Chester Downes leaned forward and
-whispered to his lawyer. The latter sprang
-up again.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I beg Colonel Playfair&#8217;s pardon,&#8221; Maxwell
-said. &#8220;Does he state that he has been engaged
-directly by the boy mentioned to represent
-him before this court?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Colonel Playfair was silent for a moment,
-and the other lawyer went on:</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;For if not, I object. No engagement of an
-attorney by outside parties will stand, your
-honor. We expected some interference by officious
-friends of the misguided boy. His mother<span class="pagenum" id="Page_244">[244]</span>
-is his legal guardian, Mr. Hounsditch being
-dead&mdash;&mdash;&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Wait,&#8221; said the Judge, patiently. &#8220;Colonel
-Playfair knows the law as well as any man
-here,&#8221; and he smiled and bowed. &#8220;State
-your position, sir,&#8221; he said to the Colonel.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I represent the minor, your honor,&#8221; he said,
-quietly. &#8220;If it becomes necessary application
-will be made for the appointment of both a
-guardian as well as co-trustee of the estate,
-on behalf of Clinton Webb.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;But the boy has run away! He is incorrigible,&#8221;
-cried Lawyer Maxwell.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Brother Maxwell is misinformed,&#8221; said the
-Colonel, suavely, &#8220;If he does not know the
-truth, his client does. Clinton Webb did not
-run away from home. He was blown out to
-sea in a little sloop from Bolderhead. It is a
-matter of record&mdash;newspaper record, your honor.
-He was picked up by a vessel bound for the
-South Seas. From that distance he has only
-lately been able to get a ship homeward bound.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Chester Downes was whispering again to
-his lawyer. The eyes of the sleek Mr. Maxwell
-snapped.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Your honor!&#8221; cried he, interrupting Colonel
-Playfair.</p>
-
-<p>The colonel politely gave way to him. The
-Judge looked puzzled.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Your honor! The fact of his having left
-home in the first place involuntarily is admitted.
-But he has refused to return. His mother sent<span class="pagenum" id="Page_245">[245]</span>
-money for his passage to Buenos Ayres. He
-supposedly wasted the money and remained
-wilfully out of her jurisdiction.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Colonel Playfair?&#8221; queried the Judge.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;If Brother Maxwell is quite finished,&#8221; said
-the colonel, &#8220;I would like to state our side of
-the argument.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Continue,&#8221; said the Judge.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I am sorry to wash dirty linen in court,&#8221;
-Colonel Playfair said, quietly. &#8220;These family
-troubles would better be settled outside of the
-courtroom. But it seems necessary to place
-the full facts before your honor. It is not only
-a proven fact that Clinton Webb left home
-involuntarily; but there was a crime attached
-to his adventure. He was nailed into the cabin
-of his boat and the boat was cut adrift at the
-beginning of the September gale, two years
-ago this coming fall.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>The spectators began to sit up and take
-notice. The affair was assuming a serious hue.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;The person who committed this dastardly
-crime is known&mdash;known to Brother Maxwell&#8217;s
-client. This person, afraid of being arrested
-for his deed, actually <i>did</i> run away from home,
-went to Buenos Ayres, there represented himself
-as Clinton Webb and obtained the money
-sent there by Mrs. Webb for her son, and is
-now, I understand, a member of the crew of the
-whaling bark, Scarboro, in the South Pacific.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;These final facts are proven by a letter from
-the American consul at Buenos Ayres, sent to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_246">[246]</span>
-Mr. Hounsditch, deceased, together with the
-amount of money which had been given to the
-false claimant by a clerk in the consul&#8217;s office.
-Does Mr. Maxwell wish me to state the name
-of the person who committed these criminal
-acts?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>My uncle&#8217;s lawyer was evidently in a fine
-flurry. He jumped up to say:</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;We let the point pass for the present. But
-we claim that the minor child, Clinton Webb,
-has no standing in this court. He is on the
-high seas&mdash;&mdash;&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Wrong, Brother Maxwell,&#8221; said the colonel,
-very sweetly. &#8220;He is here.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>I saw Mr. Chester Downes start from his
-seat. He cried out something, but the Judge
-rapped his desk for order.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;You say your client is present in court,
-Colonel?&#8221; he asked.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Clinton Webb! Come forward!&#8221; commanded
-my lawyer, and that time Ham did
-not try to keep me in my seat.</p>
-
-<p>I marched down the aisle. Mr. Chester
-Downes saw me coming. His dark face never
-paled; the blood flooded into it, darkening it
-until his cheeks and brow were almost black.</p>
-
-<p>We looked at each other. There was no need
-for either to threaten the other. As of old, we
-were sworn enemies. And I believed that I
-had again crossed him in his most precious
-project.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_247">[247]</span>The colonel let me into the enclosure through
-the gate.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;You recognize your nephew, do you, Mr.
-Downes?&#8221; asked the Judge.</p>
-
-<p>Chester Downes nodded. He could not speak.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;And I understand that Clinton Webb, here
-before us, objects to the appointment of his
-uncle as co-trustee of the estate?&#8221; he asked
-the colonel.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;He does,&#8221; was the brief reply.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;What is your wish, then, Colonel?&#8221; asked
-Judge Fetter. &#8220;This matter, evidently, is not
-ready for closing to-day?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;No, your honor. We ask for a postponement&mdash;that
-is all.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Do you agree, Brother Maxwell?&#8221; asked
-the judge.</p>
-
-<p>Maxwell looked at his client. There was
-nothing else to do but to agree and Downes
-knew it as well as the lawyer.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Oh, yes!&#8221; snarled Chester Downes. &#8220;We
-will have to fight, I see.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>He and I had locked horns again; but he
-would not admit then that he was worsted.</p>
-
-<p>Colonel Playfair had a few moments&#8217; whispered
-conversation with Judge Fetter, and then
-we went back to the lawyer&#8217;s office. Chester
-Downes and Maxwell had hastened away from
-the courthouse. My uncle did not try to speak
-to me&mdash;and I was glad. I am afraid I could not
-have controlled myself just then.</p>
-
-<p>There were some papers to sign and more<span class="pagenum" id="Page_248">[248]</span>
-discussion in Colonel Playfair&#8217;s office. He called
-in a brother practitioner, Mr. Charles Ahorn,
-and the matters were turned over to him.
-Colonel Playfair agreed to step into poor Mr.
-Hounsditch&#8217;s shoes, and be my guardian and
-co-trustee with my mother, if the other side
-could come to an agreement. I believed,
-when I had talked with my mother, that she
-would make no objection.</p>
-
-<p>Crafty as I knew my uncle to be, I could not
-believe that he had so succeeded in warping
-my mother&#8217;s judgment that she would believe
-everything ill he had said of me. And I counted
-on her love as a surety.</p>
-
-<p>Much as she might disregard my personal
-opinion of Chester Downes, I was sure she
-would welcome me with open arms!</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_249">[249]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak"><span class="smcap">Chapter XXX</span></h2>
-
-
-<p class="ph1"><i>In Which My Welcome Home Is a Real Welcome,
-After All</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p>Ham and I went back in the hack to the
-hotel, where we had dinner with Phillis, Dao
-Singh standing behind my chair, and waiting
-at table. I had an idea right then and there
-that James, the butler, would find his job in
-danger when we got settled at Darringford
-House.</p>
-
-<p>Briefly, while we ate, I related some of my
-adventures to my old friend. Particularly
-those that had to do with Philly and the Hindoo.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;It beats all&mdash;it sure does!&#8221; Ham kept repeating,
-and could scarcely keep his eyes off
-the turbanned servant.</p>
-
-<p>When we drove through the wide gateway
-to the grounds surrounding Darringford House,
-I saw the flutter of a light dress upon the verandah.
-When we rounded the turn in the drive
-and the shrubbery was past, I knew my mother
-was standing there. But I certainly <i>was</i>
-amazed to see Chester Downes sitting in one
-of the arm chairs. No matter what happened,
-he never owned up beat! I had to hand it to
-him there.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_250">[250]</span>But I saw what he was up to immediately.
-He had hurried ahead to break the news of
-my coming to my mother, and to lay plans for
-his continued influence in the house. My
-mother and the estate were practically his
-bread and butter. I knew that well enough.</p>
-
-<p>But nothing then could spoil the joy of my
-home-coming. I tore open the door of the
-hack before it stopped and leaped out. Mother
-rushed into my arms as I came up the step and
-I swung her up off the ground&mdash;she was such
-a little, dainty woman!&mdash;and I knew that
-she had never ceased to love me.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Clint! Clint!&#8221; she sobbed. &#8220;My dear,
-dear boy!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Hug me again, mother!&#8221; I returned, trying
-to laugh, but making a poor mess of it. &#8220;This
-is the happiest minute I&#8217;ve seen for two years.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;And how you&#8217;ve grown!&#8221; she gasped,
-pushing me off a bit so that she could look me
-over better.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;And you haven&#8217;t grown a bit!&#8221; I laughed,
-and swung her again until she was breathless.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;And I hope you have got enough of the
-awful sea and sea-going!&#8221; she cried. &#8220;Oh,
-Clint! You will stay at home now?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I certainly hope to,&#8221; I returned, casting a
-meaning glance at Chester Downes, who had
-risen, with a false smile on his face, and his
-hand outstretched.</p>
-
-<p>But in spite of the fact that at that moment
-I meant all that I said, and had not the remotest<span class="pagenum" id="Page_251">[251]</span>
-idea that I should ever go to sea again, circumstances
-not then dreamed of changed my intentions
-later; and the reader who so desires
-may follow my further course afloat in the
-fourth volume of this series, entitled: &#8220;The
-Ocean Express; or, Clint Webb Aboard the
-Sea Tramp.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Then my mother caught sight of Philly and
-Dao Singh. They had stepped out of the hack
-and the tall Hindoo, in his oriental costume,
-stood gravely behind the little golden haired
-beauty. She looked like a story out of some
-Eastern Fairy Tale, and Dao Singh just set
-her off nicely.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;The pretty child!&#8221; mother murmured, clasping
-her hands, and I know that at that instant
-her heart went out to Phillis Duane.</p>
-
-<p>Philly was looking up at her with a bashful
-little smile; yet the golden lights in her brown
-eyes were dancing. She had laughed to see
-how I had caught my little mother up off the
-ground.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Who is she, Clinton?&#8221; mother asked.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;My sister,&#8221; I told her, proudly.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;What?&#8221; gasped mother, and I saw Chester
-Downes echo the word, but in a whisper. I
-could imagine the start my announcement gave
-him. And yet, my statement could not explain
-all that I saw in my uncle&#8217;s face as he glared
-at little Phillis. It was not until afterward,
-however, that I remembered how startled
-Chester Downes was.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_252">[252]</span>&#8220;That&#8217;s what we&#8217;ve agreed to, mother,&#8221;
-I said, smiling, too, at my pretty little friend.
-&#8220;We have adopted each other. Now it remains
-with you to take Phillis Duane right into your
-heart along with me.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;The dear, dear child!&#8221; mother murmured,
-and went down the verandah steps to meet the
-girl.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I know I shall love you, dearly! dearly!&#8221;
-cried Philly, and put her arms around mother&#8217;s
-neck as the latter stooped over her.</p>
-
-<p>Dao Singh made a low obeisance. Mother
-looked rather startled at him and then turned
-to me.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Dao Singh,&#8221; I explained, &#8220;has had much
-care of Phillis since she was little. He insists
-upon attending upon her&mdash;&mdash;&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;And upon the Webb Sahib,&#8221; concluded
-the Hindoo, gravely. &#8220;It is well that the little
-Memsahib and Webb Sahib, come in health
-to Her Ladyship, on whom be peace and health.
-Dao Singh is her servant.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>He bent low again, took up the hem of my
-mother&#8217;s voluminous summer dress, and pressed
-it to his forehead. Mother looked amazed,
-and well she might&mdash;a new daughter and such
-a kingly serving person thrust upon her so
-unexpectedly. I had to laugh.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Your Ladyship will get used to it in time.
-As a man before the mast in an old windjammer,
-being served by an oriental prince has its drawbacks;
-but you&#8217;ll get used to it, Little Mum!&#8221;</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_253">[253]</span>But mother&#8217;s interest was soon fixed entirely
-upon Phillis, and with her hand upon the child&#8217;s
-shoulder, she urged her up the steps. There
-Chester Downes was hanging about, eager to
-be noticed, anxious to come into the picture.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Your Uncle Chester, Clinton,&#8221; said mother,
-&#8220;has been so kind to me while you were away.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>I said nothing. She glanced from my face
-to his, and then back again, and her lips began
-to tremble.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Oh! I hoped that you would meet him differently
-now, Clinton,&#8221; she said.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I am sorry if I consider Mr. Downes just
-what he was before I went away. Any house
-would be uncomfortable if both of us remained
-in it. Can I speak plainer?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;You don&#8217;t need to, boy!&#8221; snarled Mr.
-Downes, his face reddening again.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Colonel Playfair will probably see you at
-any time you wish to call on him&mdash;either he or
-Mr. Charles Aborn,&#8221; I said, pointedly. &#8220;They
-have my affairs in charge.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Mother did not hear. She was talking with
-Phillis. And Mr. Downes, after a brief hesitation,
-went down the steps and through the
-shrubbery to the street.</p>
-
-<p>I took the chair upon the other side of Philly
-and Dao Singh, like a gaily painted life-size
-statue, stood at a respectable distance. Briefly
-we told mother the story of the little girl&#8217;s
-adventures; and as I well knew mother received
-the waif with joy.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_254">[254]</span>&#8220;It has been a great sorrow all his life, my
-child,&#8221; mother said, drawing Philly upon her
-lap, &#8220;that Clint had no sister. A boy is a
-great comfort to a widowed woman; but he
-cannot take the place of a daughter. Love
-me, my child, if you can.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>And I knew by the way that the child threw
-her arms about mother&#8217;s neck and sobbed upon
-her breast, that she had already begun to love
-my mother. Philly&#8217;s heart had been sore for
-just the sort of protective care my mother could
-give her. I saw that my scheme was going to
-be a huge success!</p>
-
-<p>With Chester Downes out of the way my
-home-coming was all that I could have hoped
-for. The help around the house welcomed
-me with delight, too. Even my mother&#8217;s
-French maid, Marie Portent, gave me a wintry
-smile&mdash;and I had never been a favorite with
-her.</p>
-
-<p>The neighbors came in to see me, too, for
-the news had spread all over town that I had
-come back from my wanderings. Mr. Chester
-Downes had not succeeded in turning everybody
-against me.</p>
-
-<p>But you may believe I got into some decent
-clothes before I held any reception. Then I
-went down town and wired Thankful Polk a
-hundred dollars and the news that everything
-was O. K. with me.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Now we will go to Bolderhead and open
-the house for the rest of the summer,&#8221; mother<span class="pagenum" id="Page_255">[255]</span>
-said that very evening. &#8220;I could not bear to
-open it without you, dear boy.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>We kept off the subject of the Downes just
-then; but I might as well state right here that
-Mr. Chester Downes was not appointed by
-the court co-trustee with my mother. Colonel
-Playfair <i>was</i>, and that before we closed Darringford
-house and went to live in mother&#8217;s
-summer villa on Bolderhead Neck.</p>
-
-<p>Thankful Polk came north to visit us, too;
-and mother was greatly pleased with him.
-Dao Singh, as I foresaw, soon made it advisable
-for us to find another situation for James, our
-butler. Singh actually, when we got to Bolderhead,
-took the entire responsibility of the
-housekeeping upon himself, and mother thankfully
-declared that she had never had so easy
-a time before, nor had the household been run
-so smoothly.</p>
-
-<p>For the first time since I could remember
-Mr. Chester Downes did not go to Bolderhead
-with us. I had no friction over it, and mother
-was not troubled. Colonel Playfair knew how
-to bring things about. I liked him a whole
-lot better for a guardian than I had Mr. Hounsditch.</p>
-
-<p>As for my cousin Paul, when he returned
-home&mdash;if he ever did&mdash;I knew I had a method of
-keeping him at a distance. The threat of
-punishment for what he had done to me still
-hung over him like a sword of Damocles.</p>
-
-<p>It was not many weeks before I had a letter<span class="pagenum" id="Page_256">[256]</span>
-from Mr. Jim Barney. Among other interesting
-items of news, he stated that both he and his
-brother had been exonerated together with
-Captain Bowditch in the matter of the collision
-and the sinking of the Seamew. If blame lay
-anywhere it was upon poor Captain Somes, who
-had gone down with his ship.</p>
-
-<p>As to the Barney brothers&#8217; private affairs,
-they had both refused their uncle&#8217;s offer of
-money and position. As long as the old man
-would not divide his wealth between them and
-give both of them an opportunity of entering
-the shipping firm, Jim and Alf had resigned
-and were going to sail upon ships belonging to
-other owners. That seemed to them to be the
-best and final settlement of the matter.</p>
-
-<p>I often thought of my long cruise in the Windjammer,
-and I could not say that I was sorry
-for having gone through those adventures.
-I certainly was not sorry that they had brought
-about the coming of Phillis Duane to our
-house. For, as the weeks flew by, the British
-consul heard nothing regarding the girl&#8217;s friends
-or relatives.</p>
-
-<p>It looked as though she was ours &#8220;for keeps,&#8221;
-as Thank said; and both my mother and I were
-satisfied.</p>
-
-
-<p class="center">THE END.</p>
-
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<div class="transnote">
-<p class="ph1">TRANSCRIBER&#8217;S NOTES:</p>
-
-
-
-<p>Obvious typographical errors have been corrected.</p>
-
-<p>Inconsistencies in hyphenation have been standardized.</p>
-
-<p>Archaic or alternate spelling has been retained from the original.</p>
-</div></div>
-
-
-<div style='display:block; margin-top:4em'>*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK FROM SEA TO SEA ***</div>
-<div style='text-align:left'>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Updated editions will replace the previous one&#8212;the old editions will
-be renamed.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG&#8482;
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following
-the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use
-of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for
-copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very
-easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation
-of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project
-Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away&#8212;you may
-do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected
-by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark
-license, especially commercial redistribution.
-</div>
-
-<div style='margin:0.83em 0; font-size:1.1em; text-align:center'>START: FULL LICENSE<br />
-<span style='font-size:smaller'>THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE<br />
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK</span>
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-To protect the Project Gutenberg&#8482; mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase &#8220;Project
-Gutenberg&#8221;), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person
-or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.B. &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation (&#8220;the
-Foundation&#8221; or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg&#8482; mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg&#8482; work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country other than the United States.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg&#8482; work (any work
-on which the phrase &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; appears, or with which the
-phrase &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-</div>
-
-<blockquote>
- <div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
- other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
- whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
- of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online
- at <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you
- are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws
- of the country where you are located before using this eBook.
- </div>
-</blockquote>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase &#8220;Project
-Gutenberg&#8221; associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg&#8482; License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg&#8482;.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; License.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg&#8482; work in a format
-other than &#8220;Plain Vanilla ASCII&#8221; or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg&#8482; website
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original &#8220;Plain
-Vanilla ASCII&#8221; or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg&#8482; works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-provided that:
-</div>
-
-<div style='margin-left:0.7em;'>
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &#8226; You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg&#8482; works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg&#8482; trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, &#8220;Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation.&#8221;
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &#8226; You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg&#8482;
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
- works.
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &#8226; You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &#8226; You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg&#8482; works.
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the manager of
-the Project Gutenberg&#8482; trademark. Contact the Foundation as set
-forth in Section 3 below.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain &#8220;Defects,&#8221; such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the &#8220;Right
-of Replacement or Refund&#8221; described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you &#8216;AS-IS&#8217;, WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg&#8482; work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg&#8482; work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg&#8482;&#8217;s
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg&#8482; collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg&#8482; and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at www.gutenberg.org.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non-profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation&#8217;s EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state&#8217;s laws.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Foundation&#8217;s business office is located at 809 North 1500 West,
-Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up
-to date contact information can be found at the Foundation&#8217;s website
-and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; depends upon and cannot survive without widespread
-public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular state
-visit <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org/donate/">www.gutenberg.org/donate</a>.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg&#8482; eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Most people start at our website which has the main PG search
-facility: <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-This website includes information about Project Gutenberg&#8482;,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-</div>
-
-</div>
-</body>
-</html>
diff --git a/old/67495-h/images/cover.jpg b/old/67495-h/images/cover.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index eff5d2c..0000000
--- a/old/67495-h/images/cover.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67495-h/images/i_frontispiece.jpg b/old/67495-h/images/i_frontispiece.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 9602236..0000000
--- a/old/67495-h/images/i_frontispiece.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67495-h/images/i_title.jpg b/old/67495-h/images/i_title.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 9fe0207..0000000
--- a/old/67495-h/images/i_title.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ